Quotations.ch
  Directory : Adventures of Huckleberry Finn
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of Adventures of Huckleberry Finn, Complete
  • by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  • no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
  • it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • Title: Adventures of Huckleberry Finn, Complete
  • Author: Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  • Release Date: August 20, 2006 [EBook #76]
  • Last Updated: February 23, 2018
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUCKLEBERRY FINN ***
  • Produced by David Widger
  • ADVENTURES
  • OF
  • HUCKLEBERRY FINN
  • (Tom Sawyer's Comrade)
  • By Mark Twain
  • Complete
  • CONTENTS.
  • CHAPTER I. Civilizing Huck.--Miss Watson.--Tom Sawyer Waits.
  • CHAPTER II. The Boys Escape Jim.--Torn Sawyer's Gang.--Deep-laid Plans.
  • CHAPTER III. A Good Going-over.--Grace Triumphant.--“One of Tom Sawyers's
  • Lies”.
  • CHAPTER IV. Huck and the Judge.--Superstition.
  • CHAPTER V. Huck's Father.--The Fond Parent.--Reform.
  • CHAPTER VI. He Went for Judge Thatcher.--Huck Decided to Leave.--Political
  • Economy.--Thrashing Around.
  • CHAPTER VII. Laying for Him.--Locked in the Cabin.--Sinking the
  • Body.--Resting.
  • CHAPTER VIII. Sleeping in the Woods.--Raising the Dead.--Exploring the
  • Island.--Finding Jim.--Jim's Escape.--Signs.--Balum.
  • CHAPTER IX. The Cave.--The Floating House.
  • CHAPTER X. The Find.--Old Hank Bunker.--In Disguise.
  • CHAPTER XI. Huck and the Woman.--The Search.--Prevarication.--Going to
  • Goshen.
  • CHAPTER XII. Slow Navigation.--Borrowing Things.--Boarding the Wreck.--The
  • Plotters.--Hunting for the Boat.
  • CHAPTER XIII. Escaping from the Wreck.--The Watchman.--Sinking.
  • CHAPTER XIV. A General Good Time.--The Harem.--French.
  • CHAPTER XV. Huck Loses the Raft.--In the Fog.--Huck Finds the Raft.--Trash.
  • CHAPTER XVI. Expectation.--A White Lie.--Floating Currency.--Running by
  • Cairo.--Swimming Ashore.
  • CHAPTER XVII. An Evening Call.--The Farm in Arkansaw.--Interior
  • Decorations.--Stephen Dowling Bots.--Poetical Effusions.
  • CHAPTER XVIII. Col. Grangerford.--Aristocracy.--Feuds.--The
  • Testament.--Recovering the Raft.--The Wood--pile.--Pork and Cabbage.
  • CHAPTER XIX. Tying Up Day--times.--An Astronomical Theory.--Running a
  • Temperance Revival.--The Duke of Bridgewater.--The Troubles of Royalty.
  • CHAPTER XX. Huck Explains.--Laying Out a Campaign.--Working the
  • Camp--meeting.--A Pirate at the Camp--meeting.--The Duke as a Printer.
  • CHAPTER XXI. Sword Exercise.--Hamlet's Soliloquy.--They Loafed Around
  • Town.--A Lazy Town.--Old Boggs.--Dead.
  • CHAPTER XXII. Sherburn.--Attending the Circus.--Intoxication in the
  • Ring.--The Thrilling Tragedy.
  • CHAPTER XXIII. Sold.--Royal Comparisons.--Jim Gets Home-sick.
  • CHAPTER XXIV. Jim in Royal Robes.--They Take a Passenger.--Getting
  • Information.--Family Grief.
  • CHAPTER XXV. Is It Them?--Singing the “Doxologer.”--Awful Square--Funeral
  • Orgies.--A Bad Investment .
  • CHAPTER XXVI. A Pious King.--The King's Clergy.--She Asked His
  • Pardon.--Hiding in the Room.--Huck Takes the Money.
  • CHAPTER XXVII. The Funeral.--Satisfying Curiosity.--Suspicious of
  • Huck,--Quick Sales and Small.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII. The Trip to England.--“The Brute!”--Mary Jane Decides to
  • Leave.--Huck Parting with Mary Jane.--Mumps.--The Opposition Line.
  • CHAPTER XXIX. Contested Relationship.--The King Explains the Loss.--A
  • Question of Handwriting.--Digging up the Corpse.--Huck Escapes.
  • CHAPTER XXX. The King Went for Him.--A Royal Row.--Powerful Mellow.
  • CHAPTER XXXI. Ominous Plans.--News from Jim.--Old Recollections.--A Sheep
  • Story.--Valuable Information.
  • CHAPTER XXXII. Still and Sunday--like.--Mistaken Identity.--Up a Stump.--In
  • a Dilemma.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII. A Nigger Stealer.--Southern Hospitality.--A Pretty Long
  • Blessing.--Tar and Feathers.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV. The Hut by the Ash Hopper.--Outrageous.--Climbing the
  • Lightning Rod.--Troubled with Witches.
  • CHAPTER XXXV. Escaping Properly.--Dark Schemes.--Discrimination in
  • Stealing.--A Deep Hole.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI. The Lightning Rod.--His Level Best.--A Bequest to
  • Posterity.--A High Figure.
  • CHAPTER XXXVII. The Last Shirt.--Mooning Around.--Sailing Orders.--The
  • Witch Pie.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII. The Coat of Arms.--A Skilled Superintendent.--Unpleasant
  • Glory.--A Tearful Subject.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX. Rats.--Lively Bed--fellows.--The Straw Dummy.
  • CHAPTER XL. Fishing.--The Vigilance Committee.--A Lively Run.--Jim Advises
  • a Doctor.
  • CHAPTER XLI. The Doctor.--Uncle Silas.--Sister Hotchkiss.--Aunt Sally in
  • Trouble.
  • CHAPTER XLII. Tom Sawyer Wounded.--The Doctor's Story.--Tom
  • Confesses.--Aunt Polly Arrives.--Hand Out Them Letters .
  • CHAPTER THE LAST. Out of Bondage.--Paying the Captive.--Yours Truly, Huck
  • Finn.
  • ILLUSTRATIONS.
  • The Widows
  • Moses and the “Bulrushers”
  • Miss Watson
  • Huck Stealing Away
  • They Tip-toed Along
  • Jim
  • Tom Sawyer's Band of Robbers
  • Huck Creeps into his Window
  • Miss Watson's Lecture
  • The Robbers Dispersed
  • Rubbing the Lamp
  • ! ! ! !
  • Judge Thatcher surprised
  • Jim Listening
  • “Pap”
  • Huck and his Father
  • Reforming the Drunkard
  • Falling from Grace
  • Getting out of the Way
  • Solid Comfort
  • Thinking it Over
  • Raising a Howl
  • “Git Up”
  • The Shanty
  • Shooting the Pig
  • Taking a Rest
  • In the Woods
  • Watching the Boat
  • Discovering the Camp Fire
  • Jim and the Ghost
  • Misto Bradish's Nigger
  • Exploring the Cave
  • In the Cave
  • Jim sees a Dead Man
  • They Found Eight Dollars
  • Jim and the Snake
  • Old Hank Bunker
  • “A Fair Fit”
  • “Come In”
  • “Him and another Man”
  • She puts up a Snack
  • “Hump Yourself”
  • On the Raft
  • He sometimes Lifted a Chicken
  • “Please don't, Bill”
  • “It ain't Good Morals”
  • “Oh! Lordy, Lordy!”
  • In a Fix
  • “Hello, What's Up?”
  • The Wreck
  • We turned in and Slept
  • Turning over the Truck
  • Solomon and his Million Wives
  • The story of “Sollermun”
  • “We Would Sell the Raft”
  • Among the Snags
  • Asleep on the Raft
  • “Something being Raftsman”
  • “Boy, that's a Lie”
  • “Here I is, Huck”
  • Climbing up the Bank
  • “Who's There?”
  • “Buck”
  • “It made Her look Spidery”
  • “They got him out and emptied Him”
  • The House
  • Col. Grangerford
  • Young Harney Shepherdson
  • Miss Charlotte
  • “And asked me if I Liked Her”
  • “Behind the Wood-pile”
  • Hiding Day-times
  • “And Dogs a-Coming”
  • “By rights I am a Duke!”
  • “I am the Late Dauphin”
  • Tail Piece
  • On the Raft
  • The King as Juliet
  • “Courting on the Sly”
  • “A Pirate for Thirty Years”
  • Another little Job
  • Practizing
  • Hamlet's Soliloquy
  • “Gimme a Chaw”
  • A Little Monthly Drunk
  • The Death of Boggs
  • Sherburn steps out
  • A Dead Head
  • He shed Seventeen Suits
  • Tragedy
  • Their Pockets Bulged
  • Henry the Eighth in Boston Harbor
  • Harmless
  • Adolphus
  • He fairly emptied that Young Fellow
  • “Alas, our Poor Brother”
  • “You Bet it is”
  • Leaking
  • Making up the “Deffisit”
  • Going for him
  • The Doctor
  • The Bag of Money
  • The Cubby
  • Supper with the Hare-Lip
  • Honest Injun
  • The Duke looks under the Bed
  • Huck takes the Money
  • A Crack in the Dining-room Door
  • The Undertaker
  • “He had a Rat!”
  • “Was you in my Room?”
  • Jawing
  • In Trouble
  • Indignation
  • How to Find Them
  • He Wrote
  • Hannah with the Mumps
  • The Auction
  • The True Brothers
  • The Doctor leads Huck
  • The Duke Wrote
  • “Gentlemen, Gentlemen!”
  • “Jim Lit Out”
  • The King shakes Huck
  • The Duke went for Him
  • Spanish Moss
  • “Who Nailed Him?”
  • Thinking
  • He gave him Ten Cents
  • Striking for the Back Country
  • Still and Sunday-like
  • She hugged him tight
  • “Who do you reckon it is?”
  • “It was Tom Sawyer”
  • “Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?”
  • A pretty long Blessing
  • Traveling By Rail
  • Vittles
  • A Simple Job
  • Witches
  • Getting Wood
  • One of the Best Authorities
  • The Breakfast-Horn
  • Smouching the Knives
  • Going down the Lightning-Rod
  • Stealing spoons
  • Tom advises a Witch Pie
  • The Rubbage-Pile
  • “Missus, dey's a Sheet Gone”
  • In a Tearing Way
  • One of his Ancestors
  • Jim's Coat of Arms
  • A Tough Job
  • Buttons on their Tails
  • Irrigation
  • Keeping off Dull Times
  • Sawdust Diet
  • Trouble is Brewing
  • Fishing
  • Every one had a Gun
  • Tom caught on a Splinter
  • Jim advises a Doctor
  • The Doctor
  • Uncle Silas in Danger
  • Old Mrs. Hotchkiss
  • Aunt Sally talks to Huck
  • Tom Sawyer wounded
  • The Doctor speaks for Jim
  • Tom rose square up in Bed
  • “Hand out them Letters”
  • Out of Bondage
  • Tom's Liberality
  • Yours Truly
  • EXPLANATORY
  • IN this book a number of dialects are used, to wit: the Missouri negro
  • dialect; the extremest form of the backwoods Southwestern dialect; the
  • ordinary “Pike County” dialect; and four modified varieties of this
  • last. The shadings have not been done in a haphazard fashion, or by
  • guesswork; but painstakingly, and with the trustworthy guidance and
  • support of personal familiarity with these several forms of speech.
  • I make this explanation for the reason that without it many readers
  • would suppose that all these characters were trying to talk alike and
  • not succeeding.
  • THE AUTHOR.
  • HUCKLEBERRY FINN
  • Scene: The Mississippi Valley Time: Forty to fifty years ago
  • CHAPTER I.
  • YOU don't know about me without you have read a book by the name of The
  • Adventures of Tom Sawyer; but that ain't no matter. That book was made
  • by Mr. Mark Twain, and he told the truth, mainly. There was things
  • which he stretched, but mainly he told the truth. That is nothing. I
  • never seen anybody but lied one time or another, without it was Aunt
  • Polly, or the widow, or maybe Mary. Aunt Polly--Tom's Aunt Polly, she
  • is--and Mary, and the Widow Douglas is all told about in that book, which
  • is mostly a true book, with some stretchers, as I said before.
  • Now the way that the book winds up is this: Tom and me found the money
  • that the robbers hid in the cave, and it made us rich. We got six
  • thousand dollars apiece--all gold. It was an awful sight of money when
  • it was piled up. Well, Judge Thatcher he took it and put it out
  • at interest, and it fetched us a dollar a day apiece all the year
  • round--more than a body could tell what to do with. The Widow Douglas
  • she took me for her son, and allowed she would sivilize me; but it was
  • rough living in the house all the time, considering how dismal regular
  • and decent the widow was in all her ways; and so when I couldn't stand
  • it no longer I lit out. I got into my old rags and my sugar-hogshead
  • again, and was free and satisfied. But Tom Sawyer he hunted me up and
  • said he was going to start a band of robbers, and I might join if I
  • would go back to the widow and be respectable. So I went back.
  • The widow she cried over me, and called me a poor lost lamb, and she
  • called me a lot of other names, too, but she never meant no harm by
  • it. She put me in them new clothes again, and I couldn't do nothing but
  • sweat and sweat, and feel all cramped up. Well, then, the old thing
  • commenced again. The widow rung a bell for supper, and you had to come
  • to time. When you got to the table you couldn't go right to eating, but
  • you had to wait for the widow to tuck down her head and grumble a little
  • over the victuals, though there warn't really anything the matter with
  • them,--that is, nothing only everything was cooked by itself. In a
  • barrel of odds and ends it is different; things get mixed up, and the
  • juice kind of swaps around, and the things go better.
  • After supper she got out her book and learned me about Moses and the
  • Bulrushers, and I was in a sweat to find out all about him; but by and
  • by she let it out that Moses had been dead a considerable long time; so
  • then I didn't care no more about him, because I don't take no stock in
  • dead people.
  • Pretty soon I wanted to smoke, and asked the widow to let me. But she
  • wouldn't. She said it was a mean practice and wasn't clean, and I must
  • try to not do it any more. That is just the way with some people. They
  • get down on a thing when they don't know nothing about it. Here she was
  • a-bothering about Moses, which was no kin to her, and no use to anybody,
  • being gone, you see, yet finding a power of fault with me for doing a
  • thing that had some good in it. And she took snuff, too; of course that
  • was all right, because she done it herself.
  • Her sister, Miss Watson, a tolerable slim old maid, with goggles on,
  • had just come to live with her, and took a set at me now with a
  • spelling-book. She worked me middling hard for about an hour, and then
  • the widow made her ease up. I couldn't stood it much longer. Then for
  • an hour it was deadly dull, and I was fidgety. Miss Watson would say,
  • “Don't put your feet up there, Huckleberry;” and “Don't scrunch up
  • like that, Huckleberry--set up straight;” and pretty soon she would
  • say, “Don't gap and stretch like that, Huckleberry--why don't you try to
  • behave?” Then she told me all about the bad place, and I said I wished
  • I was there. She got mad then, but I didn't mean no harm. All I wanted
  • was to go somewheres; all I wanted was a change, I warn't particular.
  • She said it was wicked to say what I said; said she wouldn't say it for
  • the whole world; she was going to live so as to go to the good place.
  • Well, I couldn't see no advantage in going where she was going, so I
  • made up my mind I wouldn't try for it. But I never said so, because it
  • would only make trouble, and wouldn't do no good.
  • Now she had got a start, and she went on and told me all about the good
  • place. She said all a body would have to do there was to go around all
  • day long with a harp and sing, forever and ever. So I didn't think
  • much of it. But I never said so. I asked her if she reckoned Tom Sawyer
  • would go there, and she said not by a considerable sight. I was glad
  • about that, because I wanted him and me to be together.
  • Miss Watson she kept pecking at me, and it got tiresome and lonesome.
  • By and by they fetched the niggers in and had prayers, and then
  • everybody was off to bed. I went up to my room with a piece of candle,
  • and put it on the table. Then I set down in a chair by the window and
  • tried to think of something cheerful, but it warn't no use. I felt
  • so lonesome I most wished I was dead. The stars were shining, and the
  • leaves rustled in the woods ever so mournful; and I heard an owl, away
  • off, who-whooing about somebody that was dead, and a whippowill and a
  • dog crying about somebody that was going to die; and the wind was trying
  • to whisper something to me, and I couldn't make out what it was, and so
  • it made the cold shivers run over me. Then away out in the woods I heard
  • that kind of a sound that a ghost makes when it wants to tell about
  • something that's on its mind and can't make itself understood, and so
  • can't rest easy in its grave, and has to go about that way every night
  • grieving. I got so down-hearted and scared I did wish I had some
  • company. Pretty soon a spider went crawling up my shoulder, and I
  • flipped it off and it lit in the candle; and before I could budge it
  • was all shriveled up. I didn't need anybody to tell me that that was
  • an awful bad sign and would fetch me some bad luck, so I was scared
  • and most shook the clothes off of me. I got up and turned around in my
  • tracks three times and crossed my breast every time; and then I tied
  • up a little lock of my hair with a thread to keep witches away. But
  • I hadn't no confidence. You do that when you've lost a horseshoe that
  • you've found, instead of nailing it up over the door, but I hadn't ever
  • heard anybody say it was any way to keep off bad luck when you'd killed
  • a spider.
  • I set down again, a-shaking all over, and got out my pipe for a smoke;
  • for the house was all as still as death now, and so the widow wouldn't
  • know. Well, after a long time I heard the clock away off in the town
  • go boom--boom--boom--twelve licks; and all still again--stiller than
  • ever. Pretty soon I heard a twig snap down in the dark amongst the
  • trees--something was a stirring. I set still and listened. Directly I
  • could just barely hear a “me-yow! me-yow!” down there. That was good!
  • Says I, “me-yow! me-yow!” as soft as I could, and then I put out the
  • light and scrambled out of the window on to the shed. Then I slipped
  • down to the ground and crawled in among the trees, and, sure enough,
  • there was Tom Sawyer waiting for me.
  • CHAPTER II.
  • WE went tiptoeing along a path amongst the trees back towards the end of
  • the widow's garden, stooping down so as the branches wouldn't scrape our
  • heads. When we was passing by the kitchen I fell over a root and made
  • a noise. We scrouched down and laid still. Miss Watson's big nigger,
  • named Jim, was setting in the kitchen door; we could see him pretty
  • clear, because there was a light behind him. He got up and stretched
  • his neck out about a minute, listening. Then he says:
  • “Who dah?”
  • He listened some more; then he come tiptoeing down and stood right
  • between us; we could a touched him, nearly. Well, likely it was
  • minutes and minutes that there warn't a sound, and we all there so close
  • together. There was a place on my ankle that got to itching, but I
  • dasn't scratch it; and then my ear begun to itch; and next my back,
  • right between my shoulders. Seemed like I'd die if I couldn't scratch.
  • Well, I've noticed that thing plenty times since. If you are with
  • the quality, or at a funeral, or trying to go to sleep when you ain't
  • sleepy--if you are anywheres where it won't do for you to scratch, why
  • you will itch all over in upwards of a thousand places. Pretty soon Jim
  • says:
  • “Say, who is you? Whar is you? Dog my cats ef I didn' hear sumf'n.
  • Well, I know what I's gwyne to do: I's gwyne to set down here and
  • listen tell I hears it agin.”
  • So he set down on the ground betwixt me and Tom. He leaned his back up
  • against a tree, and stretched his legs out till one of them most touched
  • one of mine. My nose begun to itch. It itched till the tears come into
  • my eyes. But I dasn't scratch. Then it begun to itch on the inside.
  • Next I got to itching underneath. I didn't know how I was going to set
  • still. This miserableness went on as much as six or seven minutes; but
  • it seemed a sight longer than that. I was itching in eleven different
  • places now. I reckoned I couldn't stand it more'n a minute longer,
  • but I set my teeth hard and got ready to try. Just then Jim begun
  • to breathe heavy; next he begun to snore--and then I was pretty soon
  • comfortable again.
  • Tom he made a sign to me--kind of a little noise with his mouth--and we
  • went creeping away on our hands and knees. When we was ten foot off Tom
  • whispered to me, and wanted to tie Jim to the tree for fun. But I said
  • no; he might wake and make a disturbance, and then they'd find out I
  • warn't in. Then Tom said he hadn't got candles enough, and he would slip
  • in the kitchen and get some more. I didn't want him to try. I said Jim
  • might wake up and come. But Tom wanted to resk it; so we slid in there
  • and got three candles, and Tom laid five cents on the table for pay.
  • Then we got out, and I was in a sweat to get away; but nothing would do
  • Tom but he must crawl to where Jim was, on his hands and knees, and play
  • something on him. I waited, and it seemed a good while, everything was
  • so still and lonesome.
  • As soon as Tom was back we cut along the path, around the garden fence,
  • and by and by fetched up on the steep top of the hill the other side of
  • the house. Tom said he slipped Jim's hat off of his head and hung it
  • on a limb right over him, and Jim stirred a little, but he didn't wake.
  • Afterwards Jim said the witches be witched him and put him in a trance,
  • and rode him all over the State, and then set him under the trees again,
  • and hung his hat on a limb to show who done it. And next time Jim told
  • it he said they rode him down to New Orleans; and, after that, every
  • time he told it he spread it more and more, till by and by he said they
  • rode him all over the world, and tired him most to death, and his back
  • was all over saddle-boils. Jim was monstrous proud about it, and he
  • got so he wouldn't hardly notice the other niggers. Niggers would come
  • miles to hear Jim tell about it, and he was more looked up to than any
  • nigger in that country. Strange niggers would stand with their mouths
  • open and look him all over, same as if he was a wonder. Niggers is
  • always talking about witches in the dark by the kitchen fire; but
  • whenever one was talking and letting on to know all about such things,
  • Jim would happen in and say, “Hm! What you know 'bout witches?” and
  • that nigger was corked up and had to take a back seat. Jim always kept
  • that five-center piece round his neck with a string, and said it was a
  • charm the devil give to him with his own hands, and told him he could
  • cure anybody with it and fetch witches whenever he wanted to just by
  • saying something to it; but he never told what it was he said to it.
  • Niggers would come from all around there and give Jim anything they
  • had, just for a sight of that five-center piece; but they wouldn't touch
  • it, because the devil had had his hands on it. Jim was most ruined for
  • a servant, because he got stuck up on account of having seen the devil
  • and been rode by witches.
  • Well, when Tom and me got to the edge of the hilltop we looked away down
  • into the village and could see three or four lights twinkling, where
  • there was sick folks, maybe; and the stars over us was sparkling ever
  • so fine; and down by the village was the river, a whole mile broad, and
  • awful still and grand. We went down the hill and found Jo Harper and
  • Ben Rogers, and two or three more of the boys, hid in the old tanyard.
  • So we unhitched a skiff and pulled down the river two mile and a half,
  • to the big scar on the hillside, and went ashore.
  • We went to a clump of bushes, and Tom made everybody swear to keep the
  • secret, and then showed them a hole in the hill, right in the thickest
  • part of the bushes. Then we lit the candles, and crawled in on our
  • hands and knees. We went about two hundred yards, and then the cave
  • opened up. Tom poked about amongst the passages, and pretty soon ducked
  • under a wall where you wouldn't a noticed that there was a hole. We
  • went along a narrow place and got into a kind of room, all damp and
  • sweaty and cold, and there we stopped. Tom says:
  • “Now, we'll start this band of robbers and call it Tom Sawyer's Gang.
  • Everybody that wants to join has got to take an oath, and write his name
  • in blood.”
  • Everybody was willing. So Tom got out a sheet of paper that he had
  • wrote the oath on, and read it. It swore every boy to stick to the
  • band, and never tell any of the secrets; and if anybody done anything to
  • any boy in the band, whichever boy was ordered to kill that person and
  • his family must do it, and he mustn't eat and he mustn't sleep till he
  • had killed them and hacked a cross in their breasts, which was the sign
  • of the band. And nobody that didn't belong to the band could use that
  • mark, and if he did he must be sued; and if he done it again he must be
  • killed. And if anybody that belonged to the band told the secrets, he
  • must have his throat cut, and then have his carcass burnt up and the
  • ashes scattered all around, and his name blotted off of the list with
  • blood and never mentioned again by the gang, but have a curse put on it
  • and be forgot forever.
  • Everybody said it was a real beautiful oath, and asked Tom if he got
  • it out of his own head. He said, some of it, but the rest was out of
  • pirate-books and robber-books, and every gang that was high-toned had
  • it.
  • Some thought it would be good to kill the _families_ of boys that told
  • the secrets. Tom said it was a good idea, so he took a pencil and wrote
  • it in. Then Ben Rogers says:
  • “Here's Huck Finn, he hain't got no family; what you going to do 'bout
  • him?”
  • “Well, hain't he got a father?” says Tom Sawyer.
  • “Yes, he's got a father, but you can't never find him these days. He
  • used to lay drunk with the hogs in the tanyard, but he hain't been seen
  • in these parts for a year or more.”
  • They talked it over, and they was going to rule me out, because they
  • said every boy must have a family or somebody to kill, or else it
  • wouldn't be fair and square for the others. Well, nobody could think of
  • anything to do--everybody was stumped, and set still. I was most ready
  • to cry; but all at once I thought of a way, and so I offered them Miss
  • Watson--they could kill her. Everybody said:
  • “Oh, she'll do. That's all right. Huck can come in.”
  • Then they all stuck a pin in their fingers to get blood to sign with,
  • and I made my mark on the paper.
  • “Now,” says Ben Rogers, “what's the line of business of this Gang?”
  • “Nothing only robbery and murder,” Tom said.
  • “But who are we going to rob?--houses, or cattle, or--”
  • “Stuff! stealing cattle and such things ain't robbery; it's burglary,”
  • says Tom Sawyer. “We ain't burglars. That ain't no sort of style. We
  • are highwaymen. We stop stages and carriages on the road, with masks
  • on, and kill the people and take their watches and money.”
  • “Must we always kill the people?”
  • “Oh, certainly. It's best. Some authorities think different, but
  • mostly it's considered best to kill them--except some that you bring to
  • the cave here, and keep them till they're ransomed.”
  • “Ransomed? What's that?”
  • “I don't know. But that's what they do. I've seen it in books; and so
  • of course that's what we've got to do.”
  • “But how can we do it if we don't know what it is?”
  • “Why, blame it all, we've _got_ to do it. Don't I tell you it's in the
  • books? Do you want to go to doing different from what's in the books,
  • and get things all muddled up?”
  • “Oh, that's all very fine to _say_, Tom Sawyer, but how in the nation
  • are these fellows going to be ransomed if we don't know how to do it
  • to them?--that's the thing I want to get at. Now, what do you reckon it
  • is?”
  • “Well, I don't know. But per'aps if we keep them till they're ransomed,
  • it means that we keep them till they're dead.”
  • “Now, that's something _like_. That'll answer. Why couldn't you said
  • that before? We'll keep them till they're ransomed to death; and a
  • bothersome lot they'll be, too--eating up everything, and always trying
  • to get loose.”
  • “How you talk, Ben Rogers. How can they get loose when there's a guard
  • over them, ready to shoot them down if they move a peg?”
  • “A guard! Well, that _is_ good. So somebody's got to set up all night
  • and never get any sleep, just so as to watch them. I think that's
  • foolishness. Why can't a body take a club and ransom them as soon as
  • they get here?”
  • “Because it ain't in the books so--that's why. Now, Ben Rogers, do you
  • want to do things regular, or don't you?--that's the idea. Don't you
  • reckon that the people that made the books knows what's the correct
  • thing to do? Do you reckon _you_ can learn 'em anything? Not by a good
  • deal. No, sir, we'll just go on and ransom them in the regular way.”
  • “All right. I don't mind; but I say it's a fool way, anyhow. Say, do
  • we kill the women, too?”
  • “Well, Ben Rogers, if I was as ignorant as you I wouldn't let on. Kill
  • the women? No; nobody ever saw anything in the books like that. You
  • fetch them to the cave, and you're always as polite as pie to them;
  • and by and by they fall in love with you, and never want to go home any
  • more.”
  • “Well, if that's the way I'm agreed, but I don't take no stock in it.
  • Mighty soon we'll have the cave so cluttered up with women, and fellows
  • waiting to be ransomed, that there won't be no place for the robbers.
  • But go ahead, I ain't got nothing to say.”
  • Little Tommy Barnes was asleep now, and when they waked him up he was
  • scared, and cried, and said he wanted to go home to his ma, and didn't
  • want to be a robber any more.
  • So they all made fun of him, and called him cry-baby, and that made him
  • mad, and he said he would go straight and tell all the secrets. But
  • Tom give him five cents to keep quiet, and said we would all go home and
  • meet next week, and rob somebody and kill some people.
  • Ben Rogers said he couldn't get out much, only Sundays, and so he wanted
  • to begin next Sunday; but all the boys said it would be wicked to do it
  • on Sunday, and that settled the thing. They agreed to get together and
  • fix a day as soon as they could, and then we elected Tom Sawyer first
  • captain and Jo Harper second captain of the Gang, and so started home.
  • I clumb up the shed and crept into my window just before day was
  • breaking. My new clothes was all greased up and clayey, and I was
  • dog-tired.
  • CHAPTER III.
  • WELL, I got a good going-over in the morning from old Miss Watson on
  • account of my clothes; but the widow she didn't scold, but only cleaned
  • off the grease and clay, and looked so sorry that I thought I would
  • behave awhile if I could. Then Miss Watson she took me in the closet
  • and prayed, but nothing come of it. She told me to pray every day, and
  • whatever I asked for I would get it. But it warn't so. I tried it.
  • Once I got a fish-line, but no hooks. It warn't any good to me without
  • hooks. I tried for the hooks three or four times, but somehow I
  • couldn't make it work. By and by, one day, I asked Miss Watson to
  • try for me, but she said I was a fool. She never told me why, and I
  • couldn't make it out no way.
  • I set down one time back in the woods, and had a long think about it.
  • I says to myself, if a body can get anything they pray for, why don't
  • Deacon Winn get back the money he lost on pork? Why can't the widow get
  • back her silver snuffbox that was stole? Why can't Miss Watson fat up?
  • No, says I to my self, there ain't nothing in it. I went and told the
  • widow about it, and she said the thing a body could get by praying for
  • it was “spiritual gifts.” This was too many for me, but she told me
  • what she meant--I must help other people, and do everything I could for
  • other people, and look out for them all the time, and never think about
  • myself. This was including Miss Watson, as I took it. I went out in the
  • woods and turned it over in my mind a long time, but I couldn't see no
  • advantage about it--except for the other people; so at last I reckoned
  • I wouldn't worry about it any more, but just let it go. Sometimes the
  • widow would take me one side and talk about Providence in a way to make
  • a body's mouth water; but maybe next day Miss Watson would take hold
  • and knock it all down again. I judged I could see that there was two
  • Providences, and a poor chap would stand considerable show with the
  • widow's Providence, but if Miss Watson's got him there warn't no help
  • for him any more. I thought it all out, and reckoned I would belong
  • to the widow's if he wanted me, though I couldn't make out how he was
  • a-going to be any better off then than what he was before, seeing I was
  • so ignorant, and so kind of low-down and ornery.
  • Pap he hadn't been seen for more than a year, and that was comfortable
  • for me; I didn't want to see him no more. He used to always whale me
  • when he was sober and could get his hands on me; though I used to take
  • to the woods most of the time when he was around. Well, about this time
  • he was found in the river drownded, about twelve mile above town, so
  • people said. They judged it was him, anyway; said this drownded man was
  • just his size, and was ragged, and had uncommon long hair, which was all
  • like pap; but they couldn't make nothing out of the face, because it had
  • been in the water so long it warn't much like a face at all. They said
  • he was floating on his back in the water. They took him and buried him
  • on the bank. But I warn't comfortable long, because I happened to think
  • of something. I knowed mighty well that a drownded man don't float on
  • his back, but on his face. So I knowed, then, that this warn't pap, but
  • a woman dressed up in a man's clothes. So I was uncomfortable again.
  • I judged the old man would turn up again by and by, though I wished he
  • wouldn't.
  • We played robber now and then about a month, and then I resigned. All
  • the boys did. We hadn't robbed nobody, hadn't killed any people, but
  • only just pretended. We used to hop out of the woods and go charging
  • down on hog-drivers and women in carts taking garden stuff to market,
  • but we never hived any of them. Tom Sawyer called the hogs “ingots,”
  • and he called the turnips and stuff “julery,” and we would go to the
  • cave and powwow over what we had done, and how many people we had killed
  • and marked. But I couldn't see no profit in it. One time Tom sent a
  • boy to run about town with a blazing stick, which he called a slogan
  • (which was the sign for the Gang to get together), and then he said he
  • had got secret news by his spies that next day a whole parcel of Spanish
  • merchants and rich A-rabs was going to camp in Cave Hollow with two
  • hundred elephants, and six hundred camels, and over a thousand “sumter”
  • mules, all loaded down with di'monds, and they didn't have only a guard
  • of four hundred soldiers, and so we would lay in ambuscade, as he called
  • it, and kill the lot and scoop the things. He said we must slick up
  • our swords and guns, and get ready. He never could go after even a
  • turnip-cart but he must have the swords and guns all scoured up for it,
  • though they was only lath and broomsticks, and you might scour at them
  • till you rotted, and then they warn't worth a mouthful of ashes more
  • than what they was before. I didn't believe we could lick such a crowd
  • of Spaniards and A-rabs, but I wanted to see the camels and elephants,
  • so I was on hand next day, Saturday, in the ambuscade; and when we got
  • the word we rushed out of the woods and down the hill. But there warn't
  • no Spaniards and A-rabs, and there warn't no camels nor no elephants.
  • It warn't anything but a Sunday-school picnic, and only a primer-class
  • at that. We busted it up, and chased the children up the hollow; but we
  • never got anything but some doughnuts and jam, though Ben Rogers got
  • a rag doll, and Jo Harper got a hymn-book and a tract; and then the
  • teacher charged in, and made us drop everything and cut.
  • I didn't see no di'monds, and I told Tom Sawyer so. He said there was
  • loads of them there, anyway; and he said there was A-rabs there, too,
  • and elephants and things. I said, why couldn't we see them, then? He
  • said if I warn't so ignorant, but had read a book called Don Quixote, I
  • would know without asking. He said it was all done by enchantment. He
  • said there was hundreds of soldiers there, and elephants and treasure,
  • and so on, but we had enemies which he called magicians; and they had
  • turned the whole thing into an infant Sunday-school, just out of spite.
  • I said, all right; then the thing for us to do was to go for the
  • magicians. Tom Sawyer said I was a numskull.
  • “Why,” said he, “a magician could call up a lot of genies, and they
  • would hash you up like nothing before you could say Jack Robinson. They
  • are as tall as a tree and as big around as a church.”
  • “Well,” I says, “s'pose we got some genies to help _us_--can't we lick
  • the other crowd then?”
  • “How you going to get them?”
  • “I don't know. How do _they_ get them?”
  • “Why, they rub an old tin lamp or an iron ring, and then the genies
  • come tearing in, with the thunder and lightning a-ripping around and the
  • smoke a-rolling, and everything they're told to do they up and do it.
  • They don't think nothing of pulling a shot-tower up by the roots, and
  • belting a Sunday-school superintendent over the head with it--or any
  • other man.”
  • “Who makes them tear around so?”
  • “Why, whoever rubs the lamp or the ring. They belong to whoever rubs
  • the lamp or the ring, and they've got to do whatever he says. If he
  • tells them to build a palace forty miles long out of di'monds, and fill
  • it full of chewing-gum, or whatever you want, and fetch an emperor's
  • daughter from China for you to marry, they've got to do it--and they've
  • got to do it before sun-up next morning, too. And more: they've got
  • to waltz that palace around over the country wherever you want it, you
  • understand.”
  • “Well,” says I, “I think they are a pack of flat-heads for not keeping
  • the palace themselves 'stead of fooling them away like that. And what's
  • more--if I was one of them I would see a man in Jericho before I would
  • drop my business and come to him for the rubbing of an old tin lamp.”
  • “How you talk, Huck Finn. Why, you'd _have_ to come when he rubbed it,
  • whether you wanted to or not.”
  • “What! and I as high as a tree and as big as a church? All right, then;
  • I _would_ come; but I lay I'd make that man climb the highest tree there
  • was in the country.”
  • “Shucks, it ain't no use to talk to you, Huck Finn. You don't seem to
  • know anything, somehow--perfect saphead.”
  • I thought all this over for two or three days, and then I reckoned I
  • would see if there was anything in it. I got an old tin lamp and an
  • iron ring, and went out in the woods and rubbed and rubbed till I sweat
  • like an Injun, calculating to build a palace and sell it; but it warn't
  • no use, none of the genies come. So then I judged that all that stuff
  • was only just one of Tom Sawyer's lies. I reckoned he believed in the
  • A-rabs and the elephants, but as for me I think different. It had all
  • the marks of a Sunday-school.
  • CHAPTER IV.
  • WELL, three or four months run along, and it was well into the winter
  • now. I had been to school most all the time and could spell and read and
  • write just a little, and could say the multiplication table up to six
  • times seven is thirty-five, and I don't reckon I could ever get any
  • further than that if I was to live forever. I don't take no stock in
  • mathematics, anyway.
  • At first I hated the school, but by and by I got so I could stand it.
  • Whenever I got uncommon tired I played hookey, and the hiding I got next
  • day done me good and cheered me up. So the longer I went to school the
  • easier it got to be. I was getting sort of used to the widow's ways,
  • too, and they warn't so raspy on me. Living in a house and sleeping in
  • a bed pulled on me pretty tight mostly, but before the cold weather I
  • used to slide out and sleep in the woods sometimes, and so that was a
  • rest to me. I liked the old ways best, but I was getting so I liked the
  • new ones, too, a little bit. The widow said I was coming along slow but
  • sure, and doing very satisfactory. She said she warn't ashamed of me.
  • One morning I happened to turn over the salt-cellar at breakfast.
  • I reached for some of it as quick as I could to throw over my left
  • shoulder and keep off the bad luck, but Miss Watson was in ahead of me,
  • and crossed me off. She says, “Take your hands away, Huckleberry; what
  • a mess you are always making!” The widow put in a good word for me, but
  • that warn't going to keep off the bad luck, I knowed that well enough.
  • I started out, after breakfast, feeling worried and shaky, and
  • wondering where it was going to fall on me, and what it was going to be.
  • There is ways to keep off some kinds of bad luck, but this wasn't one
  • of them kind; so I never tried to do anything, but just poked along
  • low-spirited and on the watch-out.
  • I went down to the front garden and clumb over the stile where you go
  • through the high board fence. There was an inch of new snow on the
  • ground, and I seen somebody's tracks. They had come up from the quarry
  • and stood around the stile a while, and then went on around the garden
  • fence. It was funny they hadn't come in, after standing around so. I
  • couldn't make it out. It was very curious, somehow. I was going to
  • follow around, but I stooped down to look at the tracks first. I didn't
  • notice anything at first, but next I did. There was a cross in the left
  • boot-heel made with big nails, to keep off the devil.
  • I was up in a second and shinning down the hill. I looked over my
  • shoulder every now and then, but I didn't see nobody. I was at Judge
  • Thatcher's as quick as I could get there. He said:
  • “Why, my boy, you are all out of breath. Did you come for your
  • interest?”
  • “No, sir,” I says; “is there some for me?”
  • “Oh, yes, a half-yearly is in last night--over a hundred and fifty
  • dollars. Quite a fortune for you. You had better let me invest it
  • along with your six thousand, because if you take it you'll spend it.”
  • “No, sir,” I says, “I don't want to spend it. I don't want it at
  • all--nor the six thousand, nuther. I want you to take it; I want to give
  • it to you--the six thousand and all.”
  • He looked surprised. He couldn't seem to make it out. He says:
  • “Why, what can you mean, my boy?”
  • I says, “Don't you ask me no questions about it, please. You'll take
  • it--won't you?”
  • He says:
  • “Well, I'm puzzled. Is something the matter?”
  • “Please take it,” says I, “and don't ask me nothing--then I won't have to
  • tell no lies.”
  • He studied a while, and then he says:
  • “Oho-o! I think I see. You want to _sell_ all your property to me--not
  • give it. That's the correct idea.”
  • Then he wrote something on a paper and read it over, and says:
  • “There; you see it says 'for a consideration.' That means I have bought
  • it of you and paid you for it. Here's a dollar for you. Now you sign
  • it.”
  • So I signed it, and left.
  • Miss Watson's nigger, Jim, had a hair-ball as big as your fist, which
  • had been took out of the fourth stomach of an ox, and he used to do
  • magic with it. He said there was a spirit inside of it, and it knowed
  • everything. So I went to him that night and told him pap was here
  • again, for I found his tracks in the snow. What I wanted to know was,
  • what he was going to do, and was he going to stay? Jim got out his
  • hair-ball and said something over it, and then he held it up and dropped
  • it on the floor. It fell pretty solid, and only rolled about an inch.
  • Jim tried it again, and then another time, and it acted just the same.
  • Jim got down on his knees, and put his ear against it and listened.
  • But it warn't no use; he said it wouldn't talk. He said sometimes it
  • wouldn't talk without money. I told him I had an old slick counterfeit
  • quarter that warn't no good because the brass showed through the silver
  • a little, and it wouldn't pass nohow, even if the brass didn't show,
  • because it was so slick it felt greasy, and so that would tell on it
  • every time. (I reckoned I wouldn't say nothing about the dollar I got
  • from the judge.) I said it was pretty bad money, but maybe the hair-ball
  • would take it, because maybe it wouldn't know the difference. Jim smelt
  • it and bit it and rubbed it, and said he would manage so the hair-ball
  • would think it was good. He said he would split open a raw Irish potato
  • and stick the quarter in between and keep it there all night, and next
  • morning you couldn't see no brass, and it wouldn't feel greasy no more,
  • and so anybody in town would take it in a minute, let alone a hair-ball.
  • Well, I knowed a potato would do that before, but I had forgot it.
  • Jim put the quarter under the hair-ball, and got down and listened
  • again. This time he said the hair-ball was all right. He said it
  • would tell my whole fortune if I wanted it to. I says, go on. So the
  • hair-ball talked to Jim, and Jim told it to me. He says:
  • “Yo' ole father doan' know yit what he's a-gwyne to do. Sometimes he
  • spec he'll go 'way, en den agin he spec he'll stay. De bes' way is to
  • res' easy en let de ole man take his own way. Dey's two angels hoverin'
  • roun' 'bout him. One uv 'em is white en shiny, en t'other one is black.
  • De white one gits him to go right a little while, den de black one sail
  • in en bust it all up. A body can't tell yit which one gwyne to fetch
  • him at de las'. But you is all right. You gwyne to have considable
  • trouble in yo' life, en considable joy. Sometimes you gwyne to git
  • hurt, en sometimes you gwyne to git sick; but every time you's gwyne
  • to git well agin. Dey's two gals flyin' 'bout you in yo' life. One
  • uv 'em's light en t'other one is dark. One is rich en t'other is po'.
  • You's gwyne to marry de po' one fust en de rich one by en by. You
  • wants to keep 'way fum de water as much as you kin, en don't run no
  • resk, 'kase it's down in de bills dat you's gwyne to git hung.”
  • When I lit my candle and went up to my room that night there sat pap his
  • own self!
  • CHAPTER V.
  • I had shut the door to. Then I turned around and there he was. I used
  • to be scared of him all the time, he tanned me so much. I reckoned I
  • was scared now, too; but in a minute I see I was mistaken--that is, after
  • the first jolt, as you may say, when my breath sort of hitched, he being
  • so unexpected; but right away after I see I warn't scared of him worth
  • bothring about.
  • He was most fifty, and he looked it. His hair was long and tangled and
  • greasy, and hung down, and you could see his eyes shining through
  • like he was behind vines. It was all black, no gray; so was his long,
  • mixed-up whiskers. There warn't no color in his face, where his face
  • showed; it was white; not like another man's white, but a white to make
  • a body sick, a white to make a body's flesh crawl--a tree-toad white, a
  • fish-belly white. As for his clothes--just rags, that was all. He had
  • one ankle resting on t'other knee; the boot on that foot was busted, and
  • two of his toes stuck through, and he worked them now and then. His hat
  • was laying on the floor--an old black slouch with the top caved in, like
  • a lid.
  • I stood a-looking at him; he set there a-looking at me, with his chair
  • tilted back a little. I set the candle down. I noticed the window was
  • up; so he had clumb in by the shed. He kept a-looking me all over. By
  • and by he says:
  • “Starchy clothes--very. You think you're a good deal of a big-bug,
  • _don't_ you?”
  • “Maybe I am, maybe I ain't,” I says.
  • “Don't you give me none o' your lip,” says he. “You've put on
  • considerable many frills since I been away. I'll take you down a peg
  • before I get done with you. You're educated, too, they say--can read and
  • write. You think you're better'n your father, now, don't you, because
  • he can't? _I'll_ take it out of you. Who told you you might meddle
  • with such hifalut'n foolishness, hey?--who told you you could?”
  • “The widow. She told me.”
  • “The widow, hey?--and who told the widow she could put in her shovel
  • about a thing that ain't none of her business?”
  • “Nobody never told her.”
  • “Well, I'll learn her how to meddle. And looky here--you drop that
  • school, you hear? I'll learn people to bring up a boy to put on airs
  • over his own father and let on to be better'n what _he_ is. You lemme
  • catch you fooling around that school again, you hear? Your mother
  • couldn't read, and she couldn't write, nuther, before she died. None
  • of the family couldn't before _they_ died. I can't; and here you're
  • a-swelling yourself up like this. I ain't the man to stand it--you hear?
  • Say, lemme hear you read.”
  • I took up a book and begun something about General Washington and the
  • wars. When I'd read about a half a minute, he fetched the book a whack
  • with his hand and knocked it across the house. He says:
  • “It's so. You can do it. I had my doubts when you told me. Now looky
  • here; you stop that putting on frills. I won't have it. I'll lay for
  • you, my smarty; and if I catch you about that school I'll tan you good.
  • First you know you'll get religion, too. I never see such a son.”
  • He took up a little blue and yaller picture of some cows and a boy, and
  • says:
  • “What's this?”
  • “It's something they give me for learning my lessons good.”
  • He tore it up, and says:
  • “I'll give you something better--I'll give you a cowhide.”
  • He set there a-mumbling and a-growling a minute, and then he says:
  • “_Ain't_ you a sweet-scented dandy, though? A bed; and bedclothes; and
  • a look'n'-glass; and a piece of carpet on the floor--and your own father
  • got to sleep with the hogs in the tanyard. I never see such a son. I
  • bet I'll take some o' these frills out o' you before I'm done with you.
  • Why, there ain't no end to your airs--they say you're rich. Hey?--how's
  • that?”
  • “They lie--that's how.”
  • “Looky here--mind how you talk to me; I'm a-standing about all I can
  • stand now--so don't gimme no sass. I've been in town two days, and I
  • hain't heard nothing but about you bein' rich. I heard about it
  • away down the river, too. That's why I come. You git me that money
  • to-morrow--I want it.”
  • “I hain't got no money.”
  • “It's a lie. Judge Thatcher's got it. You git it. I want it.”
  • “I hain't got no money, I tell you. You ask Judge Thatcher; he'll tell
  • you the same.”
  • “All right. I'll ask him; and I'll make him pungle, too, or I'll know
  • the reason why. Say, how much you got in your pocket? I want it.”
  • “I hain't got only a dollar, and I want that to--”
  • “It don't make no difference what you want it for--you just shell it
  • out.”
  • He took it and bit it to see if it was good, and then he said he was
  • going down town to get some whisky; said he hadn't had a drink all day.
  • When he had got out on the shed he put his head in again, and cussed
  • me for putting on frills and trying to be better than him; and when I
  • reckoned he was gone he come back and put his head in again, and told me
  • to mind about that school, because he was going to lay for me and lick
  • me if I didn't drop that.
  • Next day he was drunk, and he went to Judge Thatcher's and bullyragged
  • him, and tried to make him give up the money; but he couldn't, and then
  • he swore he'd make the law force him.
  • The judge and the widow went to law to get the court to take me away
  • from him and let one of them be my guardian; but it was a new judge that
  • had just come, and he didn't know the old man; so he said courts mustn't
  • interfere and separate families if they could help it; said he'd druther
  • not take a child away from its father. So Judge Thatcher and the widow
  • had to quit on the business.
  • That pleased the old man till he couldn't rest. He said he'd cowhide
  • me till I was black and blue if I didn't raise some money for him. I
  • borrowed three dollars from Judge Thatcher, and pap took it and got
  • drunk, and went a-blowing around and cussing and whooping and carrying
  • on; and he kept it up all over town, with a tin pan, till most midnight;
  • then they jailed him, and next day they had him before court, and jailed
  • him again for a week. But he said _he_ was satisfied; said he was boss
  • of his son, and he'd make it warm for _him_.
  • When he got out the new judge said he was a-going to make a man of him.
  • So he took him to his own house, and dressed him up clean and nice, and
  • had him to breakfast and dinner and supper with the family, and was just
  • old pie to him, so to speak. And after supper he talked to him about
  • temperance and such things till the old man cried, and said he'd been
  • a fool, and fooled away his life; but now he was a-going to turn over
  • a new leaf and be a man nobody wouldn't be ashamed of, and he hoped the
  • judge would help him and not look down on him. The judge said he could
  • hug him for them words; so he cried, and his wife she cried again; pap
  • said he'd been a man that had always been misunderstood before, and the
  • judge said he believed it. The old man said that what a man wanted
  • that was down was sympathy, and the judge said it was so; so they cried
  • again. And when it was bedtime the old man rose up and held out his
  • hand, and says:
  • “Look at it, gentlemen and ladies all; take a-hold of it; shake it.
  • There's a hand that was the hand of a hog; but it ain't so no more; it's
  • the hand of a man that's started in on a new life, and'll die before
  • he'll go back. You mark them words--don't forget I said them. It's a
  • clean hand now; shake it--don't be afeard.”
  • So they shook it, one after the other, all around, and cried. The
  • judge's wife she kissed it. Then the old man he signed a pledge--made
  • his mark. The judge said it was the holiest time on record, or something
  • like that. Then they tucked the old man into a beautiful room, which was
  • the spare room, and in the night some time he got powerful thirsty and
  • clumb out on to the porch-roof and slid down a stanchion and traded his
  • new coat for a jug of forty-rod, and clumb back again and had a good old
  • time; and towards daylight he crawled out again, drunk as a fiddler, and
  • rolled off the porch and broke his left arm in two places, and was most
  • froze to death when somebody found him after sun-up. And when they come
  • to look at that spare room they had to take soundings before they could
  • navigate it.
  • The judge he felt kind of sore. He said he reckoned a body could reform
  • the old man with a shotgun, maybe, but he didn't know no other way.
  • CHAPTER VI.
  • WELL, pretty soon the old man was up and around again, and then he went
  • for Judge Thatcher in the courts to make him give up that money, and he
  • went for me, too, for not stopping school. He catched me a couple of
  • times and thrashed me, but I went to school just the same, and dodged
  • him or outrun him most of the time. I didn't want to go to school much
  • before, but I reckoned I'd go now to spite pap. That law trial was a
  • slow business--appeared like they warn't ever going to get started on it;
  • so every now and then I'd borrow two or three dollars off of the judge
  • for him, to keep from getting a cowhiding. Every time he got money he
  • got drunk; and every time he got drunk he raised Cain around town; and
  • every time he raised Cain he got jailed. He was just suited--this kind
  • of thing was right in his line.
  • He got to hanging around the widow's too much and so she told him at
  • last that if he didn't quit using around there she would make trouble
  • for him. Well, _wasn't_ he mad? He said he would show who was Huck
  • Finn's boss. So he watched out for me one day in the spring, and
  • catched me, and took me up the river about three mile in a skiff, and
  • crossed over to the Illinois shore where it was woody and there warn't
  • no houses but an old log hut in a place where the timber was so thick
  • you couldn't find it if you didn't know where it was.
  • He kept me with him all the time, and I never got a chance to run off.
  • We lived in that old cabin, and he always locked the door and put the
  • key under his head nights. He had a gun which he had stole, I reckon,
  • and we fished and hunted, and that was what we lived on. Every little
  • while he locked me in and went down to the store, three miles, to the
  • ferry, and traded fish and game for whisky, and fetched it home and got
  • drunk and had a good time, and licked me. The widow she found out where
  • I was by and by, and she sent a man over to try to get hold of me; but
  • pap drove him off with the gun, and it warn't long after that till I was
  • used to being where I was, and liked it--all but the cowhide part.
  • It was kind of lazy and jolly, laying off comfortable all day, smoking
  • and fishing, and no books nor study. Two months or more run along, and
  • my clothes got to be all rags and dirt, and I didn't see how I'd ever
  • got to like it so well at the widow's, where you had to wash, and eat on
  • a plate, and comb up, and go to bed and get up regular, and be forever
  • bothering over a book, and have old Miss Watson pecking at you all the
  • time. I didn't want to go back no more. I had stopped cussing, because
  • the widow didn't like it; but now I took to it again because pap hadn't
  • no objections. It was pretty good times up in the woods there, take it
  • all around.
  • But by and by pap got too handy with his hick'ry, and I couldn't stand
  • it. I was all over welts. He got to going away so much, too, and
  • locking me in. Once he locked me in and was gone three days. It was
  • dreadful lonesome. I judged he had got drownded, and I wasn't ever
  • going to get out any more. I was scared. I made up my mind I would fix
  • up some way to leave there. I had tried to get out of that cabin many
  • a time, but I couldn't find no way. There warn't a window to it big
  • enough for a dog to get through. I couldn't get up the chimbly; it
  • was too narrow. The door was thick, solid oak slabs. Pap was pretty
  • careful not to leave a knife or anything in the cabin when he was away;
  • I reckon I had hunted the place over as much as a hundred times; well, I
  • was most all the time at it, because it was about the only way to put in
  • the time. But this time I found something at last; I found an old rusty
  • wood-saw without any handle; it was laid in between a rafter and the
  • clapboards of the roof. I greased it up and went to work. There was an
  • old horse-blanket nailed against the logs at the far end of the cabin
  • behind the table, to keep the wind from blowing through the chinks and
  • putting the candle out. I got under the table and raised the blanket,
  • and went to work to saw a section of the big bottom log out--big enough
  • to let me through. Well, it was a good long job, but I was getting
  • towards the end of it when I heard pap's gun in the woods. I got rid of
  • the signs of my work, and dropped the blanket and hid my saw, and pretty
  • soon pap come in.
  • Pap warn't in a good humor--so he was his natural self. He said he was
  • down town, and everything was going wrong. His lawyer said he reckoned
  • he would win his lawsuit and get the money if they ever got started on
  • the trial; but then there was ways to put it off a long time, and Judge
  • Thatcher knowed how to do it. And he said people allowed there'd be
  • another trial to get me away from him and give me to the widow for my
  • guardian, and they guessed it would win this time. This shook me up
  • considerable, because I didn't want to go back to the widow's any more
  • and be so cramped up and sivilized, as they called it. Then the old man
  • got to cussing, and cussed everything and everybody he could think of,
  • and then cussed them all over again to make sure he hadn't skipped any,
  • and after that he polished off with a kind of a general cuss all round,
  • including a considerable parcel of people which he didn't know the names
  • of, and so called them what's-his-name when he got to them, and went
  • right along with his cussing.
  • He said he would like to see the widow get me. He said he would watch
  • out, and if they tried to come any such game on him he knowed of a place
  • six or seven mile off to stow me in, where they might hunt till they
  • dropped and they couldn't find me. That made me pretty uneasy again,
  • but only for a minute; I reckoned I wouldn't stay on hand till he got
  • that chance.
  • The old man made me go to the skiff and fetch the things he had
  • got. There was a fifty-pound sack of corn meal, and a side of bacon,
  • ammunition, and a four-gallon jug of whisky, and an old book and two
  • newspapers for wadding, besides some tow. I toted up a load, and went
  • back and set down on the bow of the skiff to rest. I thought it all
  • over, and I reckoned I would walk off with the gun and some lines, and
  • take to the woods when I run away. I guessed I wouldn't stay in one
  • place, but just tramp right across the country, mostly night times, and
  • hunt and fish to keep alive, and so get so far away that the old man nor
  • the widow couldn't ever find me any more. I judged I would saw out and
  • leave that night if pap got drunk enough, and I reckoned he would. I
  • got so full of it I didn't notice how long I was staying till the old
  • man hollered and asked me whether I was asleep or drownded.
  • I got the things all up to the cabin, and then it was about dark. While
  • I was cooking supper the old man took a swig or two and got sort of
  • warmed up, and went to ripping again. He had been drunk over in town,
  • and laid in the gutter all night, and he was a sight to look at. A body
  • would a thought he was Adam--he was just all mud. Whenever his liquor
  • begun to work he most always went for the govment, this time he says:
  • “Call this a govment! why, just look at it and see what it's like.
  • Here's the law a-standing ready to take a man's son away from him--a
  • man's own son, which he has had all the trouble and all the anxiety
  • and all the expense of raising. Yes, just as that man has got that
  • son raised at last, and ready to go to work and begin to do suthin' for
  • _him_ and give him a rest, the law up and goes for him. And they call
  • _that_ govment! That ain't all, nuther. The law backs that old Judge
  • Thatcher up and helps him to keep me out o' my property. Here's what
  • the law does: The law takes a man worth six thousand dollars and
  • up'ards, and jams him into an old trap of a cabin like this, and lets
  • him go round in clothes that ain't fitten for a hog. They call that
  • govment! A man can't get his rights in a govment like this. Sometimes
  • I've a mighty notion to just leave the country for good and all. Yes,
  • and I _told_ 'em so; I told old Thatcher so to his face. Lots of 'em
  • heard me, and can tell what I said. Says I, for two cents I'd leave the
  • blamed country and never come a-near it agin. Them's the very words. I
  • says look at my hat--if you call it a hat--but the lid raises up and the
  • rest of it goes down till it's below my chin, and then it ain't rightly
  • a hat at all, but more like my head was shoved up through a jint o'
  • stove-pipe. Look at it, says I--such a hat for me to wear--one of the
  • wealthiest men in this town if I could git my rights.
  • “Oh, yes, this is a wonderful govment, wonderful. Why, looky here.
  • There was a free nigger there from Ohio--a mulatter, most as white as
  • a white man. He had the whitest shirt on you ever see, too, and the
  • shiniest hat; and there ain't a man in that town that's got as fine
  • clothes as what he had; and he had a gold watch and chain, and a
  • silver-headed cane--the awfulest old gray-headed nabob in the State. And
  • what do you think? They said he was a p'fessor in a college, and could
  • talk all kinds of languages, and knowed everything. And that ain't the
  • wust. They said he could _vote_ when he was at home. Well, that let me
  • out. Thinks I, what is the country a-coming to? It was 'lection day,
  • and I was just about to go and vote myself if I warn't too drunk to get
  • there; but when they told me there was a State in this country where
  • they'd let that nigger vote, I drawed out. I says I'll never vote agin.
  • Them's the very words I said; they all heard me; and the country may
  • rot for all me--I'll never vote agin as long as I live. And to see the
  • cool way of that nigger--why, he wouldn't a give me the road if I hadn't
  • shoved him out o' the way. I says to the people, why ain't this nigger
  • put up at auction and sold?--that's what I want to know. And what do you
  • reckon they said? Why, they said he couldn't be sold till he'd been in
  • the State six months, and he hadn't been there that long yet. There,
  • now--that's a specimen. They call that a govment that can't sell a free
  • nigger till he's been in the State six months. Here's a govment that
  • calls itself a govment, and lets on to be a govment, and thinks it is a
  • govment, and yet's got to set stock-still for six whole months before
  • it can take a hold of a prowling, thieving, infernal, white-shirted free
  • nigger, and--”
  • Pap was agoing on so he never noticed where his old limber legs was
  • taking him to, so he went head over heels over the tub of salt pork and
  • barked both shins, and the rest of his speech was all the hottest kind
  • of language--mostly hove at the nigger and the govment, though he give
  • the tub some, too, all along, here and there. He hopped around the
  • cabin considerable, first on one leg and then on the other, holding
  • first one shin and then the other one, and at last he let out with his
  • left foot all of a sudden and fetched the tub a rattling kick. But it
  • warn't good judgment, because that was the boot that had a couple of his
  • toes leaking out of the front end of it; so now he raised a howl that
  • fairly made a body's hair raise, and down he went in the dirt, and
  • rolled there, and held his toes; and the cussing he done then laid over
  • anything he had ever done previous. He said so his own self afterwards.
  • He had heard old Sowberry Hagan in his best days, and he said it laid
  • over him, too; but I reckon that was sort of piling it on, maybe.
  • After supper pap took the jug, and said he had enough whisky there
  • for two drunks and one delirium tremens. That was always his word. I
  • judged he would be blind drunk in about an hour, and then I would steal
  • the key, or saw myself out, one or t'other. He drank and drank, and
  • tumbled down on his blankets by and by; but luck didn't run my way.
  • He didn't go sound asleep, but was uneasy. He groaned and moaned and
  • thrashed around this way and that for a long time. At last I got so
  • sleepy I couldn't keep my eyes open all I could do, and so before I
  • knowed what I was about I was sound asleep, and the candle burning.
  • I don't know how long I was asleep, but all of a sudden there was an
  • awful scream and I was up. There was pap looking wild, and skipping
  • around every which way and yelling about snakes. He said they was
  • crawling up his legs; and then he would give a jump and scream, and say
  • one had bit him on the cheek--but I couldn't see no snakes. He started
  • and run round and round the cabin, hollering “Take him off! take him
  • off! he's biting me on the neck!” I never see a man look so wild in the
  • eyes. Pretty soon he was all fagged out, and fell down panting; then he
  • rolled over and over wonderful fast, kicking things every which way,
  • and striking and grabbing at the air with his hands, and screaming and
  • saying there was devils a-hold of him. He wore out by and by, and laid
  • still a while, moaning. Then he laid stiller, and didn't make a sound.
  • I could hear the owls and the wolves away off in the woods, and it
  • seemed terrible still. He was laying over by the corner. By and by he
  • raised up part way and listened, with his head to one side. He says,
  • very low:
  • “Tramp--tramp--tramp; that's the dead; tramp--tramp--tramp; they're coming
  • after me; but I won't go. Oh, they're here! don't touch me--don't! hands
  • off--they're cold; let go. Oh, let a poor devil alone!”
  • Then he went down on all fours and crawled off, begging them to let him
  • alone, and he rolled himself up in his blanket and wallowed in under the
  • old pine table, still a-begging; and then he went to crying. I could
  • hear him through the blanket.
  • By and by he rolled out and jumped up on his feet looking wild, and he
  • see me and went for me. He chased me round and round the place with a
  • clasp-knife, calling me the Angel of Death, and saying he would kill me,
  • and then I couldn't come for him no more. I begged, and told him I
  • was only Huck; but he laughed _such_ a screechy laugh, and roared and
  • cussed, and kept on chasing me up. Once when I turned short and
  • dodged under his arm he made a grab and got me by the jacket between my
  • shoulders, and I thought I was gone; but I slid out of the jacket quick
  • as lightning, and saved myself. Pretty soon he was all tired out, and
  • dropped down with his back against the door, and said he would rest a
  • minute and then kill me. He put his knife under him, and said he would
  • sleep and get strong, and then he would see who was who.
  • So he dozed off pretty soon. By and by I got the old split-bottom chair
  • and clumb up as easy as I could, not to make any noise, and got down the
  • gun. I slipped the ramrod down it to make sure it was loaded, then I
  • laid it across the turnip barrel, pointing towards pap, and set down
  • behind it to wait for him to stir. And how slow and still the time did
  • drag along.
  • CHAPTER VII.
  • “GIT up! What you 'bout?”
  • I opened my eyes and looked around, trying to make out where I was. It
  • was after sun-up, and I had been sound asleep. Pap was standing over me
  • looking sour and sick, too. He says:
  • “What you doin' with this gun?”
  • I judged he didn't know nothing about what he had been doing, so I says:
  • “Somebody tried to get in, so I was laying for him.”
  • “Why didn't you roust me out?”
  • “Well, I tried to, but I couldn't; I couldn't budge you.”
  • “Well, all right. Don't stand there palavering all day, but out with
  • you and see if there's a fish on the lines for breakfast. I'll be along
  • in a minute.”
  • He unlocked the door, and I cleared out up the river-bank. I noticed
  • some pieces of limbs and such things floating down, and a sprinkling of
  • bark; so I knowed the river had begun to rise. I reckoned I would have
  • great times now if I was over at the town. The June rise used to be
  • always luck for me; because as soon as that rise begins here comes
  • cordwood floating down, and pieces of log rafts--sometimes a dozen logs
  • together; so all you have to do is to catch them and sell them to the
  • wood-yards and the sawmill.
  • I went along up the bank with one eye out for pap and t'other one out
  • for what the rise might fetch along. Well, all at once here comes a
  • canoe; just a beauty, too, about thirteen or fourteen foot long, riding
  • high like a duck. I shot head-first off of the bank like a frog,
  • clothes and all on, and struck out for the canoe. I just expected
  • there'd be somebody laying down in it, because people often done that
  • to fool folks, and when a chap had pulled a skiff out most to it they'd
  • raise up and laugh at him. But it warn't so this time. It was a
  • drift-canoe sure enough, and I clumb in and paddled her ashore. Thinks
  • I, the old man will be glad when he sees this--she's worth ten dollars.
  • But when I got to shore pap wasn't in sight yet, and as I was running
  • her into a little creek like a gully, all hung over with vines and
  • willows, I struck another idea: I judged I'd hide her good, and then,
  • 'stead of taking to the woods when I run off, I'd go down the river
  • about fifty mile and camp in one place for good, and not have such a
  • rough time tramping on foot.
  • It was pretty close to the shanty, and I thought I heard the old man
  • coming all the time; but I got her hid; and then I out and looked around
  • a bunch of willows, and there was the old man down the path a piece just
  • drawing a bead on a bird with his gun. So he hadn't seen anything.
  • When he got along I was hard at it taking up a “trot” line. He abused
  • me a little for being so slow; but I told him I fell in the river, and
  • that was what made me so long. I knowed he would see I was wet, and
  • then he would be asking questions. We got five catfish off the lines
  • and went home.
  • While we laid off after breakfast to sleep up, both of us being about
  • wore out, I got to thinking that if I could fix up some way to keep pap
  • and the widow from trying to follow me, it would be a certainer thing
  • than trusting to luck to get far enough off before they missed me; you
  • see, all kinds of things might happen. Well, I didn't see no way for a
  • while, but by and by pap raised up a minute to drink another barrel of
  • water, and he says:
  • “Another time a man comes a-prowling round here you roust me out, you
  • hear? That man warn't here for no good. I'd a shot him. Next time you
  • roust me out, you hear?”
  • Then he dropped down and went to sleep again; but what he had been
  • saying give me the very idea I wanted. I says to myself, I can fix it
  • now so nobody won't think of following me.
  • About twelve o'clock we turned out and went along up the bank. The
  • river was coming up pretty fast, and lots of driftwood going by on the
  • rise. By and by along comes part of a log raft--nine logs fast together.
  • We went out with the skiff and towed it ashore. Then we had dinner.
  • Anybody but pap would a waited and seen the day through, so as to catch
  • more stuff; but that warn't pap's style. Nine logs was enough for one
  • time; he must shove right over to town and sell. So he locked me in and
  • took the skiff, and started off towing the raft about half-past three.
  • I judged he wouldn't come back that night. I waited till I reckoned he
  • had got a good start; then I out with my saw, and went to work on that
  • log again. Before he was t'other side of the river I was out of the
  • hole; him and his raft was just a speck on the water away off yonder.
  • I took the sack of corn meal and took it to where the canoe was hid, and
  • shoved the vines and branches apart and put it in; then I done the same
  • with the side of bacon; then the whisky-jug. I took all the coffee and
  • sugar there was, and all the ammunition; I took the wadding; I took the
  • bucket and gourd; I took a dipper and a tin cup, and my old saw and two
  • blankets, and the skillet and the coffee-pot. I took fish-lines and
  • matches and other things--everything that was worth a cent. I cleaned
  • out the place. I wanted an axe, but there wasn't any, only the one out
  • at the woodpile, and I knowed why I was going to leave that. I fetched
  • out the gun, and now I was done.
  • I had wore the ground a good deal crawling out of the hole and dragging
  • out so many things. So I fixed that as good as I could from the outside
  • by scattering dust on the place, which covered up the smoothness and the
  • sawdust. Then I fixed the piece of log back into its place, and put two
  • rocks under it and one against it to hold it there, for it was bent up
  • at that place and didn't quite touch ground. If you stood four or five
  • foot away and didn't know it was sawed, you wouldn't never notice
  • it; and besides, this was the back of the cabin, and it warn't likely
  • anybody would go fooling around there.
  • It was all grass clear to the canoe, so I hadn't left a track. I
  • followed around to see. I stood on the bank and looked out over the
  • river. All safe. So I took the gun and went up a piece into the woods,
  • and was hunting around for some birds when I see a wild pig; hogs soon
  • went wild in them bottoms after they had got away from the prairie
  • farms. I shot this fellow and took him into camp.
  • I took the axe and smashed in the door. I beat it and hacked it
  • considerable a-doing it. I fetched the pig in, and took him back nearly
  • to the table and hacked into his throat with the axe, and laid him down
  • on the ground to bleed; I say ground because it was ground--hard packed,
  • and no boards. Well, next I took an old sack and put a lot of big rocks
  • in it--all I could drag--and I started it from the pig, and dragged it to
  • the door and through the woods down to the river and dumped it in, and
  • down it sunk, out of sight. You could easy see that something had been
  • dragged over the ground. I did wish Tom Sawyer was there; I knowed he
  • would take an interest in this kind of business, and throw in the fancy
  • touches. Nobody could spread himself like Tom Sawyer in such a thing as
  • that.
  • Well, last I pulled out some of my hair, and blooded the axe good, and
  • stuck it on the back side, and slung the axe in the corner. Then I
  • took up the pig and held him to my breast with my jacket (so he couldn't
  • drip) till I got a good piece below the house and then dumped him into
  • the river. Now I thought of something else. So I went and got the bag
  • of meal and my old saw out of the canoe, and fetched them to the house.
  • I took the bag to where it used to stand, and ripped a hole in the
  • bottom of it with the saw, for there warn't no knives and forks on the
  • place--pap done everything with his clasp-knife about the cooking. Then
  • I carried the sack about a hundred yards across the grass and through
  • the willows east of the house, to a shallow lake that was five mile wide
  • and full of rushes--and ducks too, you might say, in the season. There
  • was a slough or a creek leading out of it on the other side that went
  • miles away, I don't know where, but it didn't go to the river. The meal
  • sifted out and made a little track all the way to the lake. I dropped
  • pap's whetstone there too, so as to look like it had been done by
  • accident. Then I tied up the rip in the meal sack with a string, so it
  • wouldn't leak no more, and took it and my saw to the canoe again.
  • It was about dark now; so I dropped the canoe down the river under some
  • willows that hung over the bank, and waited for the moon to rise. I
  • made fast to a willow; then I took a bite to eat, and by and by laid
  • down in the canoe to smoke a pipe and lay out a plan. I says to myself,
  • they'll follow the track of that sackful of rocks to the shore and then
  • drag the river for me. And they'll follow that meal track to the lake
  • and go browsing down the creek that leads out of it to find the robbers
  • that killed me and took the things. They won't ever hunt the river for
  • anything but my dead carcass. They'll soon get tired of that, and won't
  • bother no more about me. All right; I can stop anywhere I want to.
  • Jackson's Island is good enough for me; I know that island pretty well,
  • and nobody ever comes there. And then I can paddle over to town nights,
  • and slink around and pick up things I want. Jackson's Island's the
  • place.
  • I was pretty tired, and the first thing I knowed I was asleep. When
  • I woke up I didn't know where I was for a minute. I set up and looked
  • around, a little scared. Then I remembered. The river looked miles and
  • miles across. The moon was so bright I could a counted the drift logs
  • that went a-slipping along, black and still, hundreds of yards out from
  • shore. Everything was dead quiet, and it looked late, and _smelt_ late.
  • You know what I mean--I don't know the words to put it in.
  • I took a good gap and a stretch, and was just going to unhitch and start
  • when I heard a sound away over the water. I listened. Pretty soon I
  • made it out. It was that dull kind of a regular sound that comes from
  • oars working in rowlocks when it's a still night. I peeped out through
  • the willow branches, and there it was--a skiff, away across the water.
  • I couldn't tell how many was in it. It kept a-coming, and when it was
  • abreast of me I see there warn't but one man in it. Think's I, maybe
  • it's pap, though I warn't expecting him. He dropped below me with the
  • current, and by and by he came a-swinging up shore in the easy water,
  • and he went by so close I could a reached out the gun and touched him.
  • Well, it _was_ pap, sure enough--and sober, too, by the way he laid his
  • oars.
  • I didn't lose no time. The next minute I was a-spinning down stream
  • soft but quick in the shade of the bank. I made two mile and a half,
  • and then struck out a quarter of a mile or more towards the middle of
  • the river, because pretty soon I would be passing the ferry landing, and
  • people might see me and hail me. I got out amongst the driftwood, and
  • then laid down in the bottom of the canoe and let her float.
  • I laid there, and had a good rest and a smoke out of my pipe, looking
  • away into the sky; not a cloud in it. The sky looks ever so deep when
  • you lay down on your back in the moonshine; I never knowed it before.
  • And how far a body can hear on the water such nights! I heard people
  • talking at the ferry landing. I heard what they said, too--every word
  • of it. One man said it was getting towards the long days and the short
  • nights now. T'other one said _this_ warn't one of the short ones, he
  • reckoned--and then they laughed, and he said it over again, and they
  • laughed again; then they waked up another fellow and told him, and
  • laughed, but he didn't laugh; he ripped out something brisk, and said
  • let him alone. The first fellow said he 'lowed to tell it to his
  • old woman--she would think it was pretty good; but he said that warn't
  • nothing to some things he had said in his time. I heard one man say it
  • was nearly three o'clock, and he hoped daylight wouldn't wait more than
  • about a week longer. After that the talk got further and further away,
  • and I couldn't make out the words any more; but I could hear the mumble,
  • and now and then a laugh, too, but it seemed a long ways off.
  • I was away below the ferry now. I rose up, and there was Jackson's
  • Island, about two mile and a half down stream, heavy timbered and
  • standing up out of the middle of the river, big and dark and solid, like
  • a steamboat without any lights. There warn't any signs of the bar at
  • the head--it was all under water now.
  • It didn't take me long to get there. I shot past the head at a ripping
  • rate, the current was so swift, and then I got into the dead water and
  • landed on the side towards the Illinois shore. I run the canoe into
  • a deep dent in the bank that I knowed about; I had to part the willow
  • branches to get in; and when I made fast nobody could a seen the canoe
  • from the outside.
  • I went up and set down on a log at the head of the island, and looked
  • out on the big river and the black driftwood and away over to the town,
  • three mile away, where there was three or four lights twinkling. A
  • monstrous big lumber-raft was about a mile up stream, coming along down,
  • with a lantern in the middle of it. I watched it come creeping down,
  • and when it was most abreast of where I stood I heard a man say, “Stern
  • oars, there! heave her head to stabboard!” I heard that just as plain
  • as if the man was by my side.
  • There was a little gray in the sky now; so I stepped into the woods, and
  • laid down for a nap before breakfast.
  • CHAPTER VIII.
  • THE sun was up so high when I waked that I judged it was after eight
  • o'clock. I laid there in the grass and the cool shade thinking about
  • things, and feeling rested and ruther comfortable and satisfied. I
  • could see the sun out at one or two holes, but mostly it was big trees
  • all about, and gloomy in there amongst them. There was freckled places
  • on the ground where the light sifted down through the leaves, and the
  • freckled places swapped about a little, showing there was a little
  • breeze up there. A couple of squirrels set on a limb and jabbered at me
  • very friendly.
  • I was powerful lazy and comfortable--didn't want to get up and cook
  • breakfast. Well, I was dozing off again when I thinks I hears a deep
  • sound of “boom!” away up the river. I rouses up, and rests on my elbow
  • and listens; pretty soon I hears it again. I hopped up, and went and
  • looked out at a hole in the leaves, and I see a bunch of smoke laying
  • on the water a long ways up--about abreast the ferry. And there was the
  • ferryboat full of people floating along down. I knowed what was the
  • matter now. “Boom!” I see the white smoke squirt out of the ferryboat's
  • side. You see, they was firing cannon over the water, trying to make my
  • carcass come to the top.
  • I was pretty hungry, but it warn't going to do for me to start a fire,
  • because they might see the smoke. So I set there and watched the
  • cannon-smoke and listened to the boom. The river was a mile wide there,
  • and it always looks pretty on a summer morning--so I was having a good
  • enough time seeing them hunt for my remainders if I only had a bite to
  • eat. Well, then I happened to think how they always put quicksilver in
  • loaves of bread and float them off, because they always go right to the
  • drownded carcass and stop there. So, says I, I'll keep a lookout, and
  • if any of them's floating around after me I'll give them a show. I
  • changed to the Illinois edge of the island to see what luck I could
  • have, and I warn't disappointed. A big double loaf come along, and I
  • most got it with a long stick, but my foot slipped and she floated out
  • further. Of course I was where the current set in the closest to the
  • shore--I knowed enough for that. But by and by along comes another one,
  • and this time I won. I took out the plug and shook out the little dab
  • of quicksilver, and set my teeth in. It was “baker's bread”--what the
  • quality eat; none of your low-down corn-pone.
  • I got a good place amongst the leaves, and set there on a log, munching
  • the bread and watching the ferry-boat, and very well satisfied. And
  • then something struck me. I says, now I reckon the widow or the parson
  • or somebody prayed that this bread would find me, and here it has gone
  • and done it. So there ain't no doubt but there is something in that
  • thing--that is, there's something in it when a body like the widow or the
  • parson prays, but it don't work for me, and I reckon it don't work for
  • only just the right kind.
  • I lit a pipe and had a good long smoke, and went on watching. The
  • ferryboat was floating with the current, and I allowed I'd have a chance
  • to see who was aboard when she come along, because she would come in
  • close, where the bread did. When she'd got pretty well along down
  • towards me, I put out my pipe and went to where I fished out the bread,
  • and laid down behind a log on the bank in a little open place. Where
  • the log forked I could peep through.
  • By and by she come along, and she drifted in so close that they could
  • a run out a plank and walked ashore. Most everybody was on the boat.
  • Pap, and Judge Thatcher, and Bessie Thatcher, and Jo Harper, and Tom
  • Sawyer, and his old Aunt Polly, and Sid and Mary, and plenty more.
  • Everybody was talking about the murder, but the captain broke in and
  • says:
  • “Look sharp, now; the current sets in the closest here, and maybe he's
  • washed ashore and got tangled amongst the brush at the water's edge. I
  • hope so, anyway.”
  • I didn't hope so. They all crowded up and leaned over the rails, nearly
  • in my face, and kept still, watching with all their might. I could see
  • them first-rate, but they couldn't see me. Then the captain sung out:
  • “Stand away!” and the cannon let off such a blast right before me that
  • it made me deef with the noise and pretty near blind with the smoke, and
  • I judged I was gone. If they'd a had some bullets in, I reckon they'd
  • a got the corpse they was after. Well, I see I warn't hurt, thanks to
  • goodness. The boat floated on and went out of sight around the shoulder
  • of the island. I could hear the booming now and then, further and
  • further off, and by and by, after an hour, I didn't hear it no more.
  • The island was three mile long. I judged they had got to the foot, and
  • was giving it up. But they didn't yet a while. They turned around
  • the foot of the island and started up the channel on the Missouri side,
  • under steam, and booming once in a while as they went. I crossed over
  • to that side and watched them. When they got abreast the head of the
  • island they quit shooting and dropped over to the Missouri shore and
  • went home to the town.
  • I knowed I was all right now. Nobody else would come a-hunting after
  • me. I got my traps out of the canoe and made me a nice camp in the thick
  • woods. I made a kind of a tent out of my blankets to put my things
  • under so the rain couldn't get at them. I catched a catfish and haggled
  • him open with my saw, and towards sundown I started my camp fire and had
  • supper. Then I set out a line to catch some fish for breakfast.
  • When it was dark I set by my camp fire smoking, and feeling pretty well
  • satisfied; but by and by it got sort of lonesome, and so I went and set
  • on the bank and listened to the current swashing along, and counted the
  • stars and drift logs and rafts that come down, and then went to bed;
  • there ain't no better way to put in time when you are lonesome; you
  • can't stay so, you soon get over it.
  • And so for three days and nights. No difference--just the same thing.
  • But the next day I went exploring around down through the island. I was
  • boss of it; it all belonged to me, so to say, and I wanted to know
  • all about it; but mainly I wanted to put in the time. I found plenty
  • strawberries, ripe and prime; and green summer grapes, and green
  • razberries; and the green blackberries was just beginning to show. They
  • would all come handy by and by, I judged.
  • Well, I went fooling along in the deep woods till I judged I warn't
  • far from the foot of the island. I had my gun along, but I hadn't shot
  • nothing; it was for protection; thought I would kill some game nigh
  • home. About this time I mighty near stepped on a good-sized snake,
  • and it went sliding off through the grass and flowers, and I after
  • it, trying to get a shot at it. I clipped along, and all of a sudden I
  • bounded right on to the ashes of a camp fire that was still smoking.
  • My heart jumped up amongst my lungs. I never waited for to look
  • further, but uncocked my gun and went sneaking back on my tiptoes as
  • fast as ever I could. Every now and then I stopped a second amongst the
  • thick leaves and listened, but my breath come so hard I couldn't hear
  • nothing else. I slunk along another piece further, then listened again;
  • and so on, and so on. If I see a stump, I took it for a man; if I trod
  • on a stick and broke it, it made me feel like a person had cut one of my
  • breaths in two and I only got half, and the short half, too.
  • When I got to camp I warn't feeling very brash, there warn't much sand
  • in my craw; but I says, this ain't no time to be fooling around. So I
  • got all my traps into my canoe again so as to have them out of sight,
  • and I put out the fire and scattered the ashes around to look like an
  • old last year's camp, and then clumb a tree.
  • I reckon I was up in the tree two hours; but I didn't see nothing,
  • I didn't hear nothing--I only _thought_ I heard and seen as much as a
  • thousand things. Well, I couldn't stay up there forever; so at last I
  • got down, but I kept in the thick woods and on the lookout all the
  • time. All I could get to eat was berries and what was left over from
  • breakfast.
  • By the time it was night I was pretty hungry. So when it was good
  • and dark I slid out from shore before moonrise and paddled over to the
  • Illinois bank--about a quarter of a mile. I went out in the woods and
  • cooked a supper, and I had about made up my mind I would stay there
  • all night when I hear a _plunkety-plunk, plunkety-plunk_, and says
  • to myself, horses coming; and next I hear people's voices. I got
  • everything into the canoe as quick as I could, and then went creeping
  • through the woods to see what I could find out. I hadn't got far when I
  • hear a man say:
  • “We better camp here if we can find a good place; the horses is about
  • beat out. Let's look around.”
  • I didn't wait, but shoved out and paddled away easy. I tied up in the
  • old place, and reckoned I would sleep in the canoe.
  • I didn't sleep much. I couldn't, somehow, for thinking. And every time
  • I waked up I thought somebody had me by the neck. So the sleep didn't
  • do me no good. By and by I says to myself, I can't live this way; I'm
  • a-going to find out who it is that's here on the island with me; I'll
  • find it out or bust. Well, I felt better right off.
  • So I took my paddle and slid out from shore just a step or two, and
  • then let the canoe drop along down amongst the shadows. The moon was
  • shining, and outside of the shadows it made it most as light as day.
  • I poked along well on to an hour, everything still as rocks and sound
  • asleep. Well, by this time I was most down to the foot of the island. A
  • little ripply, cool breeze begun to blow, and that was as good as saying
  • the night was about done. I give her a turn with the paddle and brung
  • her nose to shore; then I got my gun and slipped out and into the edge
  • of the woods. I sat down there on a log, and looked out through the
  • leaves. I see the moon go off watch, and the darkness begin to blanket
  • the river. But in a little while I see a pale streak over the treetops,
  • and knowed the day was coming. So I took my gun and slipped off towards
  • where I had run across that camp fire, stopping every minute or two
  • to listen. But I hadn't no luck somehow; I couldn't seem to find the
  • place. But by and by, sure enough, I catched a glimpse of fire away
  • through the trees. I went for it, cautious and slow. By and by I was
  • close enough to have a look, and there laid a man on the ground. It
  • most give me the fan-tods. He had a blanket around his head, and his
  • head was nearly in the fire. I set there behind a clump of bushes, in
  • about six foot of him, and kept my eyes on him steady. It was getting
  • gray daylight now. Pretty soon he gapped and stretched himself and hove
  • off the blanket, and it was Miss Watson's Jim! I bet I was glad to see
  • him. I says:
  • “Hello, Jim!” and skipped out.
  • He bounced up and stared at me wild. Then he drops down on his knees,
  • and puts his hands together and says:
  • “Doan' hurt me--don't! I hain't ever done no harm to a ghos'. I alwuz
  • liked dead people, en done all I could for 'em. You go en git in de
  • river agin, whah you b'longs, en doan' do nuffn to Ole Jim, 'at 'uz
  • awluz yo' fren'.”
  • Well, I warn't long making him understand I warn't dead. I was ever so
  • glad to see Jim. I warn't lonesome now. I told him I warn't afraid of
  • _him_ telling the people where I was. I talked along, but he only set
  • there and looked at me; never said nothing. Then I says:
  • “It's good daylight. Le's get breakfast. Make up your camp fire good.”
  • “What's de use er makin' up de camp fire to cook strawbries en sich
  • truck? But you got a gun, hain't you? Den we kin git sumfn better den
  • strawbries.”
  • “Strawberries and such truck,” I says. “Is that what you live on?”
  • “I couldn' git nuffn else,” he says.
  • “Why, how long you been on the island, Jim?”
  • “I come heah de night arter you's killed.”
  • “What, all that time?”
  • “Yes--indeedy.”
  • “And ain't you had nothing but that kind of rubbage to eat?”
  • “No, sah--nuffn else.”
  • “Well, you must be most starved, ain't you?”
  • “I reck'n I could eat a hoss. I think I could. How long you ben on de
  • islan'?”
  • “Since the night I got killed.”
  • “No! W'y, what has you lived on? But you got a gun. Oh, yes, you got
  • a gun. Dat's good. Now you kill sumfn en I'll make up de fire.”
  • So we went over to where the canoe was, and while he built a fire in
  • a grassy open place amongst the trees, I fetched meal and bacon and
  • coffee, and coffee-pot and frying-pan, and sugar and tin cups, and the
  • nigger was set back considerable, because he reckoned it was all done
  • with witchcraft. I catched a good big catfish, too, and Jim cleaned him
  • with his knife, and fried him.
  • When breakfast was ready we lolled on the grass and eat it smoking hot.
  • Jim laid it in with all his might, for he was most about starved. Then
  • when we had got pretty well stuffed, we laid off and lazied. By and by
  • Jim says:
  • “But looky here, Huck, who wuz it dat 'uz killed in dat shanty ef it
  • warn't you?”
  • Then I told him the whole thing, and he said it was smart. He said Tom
  • Sawyer couldn't get up no better plan than what I had. Then I says:
  • “How do you come to be here, Jim, and how'd you get here?”
  • He looked pretty uneasy, and didn't say nothing for a minute. Then he
  • says:
  • “Maybe I better not tell.”
  • “Why, Jim?”
  • “Well, dey's reasons. But you wouldn' tell on me ef I uz to tell you,
  • would you, Huck?”
  • “Blamed if I would, Jim.”
  • “Well, I b'lieve you, Huck. I--_I run off_.”
  • “Jim!”
  • “But mind, you said you wouldn' tell--you know you said you wouldn' tell,
  • Huck.”
  • “Well, I did. I said I wouldn't, and I'll stick to it. Honest _injun_,
  • I will. People would call me a low-down Abolitionist and despise me for
  • keeping mum--but that don't make no difference. I ain't a-going to tell,
  • and I ain't a-going back there, anyways. So, now, le's know all about
  • it.”
  • “Well, you see, it 'uz dis way. Ole missus--dat's Miss Watson--she pecks
  • on me all de time, en treats me pooty rough, but she awluz said she
  • wouldn' sell me down to Orleans. But I noticed dey wuz a nigger trader
  • roun' de place considable lately, en I begin to git oneasy. Well, one
  • night I creeps to de do' pooty late, en de do' warn't quite shet, en I
  • hear old missus tell de widder she gwyne to sell me down to Orleans, but
  • she didn' want to, but she could git eight hund'd dollars for me, en it
  • 'uz sich a big stack o' money she couldn' resis'. De widder she try to
  • git her to say she wouldn' do it, but I never waited to hear de res'. I
  • lit out mighty quick, I tell you.
  • “I tuck out en shin down de hill, en 'spec to steal a skift 'long de
  • sho' som'ers 'bove de town, but dey wuz people a-stirring yit, so I hid
  • in de ole tumble-down cooper-shop on de bank to wait for everybody to
  • go 'way. Well, I wuz dah all night. Dey wuz somebody roun' all de time.
  • 'Long 'bout six in de mawnin' skifts begin to go by, en 'bout eight er
  • nine every skift dat went 'long wuz talkin' 'bout how yo' pap come over
  • to de town en say you's killed. Dese las' skifts wuz full o' ladies en
  • genlmen a-goin' over for to see de place. Sometimes dey'd pull up at
  • de sho' en take a res' b'fo' dey started acrost, so by de talk I got to
  • know all 'bout de killin'. I 'uz powerful sorry you's killed, Huck, but
  • I ain't no mo' now.
  • “I laid dah under de shavin's all day. I 'uz hungry, but I warn't
  • afeard; bekase I knowed ole missus en de widder wuz goin' to start to
  • de camp-meet'n' right arter breakfas' en be gone all day, en dey knows
  • I goes off wid de cattle 'bout daylight, so dey wouldn' 'spec to see me
  • roun' de place, en so dey wouldn' miss me tell arter dark in de evenin'.
  • De yuther servants wouldn' miss me, kase dey'd shin out en take holiday
  • soon as de ole folks 'uz out'n de way.
  • “Well, when it come dark I tuck out up de river road, en went 'bout two
  • mile er more to whah dey warn't no houses. I'd made up my mine 'bout
  • what I's agwyne to do. You see, ef I kep' on tryin' to git away afoot,
  • de dogs 'ud track me; ef I stole a skift to cross over, dey'd miss dat
  • skift, you see, en dey'd know 'bout whah I'd lan' on de yuther side, en
  • whah to pick up my track. So I says, a raff is what I's arter; it doan'
  • _make_ no track.
  • “I see a light a-comin' roun' de p'int bymeby, so I wade' in en shove'
  • a log ahead o' me en swum more'n half way acrost de river, en got in
  • 'mongst de drift-wood, en kep' my head down low, en kinder swum agin de
  • current tell de raff come along. Den I swum to de stern uv it en tuck
  • a-holt. It clouded up en 'uz pooty dark for a little while. So I clumb
  • up en laid down on de planks. De men 'uz all 'way yonder in de middle,
  • whah de lantern wuz. De river wuz a-risin', en dey wuz a good current;
  • so I reck'n'd 'at by fo' in de mawnin' I'd be twenty-five mile down de
  • river, en den I'd slip in jis b'fo' daylight en swim asho', en take to
  • de woods on de Illinois side.
  • “But I didn' have no luck. When we 'uz mos' down to de head er de
  • islan' a man begin to come aft wid de lantern, I see it warn't no use
  • fer to wait, so I slid overboard en struck out fer de islan'. Well, I
  • had a notion I could lan' mos' anywhers, but I couldn't--bank too bluff.
  • I 'uz mos' to de foot er de islan' b'fo' I found' a good place. I went
  • into de woods en jedged I wouldn' fool wid raffs no mo', long as dey
  • move de lantern roun' so. I had my pipe en a plug er dog-leg, en some
  • matches in my cap, en dey warn't wet, so I 'uz all right.”
  • “And so you ain't had no meat nor bread to eat all this time? Why
  • didn't you get mud-turkles?”
  • “How you gwyne to git 'm? You can't slip up on um en grab um; en how's
  • a body gwyne to hit um wid a rock? How could a body do it in de night?
  • En I warn't gwyne to show mysef on de bank in de daytime.”
  • “Well, that's so. You've had to keep in the woods all the time, of
  • course. Did you hear 'em shooting the cannon?”
  • “Oh, yes. I knowed dey was arter you. I see um go by heah--watched um
  • thoo de bushes.”
  • Some young birds come along, flying a yard or two at a time and
  • lighting. Jim said it was a sign it was going to rain. He said it was
  • a sign when young chickens flew that way, and so he reckoned it was the
  • same way when young birds done it. I was going to catch some of them,
  • but Jim wouldn't let me. He said it was death. He said his father laid
  • mighty sick once, and some of them catched a bird, and his old granny
  • said his father would die, and he did.
  • And Jim said you mustn't count the things you are going to cook for
  • dinner, because that would bring bad luck. The same if you shook the
  • table-cloth after sundown. And he said if a man owned a beehive
  • and that man died, the bees must be told about it before sun-up next
  • morning, or else the bees would all weaken down and quit work and die.
  • Jim said bees wouldn't sting idiots; but I didn't believe that, because
  • I had tried them lots of times myself, and they wouldn't sting me.
  • I had heard about some of these things before, but not all of them. Jim
  • knowed all kinds of signs. He said he knowed most everything. I said
  • it looked to me like all the signs was about bad luck, and so I asked
  • him if there warn't any good-luck signs. He says:
  • “Mighty few--an' _dey_ ain't no use to a body. What you want to know
  • when good luck's a-comin' for? Want to keep it off?” And he said: “Ef
  • you's got hairy arms en a hairy breas', it's a sign dat you's agwyne
  • to be rich. Well, dey's some use in a sign like dat, 'kase it's so fur
  • ahead. You see, maybe you's got to be po' a long time fust, en so you
  • might git discourage' en kill yo'sef 'f you didn' know by de sign dat
  • you gwyne to be rich bymeby.”
  • “Have you got hairy arms and a hairy breast, Jim?”
  • “What's de use to ax dat question? Don't you see I has?”
  • “Well, are you rich?”
  • “No, but I ben rich wunst, and gwyne to be rich agin. Wunst I had
  • foteen dollars, but I tuck to specalat'n', en got busted out.”
  • “What did you speculate in, Jim?”
  • “Well, fust I tackled stock.”
  • “What kind of stock?”
  • “Why, live stock--cattle, you know. I put ten dollars in a cow. But
  • I ain' gwyne to resk no mo' money in stock. De cow up 'n' died on my
  • han's.”
  • “So you lost the ten dollars.”
  • “No, I didn't lose it all. I on'y los' 'bout nine of it. I sole de
  • hide en taller for a dollar en ten cents.”
  • “You had five dollars and ten cents left. Did you speculate any more?”
  • “Yes. You know that one-laigged nigger dat b'longs to old Misto
  • Bradish? Well, he sot up a bank, en say anybody dat put in a dollar
  • would git fo' dollars mo' at de en' er de year. Well, all de niggers
  • went in, but dey didn't have much. I wuz de on'y one dat had much. So
  • I stuck out for mo' dan fo' dollars, en I said 'f I didn' git it I'd
  • start a bank mysef. Well, o' course dat nigger want' to keep me out er
  • de business, bekase he says dey warn't business 'nough for two banks, so
  • he say I could put in my five dollars en he pay me thirty-five at de en'
  • er de year.
  • “So I done it. Den I reck'n'd I'd inves' de thirty-five dollars right
  • off en keep things a-movin'. Dey wuz a nigger name' Bob, dat had
  • ketched a wood-flat, en his marster didn' know it; en I bought it off'n
  • him en told him to take de thirty-five dollars when de en' er de
  • year come; but somebody stole de wood-flat dat night, en nex day de
  • one-laigged nigger say de bank's busted. So dey didn' none uv us git no
  • money.”
  • “What did you do with the ten cents, Jim?”
  • “Well, I 'uz gwyne to spen' it, but I had a dream, en de dream tole me
  • to give it to a nigger name' Balum--Balum's Ass dey call him for short;
  • he's one er dem chuckleheads, you know. But he's lucky, dey say, en I
  • see I warn't lucky. De dream say let Balum inves' de ten cents en he'd
  • make a raise for me. Well, Balum he tuck de money, en when he wuz in
  • church he hear de preacher say dat whoever give to de po' len' to de
  • Lord, en boun' to git his money back a hund'd times. So Balum he tuck
  • en give de ten cents to de po', en laid low to see what wuz gwyne to
  • come of it.”
  • “Well, what did come of it, Jim?”
  • “Nuffn never come of it. I couldn' manage to k'leck dat money no way;
  • en Balum he couldn'. I ain' gwyne to len' no mo' money 'dout I see de
  • security. Boun' to git yo' money back a hund'd times, de preacher says!
  • Ef I could git de ten _cents_ back, I'd call it squah, en be glad er de
  • chanst.”
  • “Well, it's all right anyway, Jim, long as you're going to be rich again
  • some time or other.”
  • “Yes; en I's rich now, come to look at it. I owns mysef, en I's wuth
  • eight hund'd dollars. I wisht I had de money, I wouldn' want no mo'.”
  • CHAPTER IX.
  • I wanted to go and look at a place right about the middle of the island
  • that I'd found when I was exploring; so we started and soon got to it,
  • because the island was only three miles long and a quarter of a mile
  • wide.
  • This place was a tolerable long, steep hill or ridge about forty foot
  • high. We had a rough time getting to the top, the sides was so steep and
  • the bushes so thick. We tramped and clumb around all over it, and by
  • and by found a good big cavern in the rock, most up to the top on the
  • side towards Illinois. The cavern was as big as two or three rooms
  • bunched together, and Jim could stand up straight in it. It was cool in
  • there. Jim was for putting our traps in there right away, but I said we
  • didn't want to be climbing up and down there all the time.
  • Jim said if we had the canoe hid in a good place, and had all the traps
  • in the cavern, we could rush there if anybody was to come to the island,
  • and they would never find us without dogs. And, besides, he said them
  • little birds had said it was going to rain, and did I want the things to
  • get wet?
  • So we went back and got the canoe, and paddled up abreast the cavern,
  • and lugged all the traps up there. Then we hunted up a place close by
  • to hide the canoe in, amongst the thick willows. We took some fish off
  • of the lines and set them again, and begun to get ready for dinner.
  • The door of the cavern was big enough to roll a hogshead in, and on one
  • side of the door the floor stuck out a little bit, and was flat and a
  • good place to build a fire on. So we built it there and cooked dinner.
  • We spread the blankets inside for a carpet, and eat our dinner in there.
  • We put all the other things handy at the back of the cavern. Pretty
  • soon it darkened up, and begun to thunder and lighten; so the birds was
  • right about it. Directly it begun to rain, and it rained like all fury,
  • too, and I never see the wind blow so. It was one of these regular
  • summer storms. It would get so dark that it looked all blue-black
  • outside, and lovely; and the rain would thrash along by so thick that
  • the trees off a little ways looked dim and spider-webby; and here would
  • come a blast of wind that would bend the trees down and turn up the
  • pale underside of the leaves; and then a perfect ripper of a gust would
  • follow along and set the branches to tossing their arms as if they
  • was just wild; and next, when it was just about the bluest and
  • blackest--_FST_! it was as bright as glory, and you'd have a little
  • glimpse of tree-tops a-plunging about away off yonder in the storm,
  • hundreds of yards further than you could see before; dark as sin again
  • in a second, and now you'd hear the thunder let go with an awful crash,
  • and then go rumbling, grumbling, tumbling, down the sky towards the
  • under side of the world, like rolling empty barrels down stairs--where
  • it's long stairs and they bounce a good deal, you know.
  • “Jim, this is nice,” I says. “I wouldn't want to be nowhere else but
  • here. Pass me along another hunk of fish and some hot corn-bread.”
  • “Well, you wouldn't a ben here 'f it hadn't a ben for Jim. You'd a ben
  • down dah in de woods widout any dinner, en gittn' mos' drownded, too;
  • dat you would, honey. Chickens knows when it's gwyne to rain, en so do
  • de birds, chile.”
  • The river went on raising and raising for ten or twelve days, till at
  • last it was over the banks. The water was three or four foot deep on
  • the island in the low places and on the Illinois bottom. On that side
  • it was a good many miles wide, but on the Missouri side it was the same
  • old distance across--a half a mile--because the Missouri shore was just a
  • wall of high bluffs.
  • Daytimes we paddled all over the island in the canoe, It was mighty cool
  • and shady in the deep woods, even if the sun was blazing outside. We
  • went winding in and out amongst the trees, and sometimes the vines hung
  • so thick we had to back away and go some other way. Well, on every old
  • broken-down tree you could see rabbits and snakes and such things; and
  • when the island had been overflowed a day or two they got so tame, on
  • account of being hungry, that you could paddle right up and put your
  • hand on them if you wanted to; but not the snakes and turtles--they would
  • slide off in the water. The ridge our cavern was in was full of them.
  • We could a had pets enough if we'd wanted them.
  • One night we catched a little section of a lumber raft--nice pine planks.
  • It was twelve foot wide and about fifteen or sixteen foot long, and
  • the top stood above water six or seven inches--a solid, level floor. We
  • could see saw-logs go by in the daylight sometimes, but we let them go;
  • we didn't show ourselves in daylight.
  • Another night when we was up at the head of the island, just before
  • daylight, here comes a frame-house down, on the west side. She was
  • a two-story, and tilted over considerable. We paddled out and got
  • aboard--clumb in at an upstairs window. But it was too dark to see yet,
  • so we made the canoe fast and set in her to wait for daylight.
  • The light begun to come before we got to the foot of the island. Then
  • we looked in at the window. We could make out a bed, and a table, and
  • two old chairs, and lots of things around about on the floor, and there
  • was clothes hanging against the wall. There was something laying on the
  • floor in the far corner that looked like a man. So Jim says:
  • “Hello, you!”
  • But it didn't budge. So I hollered again, and then Jim says:
  • “De man ain't asleep--he's dead. You hold still--I'll go en see.”
  • He went, and bent down and looked, and says:
  • “It's a dead man. Yes, indeedy; naked, too. He's ben shot in de back.
  • I reck'n he's ben dead two er three days. Come in, Huck, but doan' look
  • at his face--it's too gashly.”
  • I didn't look at him at all. Jim throwed some old rags over him, but
  • he needn't done it; I didn't want to see him. There was heaps of old
  • greasy cards scattered around over the floor, and old whisky bottles,
  • and a couple of masks made out of black cloth; and all over the walls
  • was the ignorantest kind of words and pictures made with charcoal.
  • There was two old dirty calico dresses, and a sun-bonnet, and some
  • women's underclothes hanging against the wall, and some men's clothing,
  • too. We put the lot into the canoe--it might come good. There was a
  • boy's old speckled straw hat on the floor; I took that, too. And there
  • was a bottle that had had milk in it, and it had a rag stopper for a
  • baby to suck. We would a took the bottle, but it was broke. There was
  • a seedy old chest, and an old hair trunk with the hinges broke. They
  • stood open, but there warn't nothing left in them that was any account.
  • The way things was scattered about we reckoned the people left in a
  • hurry, and warn't fixed so as to carry off most of their stuff.
  • We got an old tin lantern, and a butcher-knife without any handle, and
  • a bran-new Barlow knife worth two bits in any store, and a lot of tallow
  • candles, and a tin candlestick, and a gourd, and a tin cup, and a ratty
  • old bedquilt off the bed, and a reticule with needles and pins and
  • beeswax and buttons and thread and all such truck in it, and a hatchet
  • and some nails, and a fishline as thick as my little finger with some
  • monstrous hooks on it, and a roll of buckskin, and a leather dog-collar,
  • and a horseshoe, and some vials of medicine that didn't have no label
  • on them; and just as we was leaving I found a tolerable good curry-comb,
  • and Jim he found a ratty old fiddle-bow, and a wooden leg. The straps
  • was broke off of it, but, barring that, it was a good enough leg, though
  • it was too long for me and not long enough for Jim, and we couldn't find
  • the other one, though we hunted all around.
  • And so, take it all around, we made a good haul. When we was ready to
  • shove off we was a quarter of a mile below the island, and it was pretty
  • broad day; so I made Jim lay down in the canoe and cover up with the
  • quilt, because if he set up people could tell he was a nigger a good
  • ways off. I paddled over to the Illinois shore, and drifted down most
  • a half a mile doing it. I crept up the dead water under the bank, and
  • hadn't no accidents and didn't see nobody. We got home all safe.
  • CHAPTER X.
  • AFTER breakfast I wanted to talk about the dead man and guess out how he
  • come to be killed, but Jim didn't want to. He said it would fetch bad
  • luck; and besides, he said, he might come and ha'nt us; he said a man
  • that warn't buried was more likely to go a-ha'nting around than one
  • that was planted and comfortable. That sounded pretty reasonable, so
  • I didn't say no more; but I couldn't keep from studying over it and
  • wishing I knowed who shot the man, and what they done it for.
  • We rummaged the clothes we'd got, and found eight dollars in silver
  • sewed up in the lining of an old blanket overcoat. Jim said he reckoned
  • the people in that house stole the coat, because if they'd a knowed the
  • money was there they wouldn't a left it. I said I reckoned they killed
  • him, too; but Jim didn't want to talk about that. I says:
  • “Now you think it's bad luck; but what did you say when I fetched in the
  • snake-skin that I found on the top of the ridge day before yesterday?
  • You said it was the worst bad luck in the world to touch a snake-skin
  • with my hands. Well, here's your bad luck! We've raked in all this
  • truck and eight dollars besides. I wish we could have some bad luck
  • like this every day, Jim.”
  • “Never you mind, honey, never you mind. Don't you git too peart. It's
  • a-comin'. Mind I tell you, it's a-comin'.”
  • It did come, too. It was a Tuesday that we had that talk. Well, after
  • dinner Friday we was laying around in the grass at the upper end of the
  • ridge, and got out of tobacco. I went to the cavern to get some, and
  • found a rattlesnake in there. I killed him, and curled him up on the
  • foot of Jim's blanket, ever so natural, thinking there'd be some fun
  • when Jim found him there. Well, by night I forgot all about the snake,
  • and when Jim flung himself down on the blanket while I struck a light
  • the snake's mate was there, and bit him.
  • He jumped up yelling, and the first thing the light showed was the
  • varmint curled up and ready for another spring. I laid him out in a
  • second with a stick, and Jim grabbed pap's whisky-jug and begun to pour
  • it down.
  • He was barefooted, and the snake bit him right on the heel. That all
  • comes of my being such a fool as to not remember that wherever you leave
  • a dead snake its mate always comes there and curls around it. Jim told
  • me to chop off the snake's head and throw it away, and then skin the
  • body and roast a piece of it. I done it, and he eat it and said it
  • would help cure him. He made me take off the rattles and tie them around
  • his wrist, too. He said that that would help. Then I slid out quiet
  • and throwed the snakes clear away amongst the bushes; for I warn't going
  • to let Jim find out it was all my fault, not if I could help it.
  • Jim sucked and sucked at the jug, and now and then he got out of his
  • head and pitched around and yelled; but every time he come to himself he
  • went to sucking at the jug again. His foot swelled up pretty big, and
  • so did his leg; but by and by the drunk begun to come, and so I judged
  • he was all right; but I'd druther been bit with a snake than pap's
  • whisky.
  • Jim was laid up for four days and nights. Then the swelling was all
  • gone and he was around again. I made up my mind I wouldn't ever take
  • a-holt of a snake-skin again with my hands, now that I see what had come
  • of it. Jim said he reckoned I would believe him next time. And he said
  • that handling a snake-skin was such awful bad luck that maybe we hadn't
  • got to the end of it yet. He said he druther see the new moon over his
  • left shoulder as much as a thousand times than take up a snake-skin
  • in his hand. Well, I was getting to feel that way myself, though I've
  • always reckoned that looking at the new moon over your left shoulder is
  • one of the carelessest and foolishest things a body can do. Old Hank
  • Bunker done it once, and bragged about it; and in less than two years he
  • got drunk and fell off of the shot-tower, and spread himself out so
  • that he was just a kind of a layer, as you may say; and they slid him
  • edgeways between two barn doors for a coffin, and buried him so, so
  • they say, but I didn't see it. Pap told me. But anyway it all come of
  • looking at the moon that way, like a fool.
  • Well, the days went along, and the river went down between its banks
  • again; and about the first thing we done was to bait one of the big
  • hooks with a skinned rabbit and set it and catch a catfish that was
  • as big as a man, being six foot two inches long, and weighed over two
  • hundred pounds. We couldn't handle him, of course; he would a flung us
  • into Illinois. We just set there and watched him rip and tear around
  • till he drownded. We found a brass button in his stomach and a round
  • ball, and lots of rubbage. We split the ball open with the hatchet,
  • and there was a spool in it. Jim said he'd had it there a long time, to
  • coat it over so and make a ball of it. It was as big a fish as was ever
  • catched in the Mississippi, I reckon. Jim said he hadn't ever seen
  • a bigger one. He would a been worth a good deal over at the village.
  • They peddle out such a fish as that by the pound in the market-house
  • there; everybody buys some of him; his meat's as white as snow and makes
  • a good fry.
  • Next morning I said it was getting slow and dull, and I wanted to get a
  • stirring up some way. I said I reckoned I would slip over the river and
  • find out what was going on. Jim liked that notion; but he said I
  • must go in the dark and look sharp. Then he studied it over and said,
  • couldn't I put on some of them old things and dress up like a girl?
  • That was a good notion, too. So we shortened up one of the calico
  • gowns, and I turned up my trouser-legs to my knees and got into it. Jim
  • hitched it behind with the hooks, and it was a fair fit. I put on the
  • sun-bonnet and tied it under my chin, and then for a body to look in
  • and see my face was like looking down a joint of stove-pipe. Jim said
  • nobody would know me, even in the daytime, hardly. I practiced around
  • all day to get the hang of the things, and by and by I could do pretty
  • well in them, only Jim said I didn't walk like a girl; and he said
  • I must quit pulling up my gown to get at my britches-pocket. I took
  • notice, and done better.
  • I started up the Illinois shore in the canoe just after dark.
  • I started across to the town from a little below the ferry-landing, and
  • the drift of the current fetched me in at the bottom of the town. I
  • tied up and started along the bank. There was a light burning in a
  • little shanty that hadn't been lived in for a long time, and I wondered
  • who had took up quarters there. I slipped up and peeped in at the
  • window. There was a woman about forty year old in there knitting by
  • a candle that was on a pine table. I didn't know her face; she was a
  • stranger, for you couldn't start a face in that town that I didn't know.
  • Now this was lucky, because I was weakening; I was getting afraid I had
  • come; people might know my voice and find me out. But if this woman had
  • been in such a little town two days she could tell me all I wanted to
  • know; so I knocked at the door, and made up my mind I wouldn't forget I
  • was a girl.
  • CHAPTER XI.
  • “COME in,” says the woman, and I did. She says: “Take a cheer.”
  • I done it. She looked me all over with her little shiny eyes, and says:
  • “What might your name be?”
  • “Sarah Williams.”
  • “Where 'bouts do you live? In this neighborhood?'
  • “No'm. In Hookerville, seven mile below. I've walked all the way and
  • I'm all tired out.”
  • “Hungry, too, I reckon. I'll find you something.”
  • “No'm, I ain't hungry. I was so hungry I had to stop two miles below
  • here at a farm; so I ain't hungry no more. It's what makes me so late.
  • My mother's down sick, and out of money and everything, and I come to
  • tell my uncle Abner Moore. He lives at the upper end of the town, she
  • says. I hain't ever been here before. Do you know him?”
  • “No; but I don't know everybody yet. I haven't lived here quite two
  • weeks. It's a considerable ways to the upper end of the town. You
  • better stay here all night. Take off your bonnet.”
  • “No,” I says; “I'll rest a while, I reckon, and go on. I ain't afeared
  • of the dark.”
  • She said she wouldn't let me go by myself, but her husband would be in
  • by and by, maybe in a hour and a half, and she'd send him along with me.
  • Then she got to talking about her husband, and about her relations up
  • the river, and her relations down the river, and about how much better
  • off they used to was, and how they didn't know but they'd made a mistake
  • coming to our town, instead of letting well alone--and so on and so on,
  • till I was afeard I had made a mistake coming to her to find out what
  • was going on in the town; but by and by she dropped on to pap and the
  • murder, and then I was pretty willing to let her clatter right along.
  • She told about me and Tom Sawyer finding the six thousand dollars (only
  • she got it ten) and all about pap and what a hard lot he was, and what
  • a hard lot I was, and at last she got down to where I was murdered. I
  • says:
  • “Who done it? We've heard considerable about these goings on down in
  • Hookerville, but we don't know who 'twas that killed Huck Finn.”
  • “Well, I reckon there's a right smart chance of people _here_ that'd
  • like to know who killed him. Some think old Finn done it himself.”
  • “No--is that so?”
  • “Most everybody thought it at first. He'll never know how nigh he come
  • to getting lynched. But before night they changed around and judged it
  • was done by a runaway nigger named Jim.”
  • “Why _he_--”
  • I stopped. I reckoned I better keep still. She run on, and never
  • noticed I had put in at all:
  • “The nigger run off the very night Huck Finn was killed. So there's a
  • reward out for him--three hundred dollars. And there's a reward out for
  • old Finn, too--two hundred dollars. You see, he come to town the
  • morning after the murder, and told about it, and was out with 'em on the
  • ferryboat hunt, and right away after he up and left. Before night they
  • wanted to lynch him, but he was gone, you see. Well, next day they
  • found out the nigger was gone; they found out he hadn't ben seen sence
  • ten o'clock the night the murder was done. So then they put it on him,
  • you see; and while they was full of it, next day, back comes old Finn,
  • and went boo-hooing to Judge Thatcher to get money to hunt for the
  • nigger all over Illinois with. The judge gave him some, and that evening
  • he got drunk, and was around till after midnight with a couple of mighty
  • hard-looking strangers, and then went off with them. Well, he hain't
  • come back sence, and they ain't looking for him back till this thing
  • blows over a little, for people thinks now that he killed his boy and
  • fixed things so folks would think robbers done it, and then he'd get
  • Huck's money without having to bother a long time with a lawsuit.
  • People do say he warn't any too good to do it. Oh, he's sly, I reckon.
  • If he don't come back for a year he'll be all right. You can't prove
  • anything on him, you know; everything will be quieted down then, and
  • he'll walk in Huck's money as easy as nothing.”
  • “Yes, I reckon so, 'm. I don't see nothing in the way of it. Has
  • everybody quit thinking the nigger done it?”
  • “Oh, no, not everybody. A good many thinks he done it. But they'll get
  • the nigger pretty soon now, and maybe they can scare it out of him.”
  • “Why, are they after him yet?”
  • “Well, you're innocent, ain't you! Does three hundred dollars lay
  • around every day for people to pick up? Some folks think the nigger
  • ain't far from here. I'm one of them--but I hain't talked it around. A
  • few days ago I was talking with an old couple that lives next door in
  • the log shanty, and they happened to say hardly anybody ever goes to
  • that island over yonder that they call Jackson's Island. Don't anybody
  • live there? says I. No, nobody, says they. I didn't say any more, but
  • I done some thinking. I was pretty near certain I'd seen smoke over
  • there, about the head of the island, a day or two before that, so I says
  • to myself, like as not that nigger's hiding over there; anyway, says
  • I, it's worth the trouble to give the place a hunt. I hain't seen any
  • smoke sence, so I reckon maybe he's gone, if it was him; but husband's
  • going over to see--him and another man. He was gone up the river; but he
  • got back to-day, and I told him as soon as he got here two hours ago.”
  • I had got so uneasy I couldn't set still. I had to do something with my
  • hands; so I took up a needle off of the table and went to threading
  • it. My hands shook, and I was making a bad job of it. When the woman
  • stopped talking I looked up, and she was looking at me pretty curious
  • and smiling a little. I put down the needle and thread, and let on to
  • be interested--and I was, too--and says:
  • “Three hundred dollars is a power of money. I wish my mother could get
  • it. Is your husband going over there to-night?”
  • “Oh, yes. He went up-town with the man I was telling you of, to get a
  • boat and see if they could borrow another gun. They'll go over after
  • midnight.”
  • “Couldn't they see better if they was to wait till daytime?”
  • “Yes. And couldn't the nigger see better, too? After midnight he'll
  • likely be asleep, and they can slip around through the woods and hunt up
  • his camp fire all the better for the dark, if he's got one.”
  • “I didn't think of that.”
  • The woman kept looking at me pretty curious, and I didn't feel a bit
  • comfortable. Pretty soon she says,
  • “What did you say your name was, honey?”
  • “M--Mary Williams.”
  • Somehow it didn't seem to me that I said it was Mary before, so I didn't
  • look up--seemed to me I said it was Sarah; so I felt sort of cornered,
  • and was afeared maybe I was looking it, too. I wished the woman would
  • say something more; the longer she set still the uneasier I was. But
  • now she says:
  • “Honey, I thought you said it was Sarah when you first come in?”
  • “Oh, yes'm, I did. Sarah Mary Williams. Sarah's my first name. Some
  • calls me Sarah, some calls me Mary.”
  • “Oh, that's the way of it?”
  • “Yes'm.”
  • I was feeling better then, but I wished I was out of there, anyway. I
  • couldn't look up yet.
  • Well, the woman fell to talking about how hard times was, and how poor
  • they had to live, and how the rats was as free as if they owned the
  • place, and so forth and so on, and then I got easy again. She was right
  • about the rats. You'd see one stick his nose out of a hole in the corner
  • every little while. She said she had to have things handy to throw at
  • them when she was alone, or they wouldn't give her no peace. She showed
  • me a bar of lead twisted up into a knot, and said she was a good shot
  • with it generly, but she'd wrenched her arm a day or two ago, and didn't
  • know whether she could throw true now. But she watched for a chance,
  • and directly banged away at a rat; but she missed him wide, and said
  • “Ouch!” it hurt her arm so. Then she told me to try for the next one.
  • I wanted to be getting away before the old man got back, but of course
  • I didn't let on. I got the thing, and the first rat that showed his
  • nose I let drive, and if he'd a stayed where he was he'd a been a
  • tolerable sick rat. She said that was first-rate, and she reckoned I
  • would hive the next one. She went and got the lump of lead and fetched
  • it back, and brought along a hank of yarn which she wanted me to help
  • her with. I held up my two hands and she put the hank over them, and
  • went on talking about her and her husband's matters. But she broke off
  • to say:
  • “Keep your eye on the rats. You better have the lead in your lap,
  • handy.”
  • So she dropped the lump into my lap just at that moment, and I clapped
  • my legs together on it and she went on talking. But only about a
  • minute. Then she took off the hank and looked me straight in the face,
  • and very pleasant, and says:
  • “Come, now, what's your real name?”
  • “Wh--what, mum?”
  • “What's your real name? Is it Bill, or Tom, or Bob?--or what is it?”
  • I reckon I shook like a leaf, and I didn't know hardly what to do. But
  • I says:
  • “Please to don't poke fun at a poor girl like me, mum. If I'm in the
  • way here, I'll--”
  • “No, you won't. Set down and stay where you are. I ain't going to hurt
  • you, and I ain't going to tell on you, nuther. You just tell me your
  • secret, and trust me. I'll keep it; and, what's more, I'll help
  • you. So'll my old man if you want him to. You see, you're a runaway
  • 'prentice, that's all. It ain't anything. There ain't no harm in it.
  • You've been treated bad, and you made up your mind to cut. Bless you,
  • child, I wouldn't tell on you. Tell me all about it now, that's a good
  • boy.”
  • So I said it wouldn't be no use to try to play it any longer, and I
  • would just make a clean breast and tell her everything, but she musn't
  • go back on her promise. Then I told her my father and mother was dead,
  • and the law had bound me out to a mean old farmer in the country thirty
  • mile back from the river, and he treated me so bad I couldn't stand it
  • no longer; he went away to be gone a couple of days, and so I took my
  • chance and stole some of his daughter's old clothes and cleared out, and
  • I had been three nights coming the thirty miles. I traveled nights,
  • and hid daytimes and slept, and the bag of bread and meat I carried from
  • home lasted me all the way, and I had a-plenty. I said I believed my
  • uncle Abner Moore would take care of me, and so that was why I struck
  • out for this town of Goshen.
  • “Goshen, child? This ain't Goshen. This is St. Petersburg. Goshen's
  • ten mile further up the river. Who told you this was Goshen?”
  • “Why, a man I met at daybreak this morning, just as I was going to turn
  • into the woods for my regular sleep. He told me when the roads forked I
  • must take the right hand, and five mile would fetch me to Goshen.”
  • “He was drunk, I reckon. He told you just exactly wrong.”
  • “Well, he did act like he was drunk, but it ain't no matter now. I got
  • to be moving along. I'll fetch Goshen before daylight.”
  • “Hold on a minute. I'll put you up a snack to eat. You might want it.”
  • So she put me up a snack, and says:
  • “Say, when a cow's laying down, which end of her gets up first? Answer
  • up prompt now--don't stop to study over it. Which end gets up first?”
  • “The hind end, mum.”
  • “Well, then, a horse?”
  • “The for'rard end, mum.”
  • “Which side of a tree does the moss grow on?”
  • “North side.”
  • “If fifteen cows is browsing on a hillside, how many of them eats with
  • their heads pointed the same direction?”
  • “The whole fifteen, mum.”
  • “Well, I reckon you _have_ lived in the country. I thought maybe you
  • was trying to hocus me again. What's your real name, now?”
  • “George Peters, mum.”
  • “Well, try to remember it, George. Don't forget and tell me it's
  • Elexander before you go, and then get out by saying it's George
  • Elexander when I catch you. And don't go about women in that old
  • calico. You do a girl tolerable poor, but you might fool men, maybe.
  • Bless you, child, when you set out to thread a needle don't hold the
  • thread still and fetch the needle up to it; hold the needle still and
  • poke the thread at it; that's the way a woman most always does, but a
  • man always does t'other way. And when you throw at a rat or anything,
  • hitch yourself up a tiptoe and fetch your hand up over your head as
  • awkward as you can, and miss your rat about six or seven foot. Throw
  • stiff-armed from the shoulder, like there was a pivot there for it to
  • turn on, like a girl; not from the wrist and elbow, with your arm out
  • to one side, like a boy. And, mind you, when a girl tries to catch
  • anything in her lap she throws her knees apart; she don't clap them
  • together, the way you did when you catched the lump of lead. Why, I
  • spotted you for a boy when you was threading the needle; and I contrived
  • the other things just to make certain. Now trot along to your uncle,
  • Sarah Mary Williams George Elexander Peters, and if you get into trouble
  • you send word to Mrs. Judith Loftus, which is me, and I'll do what I can
  • to get you out of it. Keep the river road all the way, and next time
  • you tramp take shoes and socks with you. The river road's a rocky one,
  • and your feet'll be in a condition when you get to Goshen, I reckon.”
  • I went up the bank about fifty yards, and then I doubled on my tracks
  • and slipped back to where my canoe was, a good piece below the house. I
  • jumped in, and was off in a hurry. I went up-stream far enough to
  • make the head of the island, and then started across. I took off the
  • sun-bonnet, for I didn't want no blinders on then. When I was about the
  • middle I heard the clock begin to strike, so I stops and listens; the
  • sound come faint over the water but clear--eleven. When I struck the
  • head of the island I never waited to blow, though I was most winded, but
  • I shoved right into the timber where my old camp used to be, and started
  • a good fire there on a high and dry spot.
  • Then I jumped in the canoe and dug out for our place, a mile and a half
  • below, as hard as I could go. I landed, and slopped through the timber
  • and up the ridge and into the cavern. There Jim laid, sound asleep on
  • the ground. I roused him out and says:
  • “Git up and hump yourself, Jim! There ain't a minute to lose. They're
  • after us!”
  • Jim never asked no questions, he never said a word; but the way he
  • worked for the next half an hour showed about how he was scared. By
  • that time everything we had in the world was on our raft, and she was
  • ready to be shoved out from the willow cove where she was hid. We
  • put out the camp fire at the cavern the first thing, and didn't show a
  • candle outside after that.
  • I took the canoe out from the shore a little piece, and took a look;
  • but if there was a boat around I couldn't see it, for stars and shadows
  • ain't good to see by. Then we got out the raft and slipped along down
  • in the shade, past the foot of the island dead still--never saying a
  • word.
  • CHAPTER XII.
  • IT must a been close on to one o'clock when we got below the island at
  • last, and the raft did seem to go mighty slow. If a boat was to come
  • along we was going to take to the canoe and break for the Illinois
  • shore; and it was well a boat didn't come, for we hadn't ever thought to
  • put the gun in the canoe, or a fishing-line, or anything to eat. We
  • was in ruther too much of a sweat to think of so many things. It warn't
  • good judgment to put _everything_ on the raft.
  • If the men went to the island I just expect they found the camp fire I
  • built, and watched it all night for Jim to come. Anyways, they stayed
  • away from us, and if my building the fire never fooled them it warn't no
  • fault of mine. I played it as low down on them as I could.
  • When the first streak of day began to show we tied up to a towhead in a
  • big bend on the Illinois side, and hacked off cottonwood branches with
  • the hatchet, and covered up the raft with them so she looked like there
  • had been a cave-in in the bank there. A tow-head is a sandbar that has
  • cottonwoods on it as thick as harrow-teeth.
  • We had mountains on the Missouri shore and heavy timber on the Illinois
  • side, and the channel was down the Missouri shore at that place, so we
  • warn't afraid of anybody running across us. We laid there all day,
  • and watched the rafts and steamboats spin down the Missouri shore, and
  • up-bound steamboats fight the big river in the middle. I told Jim all
  • about the time I had jabbering with that woman; and Jim said she was
  • a smart one, and if she was to start after us herself she wouldn't set
  • down and watch a camp fire--no, sir, she'd fetch a dog. Well, then, I
  • said, why couldn't she tell her husband to fetch a dog? Jim said he
  • bet she did think of it by the time the men was ready to start, and he
  • believed they must a gone up-town to get a dog and so they lost all that
  • time, or else we wouldn't be here on a towhead sixteen or seventeen mile
  • below the village--no, indeedy, we would be in that same old town again.
  • So I said I didn't care what was the reason they didn't get us as long
  • as they didn't.
  • When it was beginning to come on dark we poked our heads out of the
  • cottonwood thicket, and looked up and down and across; nothing in sight;
  • so Jim took up some of the top planks of the raft and built a snug
  • wigwam to get under in blazing weather and rainy, and to keep the things
  • dry. Jim made a floor for the wigwam, and raised it a foot or more above
  • the level of the raft, so now the blankets and all the traps was out of
  • reach of steamboat waves. Right in the middle of the wigwam we made a
  • layer of dirt about five or six inches deep with a frame around it for
  • to hold it to its place; this was to build a fire on in sloppy weather
  • or chilly; the wigwam would keep it from being seen. We made an extra
  • steering-oar, too, because one of the others might get broke on a snag
  • or something. We fixed up a short forked stick to hang the old lantern
  • on, because we must always light the lantern whenever we see a steamboat
  • coming down-stream, to keep from getting run over; but we wouldn't have
  • to light it for up-stream boats unless we see we was in what they call
  • a “crossing”; for the river was pretty high yet, very low banks being
  • still a little under water; so up-bound boats didn't always run the
  • channel, but hunted easy water.
  • This second night we run between seven and eight hours, with a current
  • that was making over four mile an hour. We catched fish and talked,
  • and we took a swim now and then to keep off sleepiness. It was kind of
  • solemn, drifting down the big, still river, laying on our backs looking
  • up at the stars, and we didn't ever feel like talking loud, and it
  • warn't often that we laughed--only a little kind of a low chuckle. We
  • had mighty good weather as a general thing, and nothing ever happened to
  • us at all--that night, nor the next, nor the next.
  • Every night we passed towns, some of them away up on black hillsides,
  • nothing but just a shiny bed of lights; not a house could you see. The
  • fifth night we passed St. Louis, and it was like the whole world lit up.
  • In St. Petersburg they used to say there was twenty or thirty thousand
  • people in St. Louis, but I never believed it till I see that wonderful
  • spread of lights at two o'clock that still night. There warn't a sound
  • there; everybody was asleep.
  • Every night now I used to slip ashore towards ten o'clock at some little
  • village, and buy ten or fifteen cents' worth of meal or bacon or other
  • stuff to eat; and sometimes I lifted a chicken that warn't roosting
  • comfortable, and took him along. Pap always said, take a chicken when
  • you get a chance, because if you don't want him yourself you can easy
  • find somebody that does, and a good deed ain't ever forgot. I never see
  • pap when he didn't want the chicken himself, but that is what he used to
  • say, anyway.
  • Mornings before daylight I slipped into cornfields and borrowed a
  • watermelon, or a mushmelon, or a punkin, or some new corn, or things of
  • that kind. Pap always said it warn't no harm to borrow things if you
  • was meaning to pay them back some time; but the widow said it warn't
  • anything but a soft name for stealing, and no decent body would do it.
  • Jim said he reckoned the widow was partly right and pap was partly
  • right; so the best way would be for us to pick out two or three things
  • from the list and say we wouldn't borrow them any more--then he reckoned
  • it wouldn't be no harm to borrow the others. So we talked it over all
  • one night, drifting along down the river, trying to make up our minds
  • whether to drop the watermelons, or the cantelopes, or the mushmelons,
  • or what. But towards daylight we got it all settled satisfactory, and
  • concluded to drop crabapples and p'simmons. We warn't feeling just
  • right before that, but it was all comfortable now. I was glad the way
  • it come out, too, because crabapples ain't ever good, and the p'simmons
  • wouldn't be ripe for two or three months yet.
  • We shot a water-fowl now and then that got up too early in the morning
  • or didn't go to bed early enough in the evening. Take it all round, we
  • lived pretty high.
  • The fifth night below St. Louis we had a big storm after midnight, with
  • a power of thunder and lightning, and the rain poured down in a solid
  • sheet. We stayed in the wigwam and let the raft take care of itself.
  • When the lightning glared out we could see a big straight river ahead,
  • and high, rocky bluffs on both sides. By and by says I, “Hel-_lo_, Jim,
  • looky yonder!” It was a steamboat that had killed herself on a rock.
  • We was drifting straight down for her. The lightning showed her very
  • distinct. She was leaning over, with part of her upper deck above
  • water, and you could see every little chimbly-guy clean and clear, and a
  • chair by the big bell, with an old slouch hat hanging on the back of it,
  • when the flashes come.
  • Well, it being away in the night and stormy, and all so mysterious-like,
  • I felt just the way any other boy would a felt when I see that wreck
  • laying there so mournful and lonesome in the middle of the river. I
  • wanted to get aboard of her and slink around a little, and see what
  • there was there. So I says:
  • “Le's land on her, Jim.”
  • But Jim was dead against it at first. He says:
  • “I doan' want to go fool'n 'long er no wrack. We's doin' blame' well,
  • en we better let blame' well alone, as de good book says. Like as not
  • dey's a watchman on dat wrack.”
  • “Watchman your grandmother,” I says; “there ain't nothing to watch but
  • the texas and the pilot-house; and do you reckon anybody's going to resk
  • his life for a texas and a pilot-house such a night as this, when
  • it's likely to break up and wash off down the river any minute?” Jim
  • couldn't say nothing to that, so he didn't try. “And besides,” I says,
  • “we might borrow something worth having out of the captain's stateroom.
  • Seegars, I bet you--and cost five cents apiece, solid cash. Steamboat
  • captains is always rich, and get sixty dollars a month, and _they_ don't
  • care a cent what a thing costs, you know, long as they want it. Stick a
  • candle in your pocket; I can't rest, Jim, till we give her a rummaging.
  • Do you reckon Tom Sawyer would ever go by this thing? Not for pie, he
  • wouldn't. He'd call it an adventure--that's what he'd call it; and he'd
  • land on that wreck if it was his last act. And wouldn't he throw style
  • into it?--wouldn't he spread himself, nor nothing? Why, you'd think it
  • was Christopher C'lumbus discovering Kingdom-Come. I wish Tom Sawyer
  • _was_ here.”
  • Jim he grumbled a little, but give in. He said we mustn't talk any more
  • than we could help, and then talk mighty low. The lightning showed us
  • the wreck again just in time, and we fetched the stabboard derrick, and
  • made fast there.
  • The deck was high out here. We went sneaking down the slope of it to
  • labboard, in the dark, towards the texas, feeling our way slow with our
  • feet, and spreading our hands out to fend off the guys, for it was so
  • dark we couldn't see no sign of them. Pretty soon we struck the forward
  • end of the skylight, and clumb on to it; and the next step fetched us in
  • front of the captain's door, which was open, and by Jimminy, away down
  • through the texas-hall we see a light! and all in the same second we
  • seem to hear low voices in yonder!
  • Jim whispered and said he was feeling powerful sick, and told me to come
  • along. I says, all right, and was going to start for the raft; but just
  • then I heard a voice wail out and say:
  • “Oh, please don't, boys; I swear I won't ever tell!”
  • Another voice said, pretty loud:
  • “It's a lie, Jim Turner. You've acted this way before. You always want
  • more'n your share of the truck, and you've always got it, too, because
  • you've swore 't if you didn't you'd tell. But this time you've said
  • it jest one time too many. You're the meanest, treacherousest hound in
  • this country.”
  • By this time Jim was gone for the raft. I was just a-biling with
  • curiosity; and I says to myself, Tom Sawyer wouldn't back out now,
  • and so I won't either; I'm a-going to see what's going on here. So I
  • dropped on my hands and knees in the little passage, and crept aft
  • in the dark till there warn't but one stateroom betwixt me and the
  • cross-hall of the texas. Then in there I see a man stretched on the
  • floor and tied hand and foot, and two men standing over him, and one
  • of them had a dim lantern in his hand, and the other one had a pistol.
  • This one kept pointing the pistol at the man's head on the floor, and
  • saying:
  • “I'd _like_ to! And I orter, too--a mean skunk!”
  • The man on the floor would shrivel up and say, “Oh, please don't, Bill;
  • I hain't ever goin' to tell.”
  • And every time he said that the man with the lantern would laugh and
  • say:
  • “'Deed you _ain't!_ You never said no truer thing 'n that, you bet
  • you.” And once he said: “Hear him beg! and yit if we hadn't got the
  • best of him and tied him he'd a killed us both. And what _for_? Jist
  • for noth'n. Jist because we stood on our _rights_--that's what for. But
  • I lay you ain't a-goin' to threaten nobody any more, Jim Turner. Put
  • _up_ that pistol, Bill.”
  • Bill says:
  • “I don't want to, Jake Packard. I'm for killin' him--and didn't he kill
  • old Hatfield jist the same way--and don't he deserve it?”
  • “But I don't _want_ him killed, and I've got my reasons for it.”
  • “Bless yo' heart for them words, Jake Packard! I'll never forgit you
  • long's I live!” says the man on the floor, sort of blubbering.
  • Packard didn't take no notice of that, but hung up his lantern on a nail
  • and started towards where I was there in the dark, and motioned Bill
  • to come. I crawfished as fast as I could about two yards, but the boat
  • slanted so that I couldn't make very good time; so to keep from getting
  • run over and catched I crawled into a stateroom on the upper side.
  • The man came a-pawing along in the dark, and when Packard got to my
  • stateroom, he says:
  • “Here--come in here.”
  • And in he come, and Bill after him. But before they got in I was up
  • in the upper berth, cornered, and sorry I come. Then they stood there,
  • with their hands on the ledge of the berth, and talked. I couldn't see
  • them, but I could tell where they was by the whisky they'd been having.
  • I was glad I didn't drink whisky; but it wouldn't made much difference
  • anyway, because most of the time they couldn't a treed me because I
  • didn't breathe. I was too scared. And, besides, a body _couldn't_
  • breathe and hear such talk. They talked low and earnest. Bill wanted
  • to kill Turner. He says:
  • “He's said he'll tell, and he will. If we was to give both our shares
  • to him _now_ it wouldn't make no difference after the row and the way
  • we've served him. Shore's you're born, he'll turn State's evidence; now
  • you hear _me_. I'm for putting him out of his troubles.”
  • “So'm I,” says Packard, very quiet.
  • “Blame it, I'd sorter begun to think you wasn't. Well, then, that's all
  • right. Le's go and do it.”
  • “Hold on a minute; I hain't had my say yit. You listen to me.
  • Shooting's good, but there's quieter ways if the thing's _got_ to be
  • done. But what I say is this: it ain't good sense to go court'n around
  • after a halter if you can git at what you're up to in some way that's
  • jist as good and at the same time don't bring you into no resks. Ain't
  • that so?”
  • “You bet it is. But how you goin' to manage it this time?”
  • “Well, my idea is this: we'll rustle around and gather up whatever
  • pickins we've overlooked in the staterooms, and shove for shore and hide
  • the truck. Then we'll wait. Now I say it ain't a-goin' to be more'n two
  • hours befo' this wrack breaks up and washes off down the river. See?
  • He'll be drownded, and won't have nobody to blame for it but his own
  • self. I reckon that's a considerble sight better 'n killin' of him.
  • I'm unfavorable to killin' a man as long as you can git aroun' it; it
  • ain't good sense, it ain't good morals. Ain't I right?”
  • “Yes, I reck'n you are. But s'pose she _don't_ break up and wash off?”
  • “Well, we can wait the two hours anyway and see, can't we?”
  • “All right, then; come along.”
  • So they started, and I lit out, all in a cold sweat, and scrambled
  • forward. It was dark as pitch there; but I said, in a kind of a coarse
  • whisper, “Jim!” and he answered up, right at my elbow, with a sort of a
  • moan, and I says:
  • “Quick, Jim, it ain't no time for fooling around and moaning; there's a
  • gang of murderers in yonder, and if we don't hunt up their boat and set
  • her drifting down the river so these fellows can't get away from the
  • wreck there's one of 'em going to be in a bad fix. But if we find their
  • boat we can put _all_ of 'em in a bad fix--for the sheriff 'll get 'em.
  • Quick--hurry! I'll hunt the labboard side, you hunt the stabboard. You
  • start at the raft, and--”
  • “Oh, my lordy, lordy! _raf'_? Dey ain' no raf' no mo'; she done broke
  • loose en gone I--en here we is!”
  • CHAPTER XIII.
  • WELL, I catched my breath and most fainted. Shut up on a wreck with
  • such a gang as that! But it warn't no time to be sentimentering. We'd
  • _got_ to find that boat now--had to have it for ourselves. So we went
  • a-quaking and shaking down the stabboard side, and slow work it was,
  • too--seemed a week before we got to the stern. No sign of a boat. Jim
  • said he didn't believe he could go any further--so scared he hadn't
  • hardly any strength left, he said. But I said, come on, if we get left
  • on this wreck we are in a fix, sure. So on we prowled again. We struck
  • for the stern of the texas, and found it, and then scrabbled along
  • forwards on the skylight, hanging on from shutter to shutter, for the
  • edge of the skylight was in the water. When we got pretty close to the
  • cross-hall door there was the skiff, sure enough! I could just barely
  • see her. I felt ever so thankful. In another second I would a been
  • aboard of her, but just then the door opened. One of the men stuck his
  • head out only about a couple of foot from me, and I thought I was gone;
  • but he jerked it in again, and says:
  • “Heave that blame lantern out o' sight, Bill!”
  • He flung a bag of something into the boat, and then got in himself and
  • set down. It was Packard. Then Bill _he_ come out and got in. Packard
  • says, in a low voice:
  • “All ready--shove off!”
  • I couldn't hardly hang on to the shutters, I was so weak. But Bill
  • says:
  • “Hold on--'d you go through him?”
  • “No. Didn't you?”
  • “No. So he's got his share o' the cash yet.”
  • “Well, then, come along; no use to take truck and leave money.”
  • “Say, won't he suspicion what we're up to?”
  • “Maybe he won't. But we got to have it anyway. Come along.”
  • So they got out and went in.
  • The door slammed to because it was on the careened side; and in a half
  • second I was in the boat, and Jim come tumbling after me. I out with my
  • knife and cut the rope, and away we went!
  • We didn't touch an oar, and we didn't speak nor whisper, nor hardly even
  • breathe. We went gliding swift along, dead silent, past the tip of the
  • paddle-box, and past the stern; then in a second or two more we was a
  • hundred yards below the wreck, and the darkness soaked her up, every
  • last sign of her, and we was safe, and knowed it.
  • When we was three or four hundred yards down-stream we see the lantern
  • show like a little spark at the texas door for a second, and we knowed
  • by that that the rascals had missed their boat, and was beginning to
  • understand that they was in just as much trouble now as Jim Turner was.
  • Then Jim manned the oars, and we took out after our raft. Now was the
  • first time that I begun to worry about the men--I reckon I hadn't
  • had time to before. I begun to think how dreadful it was, even for
  • murderers, to be in such a fix. I says to myself, there ain't no
  • telling but I might come to be a murderer myself yet, and then how would
  • I like it? So says I to Jim:
  • “The first light we see we'll land a hundred yards below it or above
  • it, in a place where it's a good hiding-place for you and the skiff, and
  • then I'll go and fix up some kind of a yarn, and get somebody to go for
  • that gang and get them out of their scrape, so they can be hung when
  • their time comes.”
  • But that idea was a failure; for pretty soon it begun to storm again,
  • and this time worse than ever. The rain poured down, and never a light
  • showed; everybody in bed, I reckon. We boomed along down the river,
  • watching for lights and watching for our raft. After a long time the
  • rain let up, but the clouds stayed, and the lightning kept whimpering,
  • and by and by a flash showed us a black thing ahead, floating, and we
  • made for it.
  • It was the raft, and mighty glad was we to get aboard of it again. We
  • seen a light now away down to the right, on shore. So I said I would
  • go for it. The skiff was half full of plunder which that gang had stole
  • there on the wreck. We hustled it on to the raft in a pile, and I told
  • Jim to float along down, and show a light when he judged he had gone
  • about two mile, and keep it burning till I come; then I manned my oars
  • and shoved for the light. As I got down towards it three or four more
  • showed--up on a hillside. It was a village. I closed in above the shore
  • light, and laid on my oars and floated. As I went by I see it was a
  • lantern hanging on the jackstaff of a double-hull ferryboat. I skimmed
  • around for the watchman, a-wondering whereabouts he slept; and by and
  • by I found him roosting on the bitts forward, with his head down between
  • his knees. I gave his shoulder two or three little shoves, and begun to
  • cry.
  • He stirred up in a kind of a startlish way; but when he see it was only
  • me he took a good gap and stretch, and then he says:
  • “Hello, what's up? Don't cry, bub. What's the trouble?”
  • I says:
  • “Pap, and mam, and sis, and--”
  • Then I broke down. He says:
  • “Oh, dang it now, _don't_ take on so; we all has to have our troubles,
  • and this 'n 'll come out all right. What's the matter with 'em?”
  • “They're--they're--are you the watchman of the boat?”
  • “Yes,” he says, kind of pretty-well-satisfied like. “I'm the captain
  • and the owner and the mate and the pilot and watchman and head
  • deck-hand; and sometimes I'm the freight and passengers. I ain't as
  • rich as old Jim Hornback, and I can't be so blame' generous and good
  • to Tom, Dick, and Harry as what he is, and slam around money the way he
  • does; but I've told him a many a time 't I wouldn't trade places with
  • him; for, says I, a sailor's life's the life for me, and I'm derned if
  • _I'd_ live two mile out o' town, where there ain't nothing ever goin'
  • on, not for all his spondulicks and as much more on top of it. Says I--”
  • I broke in and says:
  • “They're in an awful peck of trouble, and--”
  • “_Who_ is?”
  • “Why, pap and mam and sis and Miss Hooker; and if you'd take your
  • ferryboat and go up there--”
  • “Up where? Where are they?”
  • “On the wreck.”
  • “What wreck?”
  • “Why, there ain't but one.”
  • “What, you don't mean the Walter Scott?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Good land! what are they doin' _there_, for gracious sakes?”
  • “Well, they didn't go there a-purpose.”
  • “I bet they didn't! Why, great goodness, there ain't no chance for 'em
  • if they don't git off mighty quick! Why, how in the nation did they
  • ever git into such a scrape?”
  • “Easy enough. Miss Hooker was a-visiting up there to the town--”
  • “Yes, Booth's Landing--go on.”
  • “She was a-visiting there at Booth's Landing, and just in the edge of
  • the evening she started over with her nigger woman in the horse-ferry
  • to stay all night at her friend's house, Miss What-you-may-call-her I
  • disremember her name--and they lost their steering-oar, and swung
  • around and went a-floating down, stern first, about two mile, and
  • saddle-baggsed on the wreck, and the ferryman and the nigger woman and
  • the horses was all lost, but Miss Hooker she made a grab and got aboard
  • the wreck. Well, about an hour after dark we come along down in our
  • trading-scow, and it was so dark we didn't notice the wreck till we was
  • right on it; and so _we_ saddle-baggsed; but all of us was saved but
  • Bill Whipple--and oh, he _was_ the best cretur!--I most wish 't it had
  • been me, I do.”
  • “My George! It's the beatenest thing I ever struck. And _then_ what
  • did you all do?”
  • “Well, we hollered and took on, but it's so wide there we couldn't
  • make nobody hear. So pap said somebody got to get ashore and get help
  • somehow. I was the only one that could swim, so I made a dash for it,
  • and Miss Hooker she said if I didn't strike help sooner, come here and
  • hunt up her uncle, and he'd fix the thing. I made the land about a mile
  • below, and been fooling along ever since, trying to get people to do
  • something, but they said, 'What, in such a night and such a current?
  • There ain't no sense in it; go for the steam ferry.' Now if you'll go
  • and--”
  • “By Jackson, I'd _like_ to, and, blame it, I don't know but I will; but
  • who in the dingnation's a-going' to _pay_ for it? Do you reckon your
  • pap--”
  • “Why _that's_ all right. Miss Hooker she tole me, _particular_, that
  • her uncle Hornback--”
  • “Great guns! is _he_ her uncle? Looky here, you break for that light
  • over yonder-way, and turn out west when you git there, and about a
  • quarter of a mile out you'll come to the tavern; tell 'em to dart you
  • out to Jim Hornback's, and he'll foot the bill. And don't you fool
  • around any, because he'll want to know the news. Tell him I'll have
  • his niece all safe before he can get to town. Hump yourself, now; I'm
  • a-going up around the corner here to roust out my engineer.”
  • I struck for the light, but as soon as he turned the corner I went back
  • and got into my skiff and bailed her out, and then pulled up shore in
  • the easy water about six hundred yards, and tucked myself in among
  • some woodboats; for I couldn't rest easy till I could see the ferryboat
  • start. But take it all around, I was feeling ruther comfortable on
  • accounts of taking all this trouble for that gang, for not many would
  • a done it. I wished the widow knowed about it. I judged she would be
  • proud of me for helping these rapscallions, because rapscallions and
  • dead beats is the kind the widow and good people takes the most interest
  • in.
  • Well, before long here comes the wreck, dim and dusky, sliding along
  • down! A kind of cold shiver went through me, and then I struck out for
  • her. She was very deep, and I see in a minute there warn't much chance
  • for anybody being alive in her. I pulled all around her and hollered
  • a little, but there wasn't any answer; all dead still. I felt a little
  • bit heavy-hearted about the gang, but not much, for I reckoned if they
  • could stand it I could.
  • Then here comes the ferryboat; so I shoved for the middle of the river
  • on a long down-stream slant; and when I judged I was out of eye-reach
  • I laid on my oars, and looked back and see her go and smell around the
  • wreck for Miss Hooker's remainders, because the captain would know her
  • uncle Hornback would want them; and then pretty soon the ferryboat give
  • it up and went for the shore, and I laid into my work and went a-booming
  • down the river.
  • It did seem a powerful long time before Jim's light showed up; and when
  • it did show it looked like it was a thousand mile off. By the time I
  • got there the sky was beginning to get a little gray in the east; so we
  • struck for an island, and hid the raft, and sunk the skiff, and turned
  • in and slept like dead people.
  • CHAPTER XIV.
  • BY and by, when we got up, we turned over the truck the gang had stole
  • off of the wreck, and found boots, and blankets, and clothes, and all
  • sorts of other things, and a lot of books, and a spyglass, and three
  • boxes of seegars. We hadn't ever been this rich before in neither of
  • our lives. The seegars was prime. We laid off all the afternoon in the
  • woods talking, and me reading the books, and having a general good
  • time. I told Jim all about what happened inside the wreck and at the
  • ferryboat, and I said these kinds of things was adventures; but he said
  • he didn't want no more adventures. He said that when I went in the
  • texas and he crawled back to get on the raft and found her gone he
  • nearly died, because he judged it was all up with _him_ anyway it could
  • be fixed; for if he didn't get saved he would get drownded; and if he
  • did get saved, whoever saved him would send him back home so as to get
  • the reward, and then Miss Watson would sell him South, sure. Well, he
  • was right; he was most always right; he had an uncommon level head for a
  • nigger.
  • I read considerable to Jim about kings and dukes and earls and such, and
  • how gaudy they dressed, and how much style they put on, and called each
  • other your majesty, and your grace, and your lordship, and so on, 'stead
  • of mister; and Jim's eyes bugged out, and he was interested. He says:
  • “I didn' know dey was so many un um. I hain't hearn 'bout none un um,
  • skasely, but ole King Sollermun, onless you counts dem kings dat's in a
  • pack er k'yards. How much do a king git?”
  • “Get?” I says; “why, they get a thousand dollars a month if they want
  • it; they can have just as much as they want; everything belongs to
  • them.”
  • “_Ain'_ dat gay? En what dey got to do, Huck?”
  • “_They_ don't do nothing! Why, how you talk! They just set around.”
  • “No; is dat so?”
  • “Of course it is. They just set around--except, maybe, when there's a
  • war; then they go to the war. But other times they just lazy around; or
  • go hawking--just hawking and sp--Sh!--d' you hear a noise?”
  • We skipped out and looked; but it warn't nothing but the flutter of a
  • steamboat's wheel away down, coming around the point; so we come back.
  • “Yes,” says I, “and other times, when things is dull, they fuss with the
  • parlyment; and if everybody don't go just so he whacks their heads off.
  • But mostly they hang round the harem.”
  • “Roun' de which?”
  • “Harem.”
  • “What's de harem?”
  • “The place where he keeps his wives. Don't you know about the harem?
  • Solomon had one; he had about a million wives.”
  • “Why, yes, dat's so; I--I'd done forgot it. A harem's a bo'd'n-house, I
  • reck'n. Mos' likely dey has rackety times in de nussery. En I reck'n
  • de wives quarrels considable; en dat 'crease de racket. Yit dey say
  • Sollermun de wises' man dat ever live'. I doan' take no stock in
  • dat. Bekase why: would a wise man want to live in de mids' er sich a
  • blim-blammin' all de time? No--'deed he wouldn't. A wise man 'ud take
  • en buil' a biler-factry; en den he could shet _down_ de biler-factry
  • when he want to res'.”
  • “Well, but he _was_ the wisest man, anyway; because the widow she told
  • me so, her own self.”
  • “I doan k'yer what de widder say, he _warn't_ no wise man nuther. He
  • had some er de dad-fetchedes' ways I ever see. Does you know 'bout dat
  • chile dat he 'uz gwyne to chop in two?”
  • “Yes, the widow told me all about it.”
  • “_Well_, den! Warn' dat de beatenes' notion in de worl'? You jes'
  • take en look at it a minute. Dah's de stump, dah--dat's one er de women;
  • heah's you--dat's de yuther one; I's Sollermun; en dish yer dollar bill's
  • de chile. Bofe un you claims it. What does I do? Does I shin aroun'
  • mongs' de neighbors en fine out which un you de bill _do_ b'long to, en
  • han' it over to de right one, all safe en soun', de way dat anybody dat
  • had any gumption would? No; I take en whack de bill in _two_, en give
  • half un it to you, en de yuther half to de yuther woman. Dat's de way
  • Sollermun was gwyne to do wid de chile. Now I want to ast you: what's
  • de use er dat half a bill?--can't buy noth'n wid it. En what use is a
  • half a chile? I wouldn' give a dern for a million un um.”
  • “But hang it, Jim, you've clean missed the point--blame it, you've missed
  • it a thousand mile.”
  • “Who? Me? Go 'long. Doan' talk to me 'bout yo' pints. I reck'n I
  • knows sense when I sees it; en dey ain' no sense in sich doin's as
  • dat. De 'spute warn't 'bout a half a chile, de 'spute was 'bout a whole
  • chile; en de man dat think he kin settle a 'spute 'bout a whole chile
  • wid a half a chile doan' know enough to come in out'n de rain. Doan'
  • talk to me 'bout Sollermun, Huck, I knows him by de back.”
  • “But I tell you you don't get the point.”
  • “Blame de point! I reck'n I knows what I knows. En mine you, de _real_
  • pint is down furder--it's down deeper. It lays in de way Sollermun was
  • raised. You take a man dat's got on'y one or two chillen; is dat man
  • gwyne to be waseful o' chillen? No, he ain't; he can't 'ford it. _He_
  • know how to value 'em. But you take a man dat's got 'bout five million
  • chillen runnin' roun' de house, en it's diffunt. _He_ as soon chop a
  • chile in two as a cat. Dey's plenty mo'. A chile er two, mo' er less,
  • warn't no consekens to Sollermun, dad fatch him!”
  • I never see such a nigger. If he got a notion in his head once, there
  • warn't no getting it out again. He was the most down on Solomon of
  • any nigger I ever see. So I went to talking about other kings, and let
  • Solomon slide. I told about Louis Sixteenth that got his head cut off
  • in France long time ago; and about his little boy the dolphin, that
  • would a been a king, but they took and shut him up in jail, and some say
  • he died there.
  • “Po' little chap.”
  • “But some says he got out and got away, and come to America.”
  • “Dat's good! But he'll be pooty lonesome--dey ain' no kings here, is
  • dey, Huck?”
  • “No.”
  • “Den he cain't git no situation. What he gwyne to do?”
  • “Well, I don't know. Some of them gets on the police, and some of them
  • learns people how to talk French.”
  • “Why, Huck, doan' de French people talk de same way we does?”
  • “_No_, Jim; you couldn't understand a word they said--not a single word.”
  • “Well, now, I be ding-busted! How do dat come?”
  • “I don't know; but it's so. I got some of their jabber out of a book.
  • S'pose a man was to come to you and say Polly-voo-franzy--what would you
  • think?”
  • “I wouldn' think nuff'n; I'd take en bust him over de head--dat is, if he
  • warn't white. I wouldn't 'low no nigger to call me dat.”
  • “Shucks, it ain't calling you anything. It's only saying, do you know
  • how to talk French?”
  • “Well, den, why couldn't he _say_ it?”
  • “Why, he _is_ a-saying it. That's a Frenchman's _way_ of saying it.”
  • “Well, it's a blame ridicklous way, en I doan' want to hear no mo' 'bout
  • it. Dey ain' no sense in it.”
  • “Looky here, Jim; does a cat talk like we do?”
  • “No, a cat don't.”
  • “Well, does a cow?”
  • “No, a cow don't, nuther.”
  • “Does a cat talk like a cow, or a cow talk like a cat?”
  • “No, dey don't.”
  • “It's natural and right for 'em to talk different from each other, ain't
  • it?”
  • “Course.”
  • “And ain't it natural and right for a cat and a cow to talk different
  • from _us_?”
  • “Why, mos' sholy it is.”
  • “Well, then, why ain't it natural and right for a _Frenchman_ to talk
  • different from us? You answer me that.”
  • “Is a cat a man, Huck?”
  • “No.”
  • “Well, den, dey ain't no sense in a cat talkin' like a man. Is a cow a
  • man?--er is a cow a cat?”
  • “No, she ain't either of them.”
  • “Well, den, she ain't got no business to talk like either one er the
  • yuther of 'em. Is a Frenchman a man?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “_Well_, den! Dad blame it, why doan' he _talk_ like a man? You answer
  • me _dat_!”
  • I see it warn't no use wasting words--you can't learn a nigger to argue.
  • So I quit.
  • CHAPTER XV.
  • WE judged that three nights more would fetch us to Cairo, at the bottom
  • of Illinois, where the Ohio River comes in, and that was what we was
  • after. We would sell the raft and get on a steamboat and go way up the
  • Ohio amongst the free States, and then be out of trouble.
  • Well, the second night a fog begun to come on, and we made for a towhead
  • to tie to, for it wouldn't do to try to run in a fog; but when I paddled
  • ahead in the canoe, with the line to make fast, there warn't anything
  • but little saplings to tie to. I passed the line around one of them
  • right on the edge of the cut bank, but there was a stiff current, and
  • the raft come booming down so lively she tore it out by the roots and
  • away she went. I see the fog closing down, and it made me so sick and
  • scared I couldn't budge for most a half a minute it seemed to me--and
  • then there warn't no raft in sight; you couldn't see twenty yards. I
  • jumped into the canoe and run back to the stern, and grabbed the paddle
  • and set her back a stroke. But she didn't come. I was in such a hurry
  • I hadn't untied her. I got up and tried to untie her, but I was so
  • excited my hands shook so I couldn't hardly do anything with them.
  • As soon as I got started I took out after the raft, hot and heavy, right
  • down the towhead. That was all right as far as it went, but the towhead
  • warn't sixty yards long, and the minute I flew by the foot of it I shot
  • out into the solid white fog, and hadn't no more idea which way I was
  • going than a dead man.
  • Thinks I, it won't do to paddle; first I know I'll run into the bank
  • or a towhead or something; I got to set still and float, and yet it's
  • mighty fidgety business to have to hold your hands still at such a time.
  • I whooped and listened. Away down there somewheres I hears a small
  • whoop, and up comes my spirits. I went tearing after it, listening
  • sharp to hear it again. The next time it come I see I warn't heading
  • for it, but heading away to the right of it. And the next time I was
  • heading away to the left of it--and not gaining on it much either, for
  • I was flying around, this way and that and t'other, but it was going
  • straight ahead all the time.
  • I did wish the fool would think to beat a tin pan, and beat it all the
  • time, but he never did, and it was the still places between the whoops
  • that was making the trouble for me. Well, I fought along, and directly
  • I hears the whoop _behind_ me. I was tangled good now. That was
  • somebody else's whoop, or else I was turned around.
  • I throwed the paddle down. I heard the whoop again; it was behind me
  • yet, but in a different place; it kept coming, and kept changing its
  • place, and I kept answering, till by and by it was in front of me again,
  • and I knowed the current had swung the canoe's head down-stream, and I
  • was all right if that was Jim and not some other raftsman hollering.
  • I couldn't tell nothing about voices in a fog, for nothing don't look
  • natural nor sound natural in a fog.
  • The whooping went on, and in about a minute I come a-booming down on a
  • cut bank with smoky ghosts of big trees on it, and the current throwed
  • me off to the left and shot by, amongst a lot of snags that fairly
  • roared, the currrent was tearing by them so swift.
  • In another second or two it was solid white and still again. I set
  • perfectly still then, listening to my heart thump, and I reckon I didn't
  • draw a breath while it thumped a hundred.
  • I just give up then. I knowed what the matter was. That cut bank
  • was an island, and Jim had gone down t'other side of it. It warn't no
  • towhead that you could float by in ten minutes. It had the big timber
  • of a regular island; it might be five or six miles long and more than
  • half a mile wide.
  • I kept quiet, with my ears cocked, about fifteen minutes, I reckon. I
  • was floating along, of course, four or five miles an hour; but you don't
  • ever think of that. No, you _feel_ like you are laying dead still on
  • the water; and if a little glimpse of a snag slips by you don't think to
  • yourself how fast _you're_ going, but you catch your breath and think,
  • my! how that snag's tearing along. If you think it ain't dismal and
  • lonesome out in a fog that way by yourself in the night, you try it
  • once--you'll see.
  • Next, for about a half an hour, I whoops now and then; at last I hears
  • the answer a long ways off, and tries to follow it, but I couldn't do
  • it, and directly I judged I'd got into a nest of towheads, for I had
  • little dim glimpses of them on both sides of me--sometimes just a narrow
  • channel between, and some that I couldn't see I knowed was there because
  • I'd hear the wash of the current against the old dead brush and trash
  • that hung over the banks. Well, I warn't long loosing the whoops down
  • amongst the towheads; and I only tried to chase them a little while,
  • anyway, because it was worse than chasing a Jack-o'-lantern. You never
  • knowed a sound dodge around so, and swap places so quick and so much.
  • I had to claw away from the bank pretty lively four or five times, to
  • keep from knocking the islands out of the river; and so I judged the
  • raft must be butting into the bank every now and then, or else it would
  • get further ahead and clear out of hearing--it was floating a little
  • faster than what I was.
  • Well, I seemed to be in the open river again by and by, but I couldn't
  • hear no sign of a whoop nowheres. I reckoned Jim had fetched up on a
  • snag, maybe, and it was all up with him. I was good and tired, so I
  • laid down in the canoe and said I wouldn't bother no more. I didn't
  • want to go to sleep, of course; but I was so sleepy I couldn't help it;
  • so I thought I would take jest one little cat-nap.
  • But I reckon it was more than a cat-nap, for when I waked up the stars
  • was shining bright, the fog was all gone, and I was spinning down a
  • big bend stern first. First I didn't know where I was; I thought I was
  • dreaming; and when things began to come back to me they seemed to come
  • up dim out of last week.
  • It was a monstrous big river here, with the tallest and the thickest
  • kind of timber on both banks; just a solid wall, as well as I could see
  • by the stars. I looked away down-stream, and seen a black speck on the
  • water. I took after it; but when I got to it it warn't nothing but a
  • couple of sawlogs made fast together. Then I see another speck, and
  • chased that; then another, and this time I was right. It was the raft.
  • When I got to it Jim was setting there with his head down between his
  • knees, asleep, with his right arm hanging over the steering-oar. The
  • other oar was smashed off, and the raft was littered up with leaves and
  • branches and dirt. So she'd had a rough time.
  • I made fast and laid down under Jim's nose on the raft, and began to
  • gap, and stretch my fists out against Jim, and says:
  • “Hello, Jim, have I been asleep? Why didn't you stir me up?”
  • “Goodness gracious, is dat you, Huck? En you ain' dead--you ain'
  • drownded--you's back agin? It's too good for true, honey, it's too good
  • for true. Lemme look at you chile, lemme feel o' you. No, you ain'
  • dead! you's back agin, 'live en soun', jis de same ole Huck--de same ole
  • Huck, thanks to goodness!”
  • “What's the matter with you, Jim? You been a-drinking?”
  • “Drinkin'? Has I ben a-drinkin'? Has I had a chance to be a-drinkin'?”
  • “Well, then, what makes you talk so wild?”
  • “How does I talk wild?”
  • “_How_? Why, hain't you been talking about my coming back, and all that
  • stuff, as if I'd been gone away?”
  • “Huck--Huck Finn, you look me in de eye; look me in de eye. _Hain't_ you
  • ben gone away?”
  • “Gone away? Why, what in the nation do you mean? I hain't been gone
  • anywheres. Where would I go to?”
  • “Well, looky here, boss, dey's sumf'n wrong, dey is. Is I _me_, or who
  • _is_ I? Is I heah, or whah _is_ I? Now dat's what I wants to know.”
  • “Well, I think you're here, plain enough, but I think you're a
  • tangle-headed old fool, Jim.”
  • “I is, is I? Well, you answer me dis: Didn't you tote out de line in
  • de canoe fer to make fas' to de tow-head?”
  • “No, I didn't. What tow-head? I hain't see no tow-head.”
  • “You hain't seen no towhead? Looky here, didn't de line pull loose en
  • de raf' go a-hummin' down de river, en leave you en de canoe behine in
  • de fog?”
  • “What fog?”
  • “Why, de fog!--de fog dat's been aroun' all night. En didn't you whoop,
  • en didn't I whoop, tell we got mix' up in de islands en one un us got
  • los' en t'other one was jis' as good as los', 'kase he didn' know whah
  • he wuz? En didn't I bust up agin a lot er dem islands en have a turrible
  • time en mos' git drownded? Now ain' dat so, boss--ain't it so? You
  • answer me dat.”
  • “Well, this is too many for me, Jim. I hain't seen no fog, nor no
  • islands, nor no troubles, nor nothing. I been setting here talking with
  • you all night till you went to sleep about ten minutes ago, and I reckon
  • I done the same. You couldn't a got drunk in that time, so of course
  • you've been dreaming.”
  • “Dad fetch it, how is I gwyne to dream all dat in ten minutes?”
  • “Well, hang it all, you did dream it, because there didn't any of it
  • happen.”
  • “But, Huck, it's all jis' as plain to me as--”
  • “It don't make no difference how plain it is; there ain't nothing in it.
  • I know, because I've been here all the time.”
  • Jim didn't say nothing for about five minutes, but set there studying
  • over it. Then he says:
  • “Well, den, I reck'n I did dream it, Huck; but dog my cats ef it ain't
  • de powerfullest dream I ever see. En I hain't ever had no dream b'fo'
  • dat's tired me like dis one.”
  • “Oh, well, that's all right, because a dream does tire a body like
  • everything sometimes. But this one was a staving dream; tell me all
  • about it, Jim.”
  • So Jim went to work and told me the whole thing right through, just as
  • it happened, only he painted it up considerable. Then he said he must
  • start in and “'terpret” it, because it was sent for a warning. He said
  • the first towhead stood for a man that would try to do us some good, but
  • the current was another man that would get us away from him. The whoops
  • was warnings that would come to us every now and then, and if we didn't
  • try hard to make out to understand them they'd just take us into bad
  • luck, 'stead of keeping us out of it. The lot of towheads was troubles
  • we was going to get into with quarrelsome people and all kinds of mean
  • folks, but if we minded our business and didn't talk back and aggravate
  • them, we would pull through and get out of the fog and into the big
  • clear river, which was the free States, and wouldn't have no more
  • trouble.
  • It had clouded up pretty dark just after I got on to the raft, but it
  • was clearing up again now.
  • “Oh, well, that's all interpreted well enough as far as it goes, Jim,” I
  • says; “but what does _these_ things stand for?”
  • It was the leaves and rubbish on the raft and the smashed oar. You
  • could see them first-rate now.
  • Jim looked at the trash, and then looked at me, and back at the trash
  • again. He had got the dream fixed so strong in his head that he
  • couldn't seem to shake it loose and get the facts back into its place
  • again right away. But when he did get the thing straightened around he
  • looked at me steady without ever smiling, and says:
  • “What do dey stan' for? I'se gwyne to tell you. When I got all wore
  • out wid work, en wid de callin' for you, en went to sleep, my heart wuz
  • mos' broke bekase you wuz los', en I didn' k'yer no' mo' what become
  • er me en de raf'. En when I wake up en fine you back agin, all safe
  • en soun', de tears come, en I could a got down on my knees en kiss yo'
  • foot, I's so thankful. En all you wuz thinkin' 'bout wuz how you could
  • make a fool uv ole Jim wid a lie. Dat truck dah is _trash_; en trash
  • is what people is dat puts dirt on de head er dey fren's en makes 'em
  • ashamed.”
  • Then he got up slow and walked to the wigwam, and went in there without
  • saying anything but that. But that was enough. It made me feel so mean
  • I could almost kissed _his_ foot to get him to take it back.
  • It was fifteen minutes before I could work myself up to go and humble
  • myself to a nigger; but I done it, and I warn't ever sorry for it
  • afterwards, neither. I didn't do him no more mean tricks, and I
  • wouldn't done that one if I'd a knowed it would make him feel that way.
  • CHAPTER XVI.
  • WE slept most all day, and started out at night, a little ways behind a
  • monstrous long raft that was as long going by as a procession. She had
  • four long sweeps at each end, so we judged she carried as many as thirty
  • men, likely. She had five big wigwams aboard, wide apart, and an open
  • camp fire in the middle, and a tall flag-pole at each end. There was a
  • power of style about her. It _amounted_ to something being a raftsman
  • on such a craft as that.
  • We went drifting down into a big bend, and the night clouded up and got
  • hot. The river was very wide, and was walled with solid timber on
  • both sides; you couldn't see a break in it hardly ever, or a light. We
  • talked about Cairo, and wondered whether we would know it when we got to
  • it. I said likely we wouldn't, because I had heard say there warn't but
  • about a dozen houses there, and if they didn't happen to have them lit
  • up, how was we going to know we was passing a town? Jim said if the two
  • big rivers joined together there, that would show. But I said maybe
  • we might think we was passing the foot of an island and coming into the
  • same old river again. That disturbed Jim--and me too. So the question
  • was, what to do? I said, paddle ashore the first time a light showed,
  • and tell them pap was behind, coming along with a trading-scow, and
  • was a green hand at the business, and wanted to know how far it was to
  • Cairo. Jim thought it was a good idea, so we took a smoke on it and
  • waited.
  • There warn't nothing to do now but to look out sharp for the town, and
  • not pass it without seeing it. He said he'd be mighty sure to see it,
  • because he'd be a free man the minute he seen it, but if he missed it
  • he'd be in a slave country again and no more show for freedom. Every
  • little while he jumps up and says:
  • “Dah she is?”
  • But it warn't. It was Jack-o'-lanterns, or lightning bugs; so he set
  • down again, and went to watching, same as before. Jim said it made him
  • all over trembly and feverish to be so close to freedom. Well, I can
  • tell you it made me all over trembly and feverish, too, to hear him,
  • because I begun to get it through my head that he _was_ most free--and
  • who was to blame for it? Why, _me_. I couldn't get that out of my
  • conscience, no how nor no way. It got to troubling me so I couldn't
  • rest; I couldn't stay still in one place. It hadn't ever come home to
  • me before, what this thing was that I was doing. But now it did; and it
  • stayed with me, and scorched me more and more. I tried to make out to
  • myself that I warn't to blame, because I didn't run Jim off from his
  • rightful owner; but it warn't no use, conscience up and says, every
  • time, “But you knowed he was running for his freedom, and you could a
  • paddled ashore and told somebody.” That was so--I couldn't get around
  • that noway. That was where it pinched. Conscience says to me, “What
  • had poor Miss Watson done to you that you could see her nigger go off
  • right under your eyes and never say one single word? What did that poor
  • old woman do to you that you could treat her so mean? Why, she tried to
  • learn you your book, she tried to learn you your manners, she tried to
  • be good to you every way she knowed how. _That's_ what she done.”
  • I got to feeling so mean and so miserable I most wished I was dead. I
  • fidgeted up and down the raft, abusing myself to myself, and Jim was
  • fidgeting up and down past me. We neither of us could keep still.
  • Every time he danced around and says, “Dah's Cairo!” it went through me
  • like a shot, and I thought if it _was_ Cairo I reckoned I would die of
  • miserableness.
  • Jim talked out loud all the time while I was talking to myself. He was
  • saying how the first thing he would do when he got to a free State he
  • would go to saving up money and never spend a single cent, and when he
  • got enough he would buy his wife, which was owned on a farm close to
  • where Miss Watson lived; and then they would both work to buy the
  • two children, and if their master wouldn't sell them, they'd get an
  • Ab'litionist to go and steal them.
  • It most froze me to hear such talk. He wouldn't ever dared to talk such
  • talk in his life before. Just see what a difference it made in him the
  • minute he judged he was about free. It was according to the old saying,
  • “Give a nigger an inch and he'll take an ell.” Thinks I, this is what
  • comes of my not thinking. Here was this nigger, which I had as good
  • as helped to run away, coming right out flat-footed and saying he would
  • steal his children--children that belonged to a man I didn't even know; a
  • man that hadn't ever done me no harm.
  • I was sorry to hear Jim say that, it was such a lowering of him. My
  • conscience got to stirring me up hotter than ever, until at last I says
  • to it, “Let up on me--it ain't too late yet--I'll paddle ashore at the
  • first light and tell.” I felt easy and happy and light as a feather
  • right off. All my troubles was gone. I went to looking out sharp for a
  • light, and sort of singing to myself. By and by one showed. Jim sings
  • out:
  • “We's safe, Huck, we's safe! Jump up and crack yo' heels! Dat's de
  • good ole Cairo at las', I jis knows it!”
  • I says:
  • “I'll take the canoe and go and see, Jim. It mightn't be, you know.”
  • He jumped and got the canoe ready, and put his old coat in the bottom
  • for me to set on, and give me the paddle; and as I shoved off, he says:
  • “Pooty soon I'll be a-shout'n' for joy, en I'll say, it's all on
  • accounts o' Huck; I's a free man, en I couldn't ever ben free ef it
  • hadn' ben for Huck; Huck done it. Jim won't ever forgit you, Huck;
  • you's de bes' fren' Jim's ever had; en you's de _only_ fren' ole Jim's
  • got now.”
  • I was paddling off, all in a sweat to tell on him; but when he says
  • this, it seemed to kind of take the tuck all out of me. I went along
  • slow then, and I warn't right down certain whether I was glad I started
  • or whether I warn't. When I was fifty yards off, Jim says:
  • “Dah you goes, de ole true Huck; de on'y white genlman dat ever kep' his
  • promise to ole Jim.”
  • Well, I just felt sick. But I says, I _got_ to do it--I can't get _out_
  • of it. Right then along comes a skiff with two men in it with guns, and
  • they stopped and I stopped. One of them says:
  • “What's that yonder?”
  • “A piece of a raft,” I says.
  • “Do you belong on it?”
  • “Yes, sir.”
  • “Any men on it?”
  • “Only one, sir.”
  • “Well, there's five niggers run off to-night up yonder, above the head
  • of the bend. Is your man white or black?”
  • I didn't answer up prompt. I tried to, but the words wouldn't come. I
  • tried for a second or two to brace up and out with it, but I warn't man
  • enough--hadn't the spunk of a rabbit. I see I was weakening; so I just
  • give up trying, and up and says:
  • “He's white.”
  • “I reckon we'll go and see for ourselves.”
  • “I wish you would,” says I, “because it's pap that's there, and maybe
  • you'd help me tow the raft ashore where the light is. He's sick--and so
  • is mam and Mary Ann.”
  • “Oh, the devil! we're in a hurry, boy. But I s'pose we've got to.
  • Come, buckle to your paddle, and let's get along.”
  • I buckled to my paddle and they laid to their oars. When we had made a
  • stroke or two, I says:
  • “Pap'll be mighty much obleeged to you, I can tell you. Everybody goes
  • away when I want them to help me tow the raft ashore, and I can't do it
  • by myself.”
  • “Well, that's infernal mean. Odd, too. Say, boy, what's the matter
  • with your father?”
  • “It's the--a--the--well, it ain't anything much.”
  • They stopped pulling. It warn't but a mighty little ways to the raft
  • now. One says:
  • “Boy, that's a lie. What _is_ the matter with your pap? Answer up
  • square now, and it'll be the better for you.”
  • “I will, sir, I will, honest--but don't leave us, please. It's
  • the--the--Gentlemen, if you'll only pull ahead, and let me heave you the
  • headline, you won't have to come a-near the raft--please do.”
  • “Set her back, John, set her back!” says one. They backed water. “Keep
  • away, boy--keep to looard. Confound it, I just expect the wind has
  • blowed it to us. Your pap's got the small-pox, and you know it precious
  • well. Why didn't you come out and say so? Do you want to spread it all
  • over?”
  • “Well,” says I, a-blubbering, “I've told everybody before, and they just
  • went away and left us.”
  • “Poor devil, there's something in that. We are right down sorry for
  • you, but we--well, hang it, we don't want the small-pox, you see. Look
  • here, I'll tell you what to do. Don't you try to land by yourself, or
  • you'll smash everything to pieces. You float along down about twenty
  • miles, and you'll come to a town on the left-hand side of the river. It
  • will be long after sun-up then, and when you ask for help you tell them
  • your folks are all down with chills and fever. Don't be a fool again,
  • and let people guess what is the matter. Now we're trying to do you a
  • kindness; so you just put twenty miles between us, that's a good boy.
  • It wouldn't do any good to land yonder where the light is--it's only a
  • wood-yard. Say, I reckon your father's poor, and I'm bound to say he's
  • in pretty hard luck. Here, I'll put a twenty-dollar gold piece on this
  • board, and you get it when it floats by. I feel mighty mean to leave
  • you; but my kingdom! it won't do to fool with small-pox, don't you see?”
  • “Hold on, Parker,” says the other man, “here's a twenty to put on the
  • board for me. Good-bye, boy; you do as Mr. Parker told you, and you'll
  • be all right.”
  • “That's so, my boy--good-bye, good-bye. If you see any runaway niggers
  • you get help and nab them, and you can make some money by it.”
  • “Good-bye, sir,” says I; “I won't let no runaway niggers get by me if I
  • can help it.”
  • They went off and I got aboard the raft, feeling bad and low, because I
  • knowed very well I had done wrong, and I see it warn't no use for me
  • to try to learn to do right; a body that don't get _started_ right when
  • he's little ain't got no show--when the pinch comes there ain't nothing
  • to back him up and keep him to his work, and so he gets beat. Then I
  • thought a minute, and says to myself, hold on; s'pose you'd a done right
  • and give Jim up, would you felt better than what you do now? No, says
  • I, I'd feel bad--I'd feel just the same way I do now. Well, then, says
  • I, what's the use you learning to do right when it's troublesome to do
  • right and ain't no trouble to do wrong, and the wages is just the same?
  • I was stuck. I couldn't answer that. So I reckoned I wouldn't bother
  • no more about it, but after this always do whichever come handiest at
  • the time.
  • I went into the wigwam; Jim warn't there. I looked all around; he
  • warn't anywhere. I says:
  • “Jim!”
  • “Here I is, Huck. Is dey out o' sight yit? Don't talk loud.”
  • He was in the river under the stern oar, with just his nose out. I told
  • him they were out of sight, so he come aboard. He says:
  • “I was a-listenin' to all de talk, en I slips into de river en was gwyne
  • to shove for sho' if dey come aboard. Den I was gwyne to swim to de
  • raf' agin when dey was gone. But lawsy, how you did fool 'em, Huck!
  • Dat _wuz_ de smartes' dodge! I tell you, chile, I'spec it save' ole
  • Jim--ole Jim ain't going to forgit you for dat, honey.”
  • Then we talked about the money. It was a pretty good raise--twenty
  • dollars apiece. Jim said we could take deck passage on a steamboat
  • now, and the money would last us as far as we wanted to go in the free
  • States. He said twenty mile more warn't far for the raft to go, but he
  • wished we was already there.
  • Towards daybreak we tied up, and Jim was mighty particular about hiding
  • the raft good. Then he worked all day fixing things in bundles, and
  • getting all ready to quit rafting.
  • That night about ten we hove in sight of the lights of a town away down
  • in a left-hand bend.
  • I went off in the canoe to ask about it. Pretty soon I found a man out
  • in the river with a skiff, setting a trot-line. I ranged up and says:
  • “Mister, is that town Cairo?”
  • “Cairo? no. You must be a blame' fool.”
  • “What town is it, mister?”
  • “If you want to know, go and find out. If you stay here botherin'
  • around me for about a half a minute longer you'll get something you
  • won't want.”
  • I paddled to the raft. Jim was awful disappointed, but I said never
  • mind, Cairo would be the next place, I reckoned.
  • We passed another town before daylight, and I was going out again; but
  • it was high ground, so I didn't go. No high ground about Cairo, Jim
  • said. I had forgot it. We laid up for the day on a towhead tolerable
  • close to the left-hand bank. I begun to suspicion something. So did
  • Jim. I says:
  • “Maybe we went by Cairo in the fog that night.”
  • He says:
  • “Doan' le's talk about it, Huck. Po' niggers can't have no luck. I
  • awluz 'spected dat rattlesnake-skin warn't done wid its work.”
  • “I wish I'd never seen that snake-skin, Jim--I do wish I'd never laid
  • eyes on it.”
  • “It ain't yo' fault, Huck; you didn' know. Don't you blame yo'self
  • 'bout it.”
  • When it was daylight, here was the clear Ohio water inshore, sure
  • enough, and outside was the old regular Muddy! So it was all up with
  • Cairo.
  • We talked it all over. It wouldn't do to take to the shore; we couldn't
  • take the raft up the stream, of course. There warn't no way but to wait
  • for dark, and start back in the canoe and take the chances. So we slept
  • all day amongst the cottonwood thicket, so as to be fresh for the work,
  • and when we went back to the raft about dark the canoe was gone!
  • We didn't say a word for a good while. There warn't anything to
  • say. We both knowed well enough it was some more work of the
  • rattlesnake-skin; so what was the use to talk about it? It would only
  • look like we was finding fault, and that would be bound to fetch more
  • bad luck--and keep on fetching it, too, till we knowed enough to keep
  • still.
  • By and by we talked about what we better do, and found there warn't no
  • way but just to go along down with the raft till we got a chance to buy
  • a canoe to go back in. We warn't going to borrow it when there warn't
  • anybody around, the way pap would do, for that might set people after
  • us.
  • So we shoved out after dark on the raft.
  • Anybody that don't believe yet that it's foolishness to handle a
  • snake-skin, after all that that snake-skin done for us, will believe it
  • now if they read on and see what more it done for us.
  • The place to buy canoes is off of rafts laying up at shore. But we
  • didn't see no rafts laying up; so we went along during three hours and
  • more. Well, the night got gray and ruther thick, which is the next
  • meanest thing to fog. You can't tell the shape of the river, and you
  • can't see no distance. It got to be very late and still, and then along
  • comes a steamboat up the river. We lit the lantern, and judged she
  • would see it. Up-stream boats didn't generly come close to us; they
  • go out and follow the bars and hunt for easy water under the reefs; but
  • nights like this they bull right up the channel against the whole river.
  • We could hear her pounding along, but we didn't see her good till she
  • was close. She aimed right for us. Often they do that and try to see
  • how close they can come without touching; sometimes the wheel bites off
  • a sweep, and then the pilot sticks his head out and laughs, and thinks
  • he's mighty smart. Well, here she comes, and we said she was going to
  • try and shave us; but she didn't seem to be sheering off a bit. She
  • was a big one, and she was coming in a hurry, too, looking like a black
  • cloud with rows of glow-worms around it; but all of a sudden she bulged
  • out, big and scary, with a long row of wide-open furnace doors shining
  • like red-hot teeth, and her monstrous bows and guards hanging right
  • over us. There was a yell at us, and a jingling of bells to stop the
  • engines, a powwow of cussing, and whistling of steam--and as Jim went
  • overboard on one side and I on the other, she come smashing straight
  • through the raft.
  • I dived--and I aimed to find the bottom, too, for a thirty-foot wheel
  • had got to go over me, and I wanted it to have plenty of room. I could
  • always stay under water a minute; this time I reckon I stayed under a
  • minute and a half. Then I bounced for the top in a hurry, for I was
  • nearly busting. I popped out to my armpits and blowed the water out of
  • my nose, and puffed a bit. Of course there was a booming current; and
  • of course that boat started her engines again ten seconds after she
  • stopped them, for they never cared much for raftsmen; so now she was
  • churning along up the river, out of sight in the thick weather, though I
  • could hear her.
  • I sung out for Jim about a dozen times, but I didn't get any answer;
  • so I grabbed a plank that touched me while I was “treading water,” and
  • struck out for shore, shoving it ahead of me. But I made out to see
  • that the drift of the current was towards the left-hand shore, which
  • meant that I was in a crossing; so I changed off and went that way.
  • It was one of these long, slanting, two-mile crossings; so I was a good
  • long time in getting over. I made a safe landing, and clumb up the
  • bank. I couldn't see but a little ways, but I went poking along over
  • rough ground for a quarter of a mile or more, and then I run across a
  • big old-fashioned double log-house before I noticed it. I was going to
  • rush by and get away, but a lot of dogs jumped out and went to howling
  • and barking at me, and I knowed better than to move another peg.
  • CHAPTER XVII.
  • IN about a minute somebody spoke out of a window without putting his
  • head out, and says:
  • “Be done, boys! Who's there?”
  • I says:
  • “It's me.”
  • “Who's me?”
  • “George Jackson, sir.”
  • “What do you want?”
  • “I don't want nothing, sir. I only want to go along by, but the dogs
  • won't let me.”
  • “What are you prowling around here this time of night for--hey?”
  • “I warn't prowling around, sir, I fell overboard off of the steamboat.”
  • “Oh, you did, did you? Strike a light there, somebody. What did you
  • say your name was?”
  • “George Jackson, sir. I'm only a boy.”
  • “Look here, if you're telling the truth you needn't be afraid--nobody'll
  • hurt you. But don't try to budge; stand right where you are. Rouse out
  • Bob and Tom, some of you, and fetch the guns. George Jackson, is there
  • anybody with you?”
  • “No, sir, nobody.”
  • I heard the people stirring around in the house now, and see a light.
  • The man sung out:
  • “Snatch that light away, Betsy, you old fool--ain't you got any sense?
  • Put it on the floor behind the front door. Bob, if you and Tom are
  • ready, take your places.”
  • “All ready.”
  • “Now, George Jackson, do you know the Shepherdsons?”
  • “No, sir; I never heard of them.”
  • “Well, that may be so, and it mayn't. Now, all ready. Step forward,
  • George Jackson. And mind, don't you hurry--come mighty slow. If there's
  • anybody with you, let him keep back--if he shows himself he'll be shot.
  • Come along now. Come slow; push the door open yourself--just enough to
  • squeeze in, d' you hear?”
  • I didn't hurry; I couldn't if I'd a wanted to. I took one slow step at
  • a time and there warn't a sound, only I thought I could hear my heart.
  • The dogs were as still as the humans, but they followed a little behind
  • me. When I got to the three log doorsteps I heard them unlocking and
  • unbarring and unbolting. I put my hand on the door and pushed it a
  • little and a little more till somebody said, “There, that's enough--put
  • your head in.” I done it, but I judged they would take it off.
  • The candle was on the floor, and there they all was, looking at me, and
  • me at them, for about a quarter of a minute: Three big men with guns
  • pointed at me, which made me wince, I tell you; the oldest, gray
  • and about sixty, the other two thirty or more--all of them fine and
  • handsome--and the sweetest old gray-headed lady, and back of her two
  • young women which I couldn't see right well. The old gentleman says:
  • “There; I reckon it's all right. Come in.”
  • As soon as I was in the old gentleman he locked the door and barred it
  • and bolted it, and told the young men to come in with their guns, and
  • they all went in a big parlor that had a new rag carpet on the floor,
  • and got together in a corner that was out of the range of the front
  • windows--there warn't none on the side. They held the candle, and took a
  • good look at me, and all said, “Why, _he_ ain't a Shepherdson--no, there
  • ain't any Shepherdson about him.” Then the old man said he hoped I
  • wouldn't mind being searched for arms, because he didn't mean no harm by
  • it--it was only to make sure. So he didn't pry into my pockets, but only
  • felt outside with his hands, and said it was all right. He told me to
  • make myself easy and at home, and tell all about myself; but the old
  • lady says:
  • “Why, bless you, Saul, the poor thing's as wet as he can be; and don't
  • you reckon it may be he's hungry?”
  • “True for you, Rachel--I forgot.”
  • So the old lady says:
  • “Betsy” (this was a nigger woman), “you fly around and get him something
  • to eat as quick as you can, poor thing; and one of you girls go and wake
  • up Buck and tell him--oh, here he is himself. Buck, take this little
  • stranger and get the wet clothes off from him and dress him up in some
  • of yours that's dry.”
  • Buck looked about as old as me--thirteen or fourteen or along there,
  • though he was a little bigger than me. He hadn't on anything but a
  • shirt, and he was very frowzy-headed. He came in gaping and digging one
  • fist into his eyes, and he was dragging a gun along with the other one.
  • He says:
  • “Ain't they no Shepherdsons around?”
  • They said, no, 'twas a false alarm.
  • “Well,” he says, “if they'd a ben some, I reckon I'd a got one.”
  • They all laughed, and Bob says:
  • “Why, Buck, they might have scalped us all, you've been so slow in
  • coming.”
  • “Well, nobody come after me, and it ain't right I'm always kept down; I
  • don't get no show.”
  • “Never mind, Buck, my boy,” says the old man, “you'll have show enough,
  • all in good time, don't you fret about that. Go 'long with you now, and
  • do as your mother told you.”
  • When we got up-stairs to his room he got me a coarse shirt and a
  • roundabout and pants of his, and I put them on. While I was at it he
  • asked me what my name was, but before I could tell him he started to
  • tell me about a bluejay and a young rabbit he had catched in the woods
  • day before yesterday, and he asked me where Moses was when the candle
  • went out. I said I didn't know; I hadn't heard about it before, no way.
  • “Well, guess,” he says.
  • “How'm I going to guess,” says I, “when I never heard tell of it
  • before?”
  • “But you can guess, can't you? It's just as easy.”
  • “_Which_ candle?” I says.
  • “Why, any candle,” he says.
  • “I don't know where he was,” says I; “where was he?”
  • “Why, he was in the _dark_! That's where he was!”
  • “Well, if you knowed where he was, what did you ask me for?”
  • “Why, blame it, it's a riddle, don't you see? Say, how long are you
  • going to stay here? You got to stay always. We can just have booming
  • times--they don't have no school now. Do you own a dog? I've got a
  • dog--and he'll go in the river and bring out chips that you throw in. Do
  • you like to comb up Sundays, and all that kind of foolishness? You bet
  • I don't, but ma she makes me. Confound these ole britches! I reckon
  • I'd better put 'em on, but I'd ruther not, it's so warm. Are you all
  • ready? All right. Come along, old hoss.”
  • Cold corn-pone, cold corn-beef, butter and buttermilk--that is what they
  • had for me down there, and there ain't nothing better that ever I've
  • come across yet. Buck and his ma and all of them smoked cob pipes,
  • except the nigger woman, which was gone, and the two young women. They
  • all smoked and talked, and I eat and talked. The young women had
  • quilts around them, and their hair down their backs. They all asked me
  • questions, and I told them how pap and me and all the family was living
  • on a little farm down at the bottom of Arkansaw, and my sister Mary Ann
  • run off and got married and never was heard of no more, and Bill went
  • to hunt them and he warn't heard of no more, and Tom and Mort died,
  • and then there warn't nobody but just me and pap left, and he was just
  • trimmed down to nothing, on account of his troubles; so when he died
  • I took what there was left, because the farm didn't belong to us, and
  • started up the river, deck passage, and fell overboard; and that was how
  • I come to be here. So they said I could have a home there as long as I
  • wanted it. Then it was most daylight and everybody went to bed, and I
  • went to bed with Buck, and when I waked up in the morning, drat it all,
  • I had forgot what my name was. So I laid there about an hour trying to
  • think, and when Buck waked up I says:
  • “Can you spell, Buck?”
  • “Yes,” he says.
  • “I bet you can't spell my name,” says I.
  • “I bet you what you dare I can,” says he.
  • “All right,” says I, “go ahead.”
  • “G-e-o-r-g-e J-a-x-o-n--there now,” he says.
  • “Well,” says I, “you done it, but I didn't think you could. It ain't no
  • slouch of a name to spell--right off without studying.”
  • I set it down, private, because somebody might want _me_ to spell it
  • next, and so I wanted to be handy with it and rattle it off like I was
  • used to it.
  • It was a mighty nice family, and a mighty nice house, too. I hadn't
  • seen no house out in the country before that was so nice and had so much
  • style. It didn't have an iron latch on the front door, nor a wooden one
  • with a buckskin string, but a brass knob to turn, the same as houses in
  • town. There warn't no bed in the parlor, nor a sign of a bed; but heaps
  • of parlors in towns has beds in them. There was a big fireplace that
  • was bricked on the bottom, and the bricks was kept clean and red by
  • pouring water on them and scrubbing them with another brick; sometimes
  • they wash them over with red water-paint that they call Spanish-brown,
  • same as they do in town. They had big brass dog-irons that could hold
  • up a saw-log. There was a clock on the middle of the mantelpiece, with
  • a picture of a town painted on the bottom half of the glass front, and
  • a round place in the middle of it for the sun, and you could see the
  • pendulum swinging behind it. It was beautiful to hear that clock tick;
  • and sometimes when one of these peddlers had been along and scoured her
  • up and got her in good shape, she would start in and strike a hundred
  • and fifty before she got tuckered out. They wouldn't took any money for
  • her.
  • Well, there was a big outlandish parrot on each side of the clock,
  • made out of something like chalk, and painted up gaudy. By one of the
  • parrots was a cat made of crockery, and a crockery dog by the other;
  • and when you pressed down on them they squeaked, but didn't open
  • their mouths nor look different nor interested. They squeaked through
  • underneath. There was a couple of big wild-turkey-wing fans spread out
  • behind those things. On the table in the middle of the room was a kind
  • of a lovely crockery basket that had apples and oranges and peaches and
  • grapes piled up in it, which was much redder and yellower and prettier
  • than real ones is, but they warn't real because you could see where
  • pieces had got chipped off and showed the white chalk, or whatever it
  • was, underneath.
  • This table had a cover made out of beautiful oilcloth, with a red and
  • blue spread-eagle painted on it, and a painted border all around. It
  • come all the way from Philadelphia, they said. There was some books,
  • too, piled up perfectly exact, on each corner of the table. One was a
  • big family Bible full of pictures. One was Pilgrim's Progress, about a
  • man that left his family, it didn't say why. I read considerable in it
  • now and then. The statements was interesting, but tough. Another was
  • Friendship's Offering, full of beautiful stuff and poetry; but I didn't
  • read the poetry. Another was Henry Clay's Speeches, and another was Dr.
  • Gunn's Family Medicine, which told you all about what to do if a body
  • was sick or dead. There was a hymn book, and a lot of other books. And
  • there was nice split-bottom chairs, and perfectly sound, too--not bagged
  • down in the middle and busted, like an old basket.
  • They had pictures hung on the walls--mainly Washingtons and Lafayettes,
  • and battles, and Highland Marys, and one called “Signing the
  • Declaration.” There was some that they called crayons, which one of the
  • daughters which was dead made her own self when she was only
  • fifteen years old. They was different from any pictures I ever see
  • before--blacker, mostly, than is common. One was a woman in a slim black
  • dress, belted small under the armpits, with bulges like a cabbage in
  • the middle of the sleeves, and a large black scoop-shovel bonnet with
  • a black veil, and white slim ankles crossed about with black tape, and
  • very wee black slippers, like a chisel, and she was leaning pensive on a
  • tombstone on her right elbow, under a weeping willow, and her other hand
  • hanging down her side holding a white handkerchief and a reticule,
  • and underneath the picture it said “Shall I Never See Thee More Alas.”
  • Another one was a young lady with her hair all combed up straight
  • to the top of her head, and knotted there in front of a comb like a
  • chair-back, and she was crying into a handkerchief and had a dead bird
  • laying on its back in her other hand with its heels up, and underneath
  • the picture it said “I Shall Never Hear Thy Sweet Chirrup More Alas.”
  • There was one where a young lady was at a window looking up at the
  • moon, and tears running down her cheeks; and she had an open letter in
  • one hand with black sealing wax showing on one edge of it, and she was
  • mashing a locket with a chain to it against her mouth, and underneath
  • the picture it said “And Art Thou Gone Yes Thou Art Gone Alas.” These
  • was all nice pictures, I reckon, but I didn't somehow seem to take
  • to them, because if ever I was down a little they always give me the
  • fan-tods. Everybody was sorry she died, because she had laid out a lot
  • more of these pictures to do, and a body could see by what she had done
  • what they had lost. But I reckoned that with her disposition she was
  • having a better time in the graveyard. She was at work on what they
  • said was her greatest picture when she took sick, and every day and
  • every night it was her prayer to be allowed to live till she got it
  • done, but she never got the chance. It was a picture of a young woman
  • in a long white gown, standing on the rail of a bridge all ready to jump
  • off, with her hair all down her back, and looking up to the moon, with
  • the tears running down her face, and she had two arms folded across her
  • breast, and two arms stretched out in front, and two more reaching up
  • towards the moon--and the idea was to see which pair would look best,
  • and then scratch out all the other arms; but, as I was saying, she died
  • before she got her mind made up, and now they kept this picture over the
  • head of the bed in her room, and every time her birthday come they hung
  • flowers on it. Other times it was hid with a little curtain. The young
  • woman in the picture had a kind of a nice sweet face, but there was so
  • many arms it made her look too spidery, seemed to me.
  • This young girl kept a scrap-book when she was alive, and used to paste
  • obituaries and accidents and cases of patient suffering in it out of the
  • Presbyterian Observer, and write poetry after them out of her own head.
  • It was very good poetry. This is what she wrote about a boy by the name
  • of Stephen Dowling Bots that fell down a well and was drownded:
  • ODE TO STEPHEN DOWLING BOTS, DEC'D
  • And did young Stephen sicken, And did young Stephen die? And did the
  • sad hearts thicken, And did the mourners cry?
  • No; such was not the fate of Young Stephen Dowling Bots; Though sad
  • hearts round him thickened, 'Twas not from sickness' shots.
  • No whooping-cough did rack his frame, Nor measles drear with spots;
  • Not these impaired the sacred name Of Stephen Dowling Bots.
  • Despised love struck not with woe That head of curly knots, Nor
  • stomach troubles laid him low, Young Stephen Dowling Bots.
  • O no. Then list with tearful eye, Whilst I his fate do tell. His soul
  • did from this cold world fly By falling down a well.
  • They got him out and emptied him; Alas it was too late; His spirit
  • was gone for to sport aloft In the realms of the good and great.
  • If Emmeline Grangerford could make poetry like that before she was
  • fourteen, there ain't no telling what she could a done by and by. Buck
  • said she could rattle off poetry like nothing. She didn't ever have to
  • stop to think. He said she would slap down a line, and if she couldn't
  • find anything to rhyme with it would just scratch it out and slap down
  • another one, and go ahead. She warn't particular; she could write about
  • anything you choose to give her to write about just so it was sadful.
  • Every time a man died, or a woman died, or a child died, she would be on
  • hand with her “tribute” before he was cold. She called them tributes.
  • The neighbors said it was the doctor first, then Emmeline, then the
  • undertaker--the undertaker never got in ahead of Emmeline but once, and
  • then she hung fire on a rhyme for the dead person's name, which was
  • Whistler. She warn't ever the same after that; she never complained,
  • but she kinder pined away and did not live long. Poor thing, many's the
  • time I made myself go up to the little room that used to be hers and get
  • out her poor old scrap-book and read in it when her pictures had been
  • aggravating me and I had soured on her a little. I liked all that
  • family, dead ones and all, and warn't going to let anything come between
  • us. Poor Emmeline made poetry about all the dead people when she was
  • alive, and it didn't seem right that there warn't nobody to make some
  • about her now she was gone; so I tried to sweat out a verse or two
  • myself, but I couldn't seem to make it go somehow. They kept Emmeline's
  • room trim and nice, and all the things fixed in it just the way she
  • liked to have them when she was alive, and nobody ever slept there.
  • The old lady took care of the room herself, though there was plenty
  • of niggers, and she sewed there a good deal and read her Bible there
  • mostly.
  • Well, as I was saying about the parlor, there was beautiful curtains on
  • the windows: white, with pictures painted on them of castles with vines
  • all down the walls, and cattle coming down to drink. There was a little
  • old piano, too, that had tin pans in it, I reckon, and nothing was ever
  • so lovely as to hear the young ladies sing “The Last Link is Broken”
  • and play “The Battle of Prague” on it. The walls of all the rooms was
  • plastered, and most had carpets on the floors, and the whole house was
  • whitewashed on the outside.
  • It was a double house, and the big open place betwixt them was roofed
  • and floored, and sometimes the table was set there in the middle of the
  • day, and it was a cool, comfortable place. Nothing couldn't be better.
  • And warn't the cooking good, and just bushels of it too!
  • CHAPTER XVIII.
  • COL. Grangerford was a gentleman, you see. He was a gentleman all
  • over; and so was his family. He was well born, as the saying is, and
  • that's worth as much in a man as it is in a horse, so the Widow Douglas
  • said, and nobody ever denied that she was of the first aristocracy
  • in our town; and pap he always said it, too, though he warn't no more
  • quality than a mudcat himself. Col. Grangerford was very tall and
  • very slim, and had a darkish-paly complexion, not a sign of red in it
  • anywheres; he was clean shaved every morning all over his thin face, and
  • he had the thinnest kind of lips, and the thinnest kind of nostrils, and
  • a high nose, and heavy eyebrows, and the blackest kind of eyes, sunk so
  • deep back that they seemed like they was looking out of caverns at
  • you, as you may say. His forehead was high, and his hair was black and
  • straight and hung to his shoulders. His hands was long and thin, and
  • every day of his life he put on a clean shirt and a full suit from head
  • to foot made out of linen so white it hurt your eyes to look at it;
  • and on Sundays he wore a blue tail-coat with brass buttons on it. He
  • carried a mahogany cane with a silver head to it. There warn't no
  • frivolishness about him, not a bit, and he warn't ever loud. He was
  • as kind as he could be--you could feel that, you know, and so you had
  • confidence. Sometimes he smiled, and it was good to see; but when he
  • straightened himself up like a liberty-pole, and the lightning begun to
  • flicker out from under his eyebrows, you wanted to climb a tree first,
  • and find out what the matter was afterwards. He didn't ever have to
  • tell anybody to mind their manners--everybody was always good-mannered
  • where he was. Everybody loved to have him around, too; he was sunshine
  • most always--I mean he made it seem like good weather. When he turned
  • into a cloudbank it was awful dark for half a minute, and that was
  • enough; there wouldn't nothing go wrong again for a week.
  • When him and the old lady come down in the morning all the family got
  • up out of their chairs and give them good-day, and didn't set down again
  • till they had set down. Then Tom and Bob went to the sideboard where
  • the decanter was, and mixed a glass of bitters and handed it to him, and
  • he held it in his hand and waited till Tom's and Bob's was mixed, and
  • then they bowed and said, “Our duty to you, sir, and madam;” and _they_
  • bowed the least bit in the world and said thank you, and so they drank,
  • all three, and Bob and Tom poured a spoonful of water on the sugar and
  • the mite of whisky or apple brandy in the bottom of their tumblers, and
  • give it to me and Buck, and we drank to the old people too.
  • Bob was the oldest and Tom next--tall, beautiful men with very broad
  • shoulders and brown faces, and long black hair and black eyes. They
  • dressed in white linen from head to foot, like the old gentleman, and
  • wore broad Panama hats.
  • Then there was Miss Charlotte; she was twenty-five, and tall and proud
  • and grand, but as good as she could be when she warn't stirred up; but
  • when she was she had a look that would make you wilt in your tracks,
  • like her father. She was beautiful.
  • So was her sister, Miss Sophia, but it was a different kind. She was
  • gentle and sweet like a dove, and she was only twenty.
  • Each person had their own nigger to wait on them--Buck too. My nigger
  • had a monstrous easy time, because I warn't used to having anybody do
  • anything for me, but Buck's was on the jump most of the time.
  • This was all there was of the family now, but there used to be
  • more--three sons; they got killed; and Emmeline that died.
  • The old gentleman owned a lot of farms and over a hundred niggers.
  • Sometimes a stack of people would come there, horseback, from ten or
  • fifteen mile around, and stay five or six days, and have such junketings
  • round about and on the river, and dances and picnics in the woods
  • daytimes, and balls at the house nights. These people was mostly
  • kinfolks of the family. The men brought their guns with them. It was a
  • handsome lot of quality, I tell you.
  • There was another clan of aristocracy around there--five or six
  • families--mostly of the name of Shepherdson. They was as high-toned
  • and well born and rich and grand as the tribe of Grangerfords. The
  • Shepherdsons and Grangerfords used the same steamboat landing, which was
  • about two mile above our house; so sometimes when I went up there with a
  • lot of our folks I used to see a lot of the Shepherdsons there on their
  • fine horses.
  • One day Buck and me was away out in the woods hunting, and heard a horse
  • coming. We was crossing the road. Buck says:
  • “Quick! Jump for the woods!”
  • We done it, and then peeped down the woods through the leaves. Pretty
  • soon a splendid young man come galloping down the road, setting his
  • horse easy and looking like a soldier. He had his gun across his
  • pommel. I had seen him before. It was young Harney Shepherdson. I
  • heard Buck's gun go off at my ear, and Harney's hat tumbled off from his
  • head. He grabbed his gun and rode straight to the place where we was
  • hid. But we didn't wait. We started through the woods on a run. The
  • woods warn't thick, so I looked over my shoulder to dodge the bullet,
  • and twice I seen Harney cover Buck with his gun; and then he rode away
  • the way he come--to get his hat, I reckon, but I couldn't see. We never
  • stopped running till we got home. The old gentleman's eyes blazed a
  • minute--'twas pleasure, mainly, I judged--then his face sort of smoothed
  • down, and he says, kind of gentle:
  • “I don't like that shooting from behind a bush. Why didn't you step
  • into the road, my boy?”
  • “The Shepherdsons don't, father. They always take advantage.”
  • Miss Charlotte she held her head up like a queen while Buck was telling
  • his tale, and her nostrils spread and her eyes snapped. The two young
  • men looked dark, but never said nothing. Miss Sophia she turned pale,
  • but the color come back when she found the man warn't hurt.
  • Soon as I could get Buck down by the corn-cribs under the trees by
  • ourselves, I says:
  • “Did you want to kill him, Buck?”
  • “Well, I bet I did.”
  • “What did he do to you?”
  • “Him? He never done nothing to me.”
  • “Well, then, what did you want to kill him for?”
  • “Why, nothing--only it's on account of the feud.”
  • “What's a feud?”
  • “Why, where was you raised? Don't you know what a feud is?”
  • “Never heard of it before--tell me about it.”
  • “Well,” says Buck, “a feud is this way: A man has a quarrel with
  • another man, and kills him; then that other man's brother kills _him_;
  • then the other brothers, on both sides, goes for one another; then the
  • _cousins_ chip in--and by and by everybody's killed off, and there ain't
  • no more feud. But it's kind of slow, and takes a long time.”
  • “Has this one been going on long, Buck?”
  • “Well, I should _reckon_! It started thirty year ago, or som'ers along
  • there. There was trouble 'bout something, and then a lawsuit to settle
  • it; and the suit went agin one of the men, and so he up and shot the
  • man that won the suit--which he would naturally do, of course. Anybody
  • would.”
  • “What was the trouble about, Buck?--land?”
  • “I reckon maybe--I don't know.”
  • “Well, who done the shooting? Was it a Grangerford or a Shepherdson?”
  • “Laws, how do I know? It was so long ago.”
  • “Don't anybody know?”
  • “Oh, yes, pa knows, I reckon, and some of the other old people; but they
  • don't know now what the row was about in the first place.”
  • “Has there been many killed, Buck?”
  • “Yes; right smart chance of funerals. But they don't always kill. Pa's
  • got a few buckshot in him; but he don't mind it 'cuz he don't weigh
  • much, anyway. Bob's been carved up some with a bowie, and Tom's been
  • hurt once or twice.”
  • “Has anybody been killed this year, Buck?”
  • “Yes; we got one and they got one. 'Bout three months ago my cousin
  • Bud, fourteen year old, was riding through the woods on t'other side
  • of the river, and didn't have no weapon with him, which was blame'
  • foolishness, and in a lonesome place he hears a horse a-coming behind
  • him, and sees old Baldy Shepherdson a-linkin' after him with his gun in
  • his hand and his white hair a-flying in the wind; and 'stead of jumping
  • off and taking to the brush, Bud 'lowed he could out-run him; so they
  • had it, nip and tuck, for five mile or more, the old man a-gaining all
  • the time; so at last Bud seen it warn't any use, so he stopped and faced
  • around so as to have the bullet holes in front, you know, and the old
  • man he rode up and shot him down. But he didn't git much chance to
  • enjoy his luck, for inside of a week our folks laid _him_ out.”
  • “I reckon that old man was a coward, Buck.”
  • “I reckon he _warn't_ a coward. Not by a blame' sight. There ain't a
  • coward amongst them Shepherdsons--not a one. And there ain't no cowards
  • amongst the Grangerfords either. Why, that old man kep' up his end in a
  • fight one day for half an hour against three Grangerfords, and come
  • out winner. They was all a-horseback; he lit off of his horse and got
  • behind a little woodpile, and kep' his horse before him to stop the
  • bullets; but the Grangerfords stayed on their horses and capered around
  • the old man, and peppered away at him, and he peppered away at them.
  • Him and his horse both went home pretty leaky and crippled, but the
  • Grangerfords had to be _fetched_ home--and one of 'em was dead, and
  • another died the next day. No, sir; if a body's out hunting for cowards
  • he don't want to fool away any time amongst them Shepherdsons, becuz
  • they don't breed any of that _kind_.”
  • Next Sunday we all went to church, about three mile, everybody
  • a-horseback. The men took their guns along, so did Buck, and kept
  • them between their knees or stood them handy against the wall. The
  • Shepherdsons done the same. It was pretty ornery preaching--all about
  • brotherly love, and such-like tiresomeness; but everybody said it was
  • a good sermon, and they all talked it over going home, and had such
  • a powerful lot to say about faith and good works and free grace and
  • preforeordestination, and I don't know what all, that it did seem to me
  • to be one of the roughest Sundays I had run across yet.
  • About an hour after dinner everybody was dozing around, some in their
  • chairs and some in their rooms, and it got to be pretty dull. Buck and
  • a dog was stretched out on the grass in the sun sound asleep. I went up
  • to our room, and judged I would take a nap myself. I found that sweet
  • Miss Sophia standing in her door, which was next to ours, and she took
  • me in her room and shut the door very soft, and asked me if I liked her,
  • and I said I did; and she asked me if I would do something for her and
  • not tell anybody, and I said I would. Then she said she'd forgot her
  • Testament, and left it in the seat at church between two other books,
  • and would I slip out quiet and go there and fetch it to her, and not say
  • nothing to nobody. I said I would. So I slid out and slipped off up the
  • road, and there warn't anybody at the church, except maybe a hog or two,
  • for there warn't any lock on the door, and hogs likes a puncheon floor
  • in summer-time because it's cool. If you notice, most folks don't go to
  • church only when they've got to; but a hog is different.
  • Says I to myself, something's up; it ain't natural for a girl to be in
  • such a sweat about a Testament. So I give it a shake, and out drops a
  • little piece of paper with “HALF-PAST TWO” wrote on it with a pencil. I
  • ransacked it, but couldn't find anything else. I couldn't make anything
  • out of that, so I put the paper in the book again, and when I got home
  • and upstairs there was Miss Sophia in her door waiting for me. She
  • pulled me in and shut the door; then she looked in the Testament till
  • she found the paper, and as soon as she read it she looked glad; and
  • before a body could think she grabbed me and give me a squeeze, and
  • said I was the best boy in the world, and not to tell anybody. She was
  • mighty red in the face for a minute, and her eyes lighted up, and it
  • made her powerful pretty. I was a good deal astonished, but when I got
  • my breath I asked her what the paper was about, and she asked me if I
  • had read it, and I said no, and she asked me if I could read writing,
  • and I told her “no, only coarse-hand,” and then she said the paper
  • warn't anything but a book-mark to keep her place, and I might go and
  • play now.
  • I went off down to the river, studying over this thing, and pretty soon
  • I noticed that my nigger was following along behind. When we was out
  • of sight of the house he looked back and around a second, and then comes
  • a-running, and says:
  • “Mars Jawge, if you'll come down into de swamp I'll show you a whole
  • stack o' water-moccasins.”
  • Thinks I, that's mighty curious; he said that yesterday. He oughter
  • know a body don't love water-moccasins enough to go around hunting for
  • them. What is he up to, anyway? So I says:
  • “All right; trot ahead.”
  • I followed a half a mile; then he struck out over the swamp, and waded
  • ankle deep as much as another half-mile. We come to a little flat piece
  • of land which was dry and very thick with trees and bushes and vines,
  • and he says:
  • “You shove right in dah jist a few steps, Mars Jawge; dah's whah dey is.
  • I's seed 'm befo'; I don't k'yer to see 'em no mo'.”
  • Then he slopped right along and went away, and pretty soon the trees hid
  • him. I poked into the place a-ways and come to a little open patch
  • as big as a bedroom all hung around with vines, and found a man laying
  • there asleep--and, by jings, it was my old Jim!
  • I waked him up, and I reckoned it was going to be a grand surprise to
  • him to see me again, but it warn't. He nearly cried he was so glad, but
  • he warn't surprised. Said he swum along behind me that night, and heard
  • me yell every time, but dasn't answer, because he didn't want nobody to
  • pick _him_ up and take him into slavery again. Says he:
  • “I got hurt a little, en couldn't swim fas', so I wuz a considable ways
  • behine you towards de las'; when you landed I reck'ned I could ketch
  • up wid you on de lan' 'dout havin' to shout at you, but when I see dat
  • house I begin to go slow. I 'uz off too fur to hear what dey say to
  • you--I wuz 'fraid o' de dogs; but when it 'uz all quiet agin I knowed
  • you's in de house, so I struck out for de woods to wait for day. Early
  • in de mawnin' some er de niggers come along, gwyne to de fields, en dey
  • tuk me en showed me dis place, whah de dogs can't track me on accounts
  • o' de water, en dey brings me truck to eat every night, en tells me how
  • you's a-gitt'n along.”
  • “Why didn't you tell my Jack to fetch me here sooner, Jim?”
  • “Well, 'twarn't no use to 'sturb you, Huck, tell we could do sumfn--but
  • we's all right now. I ben a-buyin' pots en pans en vittles, as I got a
  • chanst, en a-patchin' up de raf' nights when--”
  • “_What_ raft, Jim?”
  • “Our ole raf'.”
  • “You mean to say our old raft warn't smashed all to flinders?”
  • “No, she warn't. She was tore up a good deal--one en' of her was; but
  • dey warn't no great harm done, on'y our traps was mos' all los'. Ef we
  • hadn' dive' so deep en swum so fur under water, en de night hadn' ben
  • so dark, en we warn't so sk'yerd, en ben sich punkin-heads, as de sayin'
  • is, we'd a seed de raf'. But it's jis' as well we didn't, 'kase now
  • she's all fixed up agin mos' as good as new, en we's got a new lot o'
  • stuff, in de place o' what 'uz los'.”
  • “Why, how did you get hold of the raft again, Jim--did you catch her?”
  • “How I gwyne to ketch her en I out in de woods? No; some er de niggers
  • foun' her ketched on a snag along heah in de ben', en dey hid her in a
  • crick 'mongst de willows, en dey wuz so much jawin' 'bout which un 'um
  • she b'long to de mos' dat I come to heah 'bout it pooty soon, so I ups
  • en settles de trouble by tellin' 'um she don't b'long to none uv um, but
  • to you en me; en I ast 'm if dey gwyne to grab a young white genlman's
  • propaty, en git a hid'n for it? Den I gin 'm ten cents apiece, en dey
  • 'uz mighty well satisfied, en wisht some mo' raf's 'ud come along en
  • make 'm rich agin. Dey's mighty good to me, dese niggers is, en whatever
  • I wants 'm to do fur me I doan' have to ast 'm twice, honey. Dat Jack's
  • a good nigger, en pooty smart.”
  • “Yes, he is. He ain't ever told me you was here; told me to come, and
  • he'd show me a lot of water-moccasins. If anything happens _he_ ain't
  • mixed up in it. He can say he never seen us together, and it 'll be the
  • truth.”
  • I don't want to talk much about the next day. I reckon I'll cut it
  • pretty short. I waked up about dawn, and was a-going to turn over and
  • go to sleep again when I noticed how still it was--didn't seem to be
  • anybody stirring. That warn't usual. Next I noticed that Buck was
  • up and gone. Well, I gets up, a-wondering, and goes down stairs--nobody
  • around; everything as still as a mouse. Just the same outside. Thinks
  • I, what does it mean? Down by the wood-pile I comes across my Jack, and
  • says:
  • “What's it all about?”
  • Says he:
  • “Don't you know, Mars Jawge?”
  • “No,” says I, “I don't.”
  • “Well, den, Miss Sophia's run off! 'deed she has. She run off in de
  • night some time--nobody don't know jis' when; run off to get married
  • to dat young Harney Shepherdson, you know--leastways, so dey 'spec. De
  • fambly foun' it out 'bout half an hour ago--maybe a little mo'--en' I
  • _tell_ you dey warn't no time los'. Sich another hurryin' up guns
  • en hosses _you_ never see! De women folks has gone for to stir up de
  • relations, en ole Mars Saul en de boys tuck dey guns en rode up de
  • river road for to try to ketch dat young man en kill him 'fo' he kin
  • git acrost de river wid Miss Sophia. I reck'n dey's gwyne to be mighty
  • rough times.”
  • “Buck went off 'thout waking me up.”
  • “Well, I reck'n he _did_! Dey warn't gwyne to mix you up in it.
  • Mars Buck he loaded up his gun en 'lowed he's gwyne to fetch home a
  • Shepherdson or bust. Well, dey'll be plenty un 'm dah, I reck'n, en you
  • bet you he'll fetch one ef he gits a chanst.”
  • I took up the river road as hard as I could put. By and by I begin to
  • hear guns a good ways off. When I come in sight of the log store and
  • the woodpile where the steamboats lands I worked along under the trees
  • and brush till I got to a good place, and then I clumb up into the
  • forks of a cottonwood that was out of reach, and watched. There was a
  • wood-rank four foot high a little ways in front of the tree, and first I
  • was going to hide behind that; but maybe it was luckier I didn't.
  • There was four or five men cavorting around on their horses in the open
  • place before the log store, cussing and yelling, and trying to get at
  • a couple of young chaps that was behind the wood-rank alongside of the
  • steamboat landing; but they couldn't come it. Every time one of them
  • showed himself on the river side of the woodpile he got shot at. The
  • two boys was squatting back to back behind the pile, so they could watch
  • both ways.
  • By and by the men stopped cavorting around and yelling. They started
  • riding towards the store; then up gets one of the boys, draws a steady
  • bead over the wood-rank, and drops one of them out of his saddle. All
  • the men jumped off of their horses and grabbed the hurt one and started
  • to carry him to the store; and that minute the two boys started on the
  • run. They got half way to the tree I was in before the men noticed.
  • Then the men see them, and jumped on their horses and took out after
  • them. They gained on the boys, but it didn't do no good, the boys had
  • too good a start; they got to the woodpile that was in front of my tree,
  • and slipped in behind it, and so they had the bulge on the men again.
  • One of the boys was Buck, and the other was a slim young chap about
  • nineteen years old.
  • The men ripped around awhile, and then rode away. As soon as they was
  • out of sight I sung out to Buck and told him. He didn't know what
  • to make of my voice coming out of the tree at first. He was awful
  • surprised. He told me to watch out sharp and let him know when the
  • men come in sight again; said they was up to some devilment or
  • other--wouldn't be gone long. I wished I was out of that tree, but I
  • dasn't come down. Buck begun to cry and rip, and 'lowed that him and
  • his cousin Joe (that was the other young chap) would make up for this
  • day yet. He said his father and his two brothers was killed, and two
  • or three of the enemy. Said the Shepherdsons laid for them in
  • ambush. Buck said his father and brothers ought to waited for their
  • relations--the Shepherdsons was too strong for them. I asked him what
  • was become of young Harney and Miss Sophia. He said they'd got across
  • the river and was safe. I was glad of that; but the way Buck did take
  • on because he didn't manage to kill Harney that day he shot at him--I
  • hain't ever heard anything like it.
  • All of a sudden, bang! bang! bang! goes three or four guns--the men had
  • slipped around through the woods and come in from behind without their
  • horses! The boys jumped for the river--both of them hurt--and as they
  • swum down the current the men run along the bank shooting at them and
  • singing out, “Kill them, kill them!” It made me so sick I most fell out
  • of the tree. I ain't a-going to tell _all_ that happened--it would make
  • me sick again if I was to do that. I wished I hadn't ever come ashore
  • that night to see such things. I ain't ever going to get shut of
  • them--lots of times I dream about them.
  • I stayed in the tree till it begun to get dark, afraid to come down.
  • Sometimes I heard guns away off in the woods; and twice I seen little
  • gangs of men gallop past the log store with guns; so I reckoned the
  • trouble was still a-going on. I was mighty downhearted; so I made up my
  • mind I wouldn't ever go anear that house again, because I reckoned I
  • was to blame, somehow. I judged that that piece of paper meant that Miss
  • Sophia was to meet Harney somewheres at half-past two and run off; and
  • I judged I ought to told her father about that paper and the curious way
  • she acted, and then maybe he would a locked her up, and this awful mess
  • wouldn't ever happened.
  • When I got down out of the tree I crept along down the river bank a
  • piece, and found the two bodies laying in the edge of the water, and
  • tugged at them till I got them ashore; then I covered up their faces,
  • and got away as quick as I could. I cried a little when I was covering
  • up Buck's face, for he was mighty good to me.
  • It was just dark now. I never went near the house, but struck through
  • the woods and made for the swamp. Jim warn't on his island, so I
  • tramped off in a hurry for the crick, and crowded through the willows,
  • red-hot to jump aboard and get out of that awful country. The raft was
  • gone! My souls, but I was scared! I couldn't get my breath for most
  • a minute. Then I raised a yell. A voice not twenty-five foot from me
  • says:
  • “Good lan'! is dat you, honey? Doan' make no noise.”
  • It was Jim's voice--nothing ever sounded so good before. I run along the
  • bank a piece and got aboard, and Jim he grabbed me and hugged me, he was
  • so glad to see me. He says:
  • “Laws bless you, chile, I 'uz right down sho' you's dead agin. Jack's
  • been heah; he say he reck'n you's ben shot, kase you didn' come home no
  • mo'; so I's jes' dis minute a startin' de raf' down towards de mouf er
  • de crick, so's to be all ready for to shove out en leave soon as Jack
  • comes agin en tells me for certain you _is_ dead. Lawsy, I's mighty
  • glad to git you back again, honey.”
  • I says:
  • “All right--that's mighty good; they won't find me, and they'll think
  • I've been killed, and floated down the river--there's something up there
  • that 'll help them think so--so don't you lose no time, Jim, but just
  • shove off for the big water as fast as ever you can.”
  • I never felt easy till the raft was two mile below there and out in
  • the middle of the Mississippi. Then we hung up our signal lantern, and
  • judged that we was free and safe once more. I hadn't had a bite to eat
  • since yesterday, so Jim he got out some corn-dodgers and buttermilk,
  • and pork and cabbage and greens--there ain't nothing in the world so good
  • when it's cooked right--and whilst I eat my supper we talked and had a
  • good time. I was powerful glad to get away from the feuds, and so was
  • Jim to get away from the swamp. We said there warn't no home like a
  • raft, after all. Other places do seem so cramped up and smothery, but a
  • raft don't. You feel mighty free and easy and comfortable on a raft.
  • CHAPTER XIX.
  • TWO or three days and nights went by; I reckon I might say they swum by,
  • they slid along so quiet and smooth and lovely. Here is the way we put
  • in the time. It was a monstrous big river down there--sometimes a mile
  • and a half wide; we run nights, and laid up and hid daytimes; soon as
  • night was most gone we stopped navigating and tied up--nearly always
  • in the dead water under a towhead; and then cut young cottonwoods and
  • willows, and hid the raft with them. Then we set out the lines. Next
  • we slid into the river and had a swim, so as to freshen up and cool
  • off; then we set down on the sandy bottom where the water was about knee
  • deep, and watched the daylight come. Not a sound anywheres--perfectly
  • still--just like the whole world was asleep, only sometimes the bullfrogs
  • a-cluttering, maybe. The first thing to see, looking away over the
  • water, was a kind of dull line--that was the woods on t'other side; you
  • couldn't make nothing else out; then a pale place in the sky; then more
  • paleness spreading around; then the river softened up away off, and
  • warn't black any more, but gray; you could see little dark spots
  • drifting along ever so far away--trading scows, and such things; and
  • long black streaks--rafts; sometimes you could hear a sweep screaking; or
  • jumbled up voices, it was so still, and sounds come so far; and by and
  • by you could see a streak on the water which you know by the look of the
  • streak that there's a snag there in a swift current which breaks on it
  • and makes that streak look that way; and you see the mist curl up off
  • of the water, and the east reddens up, and the river, and you make out a
  • log-cabin in the edge of the woods, away on the bank on t'other side of
  • the river, being a woodyard, likely, and piled by them cheats so you can
  • throw a dog through it anywheres; then the nice breeze springs up, and
  • comes fanning you from over there, so cool and fresh and sweet to smell
  • on account of the woods and the flowers; but sometimes not that way,
  • because they've left dead fish laying around, gars and such, and they
  • do get pretty rank; and next you've got the full day, and everything
  • smiling in the sun, and the song-birds just going it!
  • A little smoke couldn't be noticed now, so we would take some fish off
  • of the lines and cook up a hot breakfast. And afterwards we would watch
  • the lonesomeness of the river, and kind of lazy along, and by and by
  • lazy off to sleep. Wake up by and by, and look to see what done it, and
  • maybe see a steamboat coughing along up-stream, so far off towards the
  • other side you couldn't tell nothing about her only whether she was
  • a stern-wheel or side-wheel; then for about an hour there wouldn't be
  • nothing to hear nor nothing to see--just solid lonesomeness. Next
  • you'd see a raft sliding by, away off yonder, and maybe a galoot on it
  • chopping, because they're most always doing it on a raft; you'd see the
  • axe flash and come down--you don't hear nothing; you see that axe go
  • up again, and by the time it's above the man's head then you hear the
  • _k'chunk_!--it had took all that time to come over the water. So we
  • would put in the day, lazying around, listening to the stillness. Once
  • there was a thick fog, and the rafts and things that went by was beating
  • tin pans so the steamboats wouldn't run over them. A scow or a
  • raft went by so close we could hear them talking and cussing and
  • laughing--heard them plain; but we couldn't see no sign of them; it made
  • you feel crawly; it was like spirits carrying on that way in the air.
  • Jim said he believed it was spirits; but I says:
  • “No; spirits wouldn't say, 'Dern the dern fog.'”
  • Soon as it was night out we shoved; when we got her out to about the
  • middle we let her alone, and let her float wherever the current wanted
  • her to; then we lit the pipes, and dangled our legs in the water, and
  • talked about all kinds of things--we was always naked, day and night,
  • whenever the mosquitoes would let us--the new clothes Buck's folks made
  • for me was too good to be comfortable, and besides I didn't go much on
  • clothes, nohow.
  • Sometimes we'd have that whole river all to ourselves for the longest
  • time. Yonder was the banks and the islands, across the water; and maybe
  • a spark--which was a candle in a cabin window; and sometimes on the water
  • you could see a spark or two--on a raft or a scow, you know; and maybe
  • you could hear a fiddle or a song coming over from one of them crafts.
  • It's lovely to live on a raft. We had the sky up there, all speckled
  • with stars, and we used to lay on our backs and look up at them, and
  • discuss about whether they was made or only just happened. Jim he
  • allowed they was made, but I allowed they happened; I judged it would
  • have took too long to _make_ so many. Jim said the moon could a _laid_
  • them; well, that looked kind of reasonable, so I didn't say nothing
  • against it, because I've seen a frog lay most as many, so of course it
  • could be done. We used to watch the stars that fell, too, and see them
  • streak down. Jim allowed they'd got spoiled and was hove out of the
  • nest.
  • Once or twice of a night we would see a steamboat slipping along in the
  • dark, and now and then she would belch a whole world of sparks up out
  • of her chimbleys, and they would rain down in the river and look awful
  • pretty; then she would turn a corner and her lights would wink out and
  • her powwow shut off and leave the river still again; and by and by her
  • waves would get to us, a long time after she was gone, and joggle the
  • raft a bit, and after that you wouldn't hear nothing for you couldn't
  • tell how long, except maybe frogs or something.
  • After midnight the people on shore went to bed, and then for two or
  • three hours the shores was black--no more sparks in the cabin windows.
  • These sparks was our clock--the first one that showed again meant
  • morning was coming, so we hunted a place to hide and tie up right away.
  • One morning about daybreak I found a canoe and crossed over a chute to
  • the main shore--it was only two hundred yards--and paddled about a mile
  • up a crick amongst the cypress woods, to see if I couldn't get some
  • berries. Just as I was passing a place where a kind of a cowpath crossed
  • the crick, here comes a couple of men tearing up the path as tight as
  • they could foot it. I thought I was a goner, for whenever anybody was
  • after anybody I judged it was _me_--or maybe Jim. I was about to dig out
  • from there in a hurry, but they was pretty close to me then, and sung
  • out and begged me to save their lives--said they hadn't been doing
  • nothing, and was being chased for it--said there was men and dogs
  • a-coming. They wanted to jump right in, but I says:
  • “Don't you do it. I don't hear the dogs and horses yet; you've got time
  • to crowd through the brush and get up the crick a little ways; then you
  • take to the water and wade down to me and get in--that'll throw the dogs
  • off the scent.”
  • They done it, and soon as they was aboard I lit out for our towhead,
  • and in about five or ten minutes we heard the dogs and the men away off,
  • shouting. We heard them come along towards the crick, but couldn't
  • see them; they seemed to stop and fool around a while; then, as we got
  • further and further away all the time, we couldn't hardly hear them at
  • all; by the time we had left a mile of woods behind us and struck the
  • river, everything was quiet, and we paddled over to the towhead and hid
  • in the cottonwoods and was safe.
  • One of these fellows was about seventy or upwards, and had a bald head
  • and very gray whiskers. He had an old battered-up slouch hat on, and
  • a greasy blue woollen shirt, and ragged old blue jeans britches stuffed
  • into his boot-tops, and home-knit galluses--no, he only had one. He had
  • an old long-tailed blue jeans coat with slick brass buttons flung over
  • his arm, and both of them had big, fat, ratty-looking carpet-bags.
  • The other fellow was about thirty, and dressed about as ornery. After
  • breakfast we all laid off and talked, and the first thing that come out
  • was that these chaps didn't know one another.
  • “What got you into trouble?” says the baldhead to t'other chap.
  • “Well, I'd been selling an article to take the tartar off the teeth--and
  • it does take it off, too, and generly the enamel along with it--but I
  • stayed about one night longer than I ought to, and was just in the act
  • of sliding out when I ran across you on the trail this side of town, and
  • you told me they were coming, and begged me to help you to get off. So
  • I told you I was expecting trouble myself, and would scatter out _with_
  • you. That's the whole yarn--what's yourn?
  • “Well, I'd ben a-running' a little temperance revival thar 'bout a week,
  • and was the pet of the women folks, big and little, for I was makin' it
  • mighty warm for the rummies, I _tell_ you, and takin' as much as five
  • or six dollars a night--ten cents a head, children and niggers free--and
  • business a-growin' all the time, when somehow or another a little report
  • got around last night that I had a way of puttin' in my time with a
  • private jug on the sly. A nigger rousted me out this mornin', and told
  • me the people was getherin' on the quiet with their dogs and horses, and
  • they'd be along pretty soon and give me 'bout half an hour's start,
  • and then run me down if they could; and if they got me they'd tar
  • and feather me and ride me on a rail, sure. I didn't wait for no
  • breakfast--I warn't hungry.”
  • “Old man,” said the young one, “I reckon we might double-team it
  • together; what do you think?”
  • “I ain't undisposed. What's your line--mainly?”
  • “Jour printer by trade; do a little in patent medicines;
  • theater-actor--tragedy, you know; take a turn to mesmerism and phrenology
  • when there's a chance; teach singing-geography school for a change;
  • sling a lecture sometimes--oh, I do lots of things--most anything that
  • comes handy, so it ain't work. What's your lay?”
  • “I've done considerble in the doctoring way in my time. Layin' on o'
  • hands is my best holt--for cancer and paralysis, and sich things; and I
  • k'n tell a fortune pretty good when I've got somebody along to find out
  • the facts for me. Preachin's my line, too, and workin' camp-meetin's,
  • and missionaryin' around.”
  • Nobody never said anything for a while; then the young man hove a sigh
  • and says:
  • “Alas!”
  • “What 're you alassin' about?” says the bald-head.
  • “To think I should have lived to be leading such a life, and be degraded
  • down into such company.” And he begun to wipe the corner of his eye
  • with a rag.
  • “Dern your skin, ain't the company good enough for you?” says the
  • baldhead, pretty pert and uppish.
  • “Yes, it _is_ good enough for me; it's as good as I deserve; for who
  • fetched me so low when I was so high? I did myself. I don't blame
  • _you_, gentlemen--far from it; I don't blame anybody. I deserve it
  • all. Let the cold world do its worst; one thing I know--there's a grave
  • somewhere for me. The world may go on just as it's always done, and take
  • everything from me--loved ones, property, everything; but it can't take
  • that. Some day I'll lie down in it and forget it all, and my poor broken
  • heart will be at rest.” He went on a-wiping.
  • “Drot your pore broken heart,” says the baldhead; “what are you heaving
  • your pore broken heart at _us_ f'r? _we_ hain't done nothing.”
  • “No, I know you haven't. I ain't blaming you, gentlemen. I brought
  • myself down--yes, I did it myself. It's right I should suffer--perfectly
  • right--I don't make any moan.”
  • “Brought you down from whar? Whar was you brought down from?”
  • “Ah, you would not believe me; the world never believes--let it pass--'tis
  • no matter. The secret of my birth--”
  • “The secret of your birth! Do you mean to say--”
  • “Gentlemen,” says the young man, very solemn, “I will reveal it to you,
  • for I feel I may have confidence in you. By rights I am a duke!”
  • Jim's eyes bugged out when he heard that; and I reckon mine did, too.
  • Then the baldhead says: “No! you can't mean it?”
  • “Yes. My great-grandfather, eldest son of the Duke of Bridgewater, fled
  • to this country about the end of the last century, to breathe the pure
  • air of freedom; married here, and died, leaving a son, his own father
  • dying about the same time. The second son of the late duke seized the
  • titles and estates--the infant real duke was ignored. I am the lineal
  • descendant of that infant--I am the rightful Duke of Bridgewater; and
  • here am I, forlorn, torn from my high estate, hunted of men, despised
  • by the cold world, ragged, worn, heart-broken, and degraded to the
  • companionship of felons on a raft!”
  • Jim pitied him ever so much, and so did I. We tried to comfort him, but
  • he said it warn't much use, he couldn't be much comforted; said if we
  • was a mind to acknowledge him, that would do him more good than most
  • anything else; so we said we would, if he would tell us how. He said we
  • ought to bow when we spoke to him, and say “Your Grace,” or “My Lord,”
  • or “Your Lordship”--and he wouldn't mind it if we called him plain
  • “Bridgewater,” which, he said, was a title anyway, and not a name; and
  • one of us ought to wait on him at dinner, and do any little thing for
  • him he wanted done.
  • Well, that was all easy, so we done it. All through dinner Jim stood
  • around and waited on him, and says, “Will yo' Grace have some o' dis or
  • some o' dat?” and so on, and a body could see it was mighty pleasing to
  • him.
  • But the old man got pretty silent by and by--didn't have much to say, and
  • didn't look pretty comfortable over all that petting that was going on
  • around that duke. He seemed to have something on his mind. So, along
  • in the afternoon, he says:
  • “Looky here, Bilgewater,” he says, “I'm nation sorry for you, but you
  • ain't the only person that's had troubles like that.”
  • “No?”
  • “No you ain't. You ain't the only person that's ben snaked down
  • wrongfully out'n a high place.”
  • “Alas!”
  • “No, you ain't the only person that's had a secret of his birth.” And,
  • by jings, _he_ begins to cry.
  • “Hold! What do you mean?”
  • “Bilgewater, kin I trust you?” says the old man, still sort of sobbing.
  • “To the bitter death!” He took the old man by the hand and squeezed it,
  • and says, “That secret of your being: speak!”
  • “Bilgewater, I am the late Dauphin!”
  • You bet you, Jim and me stared this time. Then the duke says:
  • “You are what?”
  • “Yes, my friend, it is too true--your eyes is lookin' at this very moment
  • on the pore disappeared Dauphin, Looy the Seventeen, son of Looy the
  • Sixteen and Marry Antonette.”
  • “You! At your age! No! You mean you're the late Charlemagne; you must
  • be six or seven hundred years old, at the very least.”
  • “Trouble has done it, Bilgewater, trouble has done it; trouble has brung
  • these gray hairs and this premature balditude. Yes, gentlemen, you
  • see before you, in blue jeans and misery, the wanderin', exiled,
  • trampled-on, and sufferin' rightful King of France.”
  • Well, he cried and took on so that me and Jim didn't know hardly what to
  • do, we was so sorry--and so glad and proud we'd got him with us, too.
  • So we set in, like we done before with the duke, and tried to comfort
  • _him_. But he said it warn't no use, nothing but to be dead and done
  • with it all could do him any good; though he said it often made him feel
  • easier and better for a while if people treated him according to his
  • rights, and got down on one knee to speak to him, and always called him
  • “Your Majesty,” and waited on him first at meals, and didn't set down
  • in his presence till he asked them. So Jim and me set to majestying him,
  • and doing this and that and t'other for him, and standing up till he
  • told us we might set down. This done him heaps of good, and so he
  • got cheerful and comfortable. But the duke kind of soured on him, and
  • didn't look a bit satisfied with the way things was going; still,
  • the king acted real friendly towards him, and said the duke's
  • great-grandfather and all the other Dukes of Bilgewater was a good
  • deal thought of by _his_ father, and was allowed to come to the palace
  • considerable; but the duke stayed huffy a good while, till by and by the
  • king says:
  • “Like as not we got to be together a blamed long time on this h-yer
  • raft, Bilgewater, and so what's the use o' your bein' sour? It 'll only
  • make things oncomfortable. It ain't my fault I warn't born a duke,
  • it ain't your fault you warn't born a king--so what's the use to worry?
  • Make the best o' things the way you find 'em, says I--that's my motto.
  • This ain't no bad thing that we've struck here--plenty grub and an easy
  • life--come, give us your hand, duke, and le's all be friends.”
  • The duke done it, and Jim and me was pretty glad to see it. It took
  • away all the uncomfortableness and we felt mighty good over it, because
  • it would a been a miserable business to have any unfriendliness on the
  • raft; for what you want, above all things, on a raft, is for everybody
  • to be satisfied, and feel right and kind towards the others.
  • It didn't take me long to make up my mind that these liars warn't no
  • kings nor dukes at all, but just low-down humbugs and frauds. But I
  • never said nothing, never let on; kept it to myself; it's the best way;
  • then you don't have no quarrels, and don't get into no trouble. If they
  • wanted us to call them kings and dukes, I hadn't no objections, 'long as
  • it would keep peace in the family; and it warn't no use to tell Jim, so
  • I didn't tell him. If I never learnt nothing else out of pap, I learnt
  • that the best way to get along with his kind of people is to let them
  • have their own way.
  • CHAPTER XX.
  • THEY asked us considerable many questions; wanted to know what we
  • covered up the raft that way for, and laid by in the daytime instead of
  • running--was Jim a runaway nigger? Says I:
  • “Goodness sakes! would a runaway nigger run _south_?”
  • No, they allowed he wouldn't. I had to account for things some way, so
  • I says:
  • “My folks was living in Pike County, in Missouri, where I was born, and
  • they all died off but me and pa and my brother Ike. Pa, he 'lowed
  • he'd break up and go down and live with Uncle Ben, who's got a little
  • one-horse place on the river, forty-four mile below Orleans. Pa was
  • pretty poor, and had some debts; so when he'd squared up there warn't
  • nothing left but sixteen dollars and our nigger, Jim. That warn't
  • enough to take us fourteen hundred mile, deck passage nor no other way.
  • Well, when the river rose pa had a streak of luck one day; he ketched
  • this piece of a raft; so we reckoned we'd go down to Orleans on it.
  • Pa's luck didn't hold out; a steamboat run over the forrard corner of
  • the raft one night, and we all went overboard and dove under the wheel;
  • Jim and me come up all right, but pa was drunk, and Ike was only four
  • years old, so they never come up no more. Well, for the next day or
  • two we had considerable trouble, because people was always coming out in
  • skiffs and trying to take Jim away from me, saying they believed he was
  • a runaway nigger. We don't run daytimes no more now; nights they don't
  • bother us.”
  • The duke says:
  • “Leave me alone to cipher out a way so we can run in the daytime if we
  • want to. I'll think the thing over--I'll invent a plan that'll fix it.
  • We'll let it alone for to-day, because of course we don't want to go by
  • that town yonder in daylight--it mightn't be healthy.”
  • Towards night it begun to darken up and look like rain; the heat
  • lightning was squirting around low down in the sky, and the leaves was
  • beginning to shiver--it was going to be pretty ugly, it was easy to see
  • that. So the duke and the king went to overhauling our wigwam, to see
  • what the beds was like. My bed was a straw tick better than Jim's,
  • which was a corn-shuck tick; there's always cobs around about in a shuck
  • tick, and they poke into you and hurt; and when you roll over the dry
  • shucks sound like you was rolling over in a pile of dead leaves; it
  • makes such a rustling that you wake up. Well, the duke allowed he would
  • take my bed; but the king allowed he wouldn't. He says:
  • “I should a reckoned the difference in rank would a sejested to you that
  • a corn-shuck bed warn't just fitten for me to sleep on. Your Grace 'll
  • take the shuck bed yourself.”
  • Jim and me was in a sweat again for a minute, being afraid there was
  • going to be some more trouble amongst them; so we was pretty glad when
  • the duke says:
  • “'Tis my fate to be always ground into the mire under the iron heel of
  • oppression. Misfortune has broken my once haughty spirit; I yield, I
  • submit; 'tis my fate. I am alone in the world--let me suffer; can bear
  • it.”
  • We got away as soon as it was good and dark. The king told us to stand
  • well out towards the middle of the river, and not show a light till we
  • got a long ways below the town. We come in sight of the little bunch of
  • lights by and by--that was the town, you know--and slid by, about a half
  • a mile out, all right. When we was three-quarters of a mile below we
  • hoisted up our signal lantern; and about ten o'clock it come on to rain
  • and blow and thunder and lighten like everything; so the king told us
  • to both stay on watch till the weather got better; then him and the duke
  • crawled into the wigwam and turned in for the night. It was my watch
  • below till twelve, but I wouldn't a turned in anyway if I'd had a bed,
  • because a body don't see such a storm as that every day in the week, not
  • by a long sight. My souls, how the wind did scream along! And every
  • second or two there'd come a glare that lit up the white-caps for a half
  • a mile around, and you'd see the islands looking dusty through the rain,
  • and the trees thrashing around in the wind; then comes a H-WHACK!--bum!
  • bum! bumble-umble-um-bum-bum-bum-bum--and the thunder would go rumbling
  • and grumbling away, and quit--and then RIP comes another flash and
  • another sockdolager. The waves most washed me off the raft sometimes,
  • but I hadn't any clothes on, and didn't mind. We didn't have no trouble
  • about snags; the lightning was glaring and flittering around so constant
  • that we could see them plenty soon enough to throw her head this way or
  • that and miss them.
  • I had the middle watch, you know, but I was pretty sleepy by that time,
  • so Jim he said he would stand the first half of it for me; he was always
  • mighty good that way, Jim was. I crawled into the wigwam, but the king
  • and the duke had their legs sprawled around so there warn't no show for
  • me; so I laid outside--I didn't mind the rain, because it was warm, and
  • the waves warn't running so high now. About two they come up again,
  • though, and Jim was going to call me; but he changed his mind, because
  • he reckoned they warn't high enough yet to do any harm; but he was
  • mistaken about that, for pretty soon all of a sudden along comes a
  • regular ripper and washed me overboard. It most killed Jim a-laughing.
  • He was the easiest nigger to laugh that ever was, anyway.
  • I took the watch, and Jim he laid down and snored away; and by and by
  • the storm let up for good and all; and the first cabin-light that showed
  • I rousted him out, and we slid the raft into hiding quarters for the
  • day.
  • The king got out an old ratty deck of cards after breakfast, and him
  • and the duke played seven-up a while, five cents a game. Then they got
  • tired of it, and allowed they would “lay out a campaign,” as they called
  • it. The duke went down into his carpet-bag, and fetched up a lot of
  • little printed bills and read them out loud. One bill said, “The
  • celebrated Dr. Armand de Montalban, of Paris,” would “lecture on the
  • Science of Phrenology” at such and such a place, on the blank day of
  • blank, at ten cents admission, and “furnish charts of character at
  • twenty-five cents apiece.” The duke said that was _him_. In another
  • bill he was the “world-renowned Shakespearian tragedian, Garrick the
  • Younger, of Drury Lane, London.” In other bills he had a lot of other
  • names and done other wonderful things, like finding water and gold with
  • a “divining-rod,” “dissipating witch spells,” and so on. By and by he
  • says:
  • “But the histrionic muse is the darling. Have you ever trod the boards,
  • Royalty?”
  • “No,” says the king.
  • “You shall, then, before you're three days older, Fallen Grandeur,” says
  • the duke. “The first good town we come to we'll hire a hall and do the
  • sword fight in Richard III. and the balcony scene in Romeo and Juliet.
  • How does that strike you?”
  • “I'm in, up to the hub, for anything that will pay, Bilgewater; but, you
  • see, I don't know nothing about play-actin', and hain't ever seen much
  • of it. I was too small when pap used to have 'em at the palace. Do you
  • reckon you can learn me?”
  • “Easy!”
  • “All right. I'm jist a-freezn' for something fresh, anyway. Le's
  • commence right away.”
  • So the duke he told him all about who Romeo was and who Juliet was, and
  • said he was used to being Romeo, so the king could be Juliet.
  • “But if Juliet's such a young gal, duke, my peeled head and my white
  • whiskers is goin' to look oncommon odd on her, maybe.”
  • “No, don't you worry; these country jakes won't ever think of that.
  • Besides, you know, you'll be in costume, and that makes all the
  • difference in the world; Juliet's in a balcony, enjoying the moonlight
  • before she goes to bed, and she's got on her night-gown and her ruffled
  • nightcap. Here are the costumes for the parts.”
  • He got out two or three curtain-calico suits, which he said was
  • meedyevil armor for Richard III. and t'other chap, and a long white
  • cotton nightshirt and a ruffled nightcap to match. The king was
  • satisfied; so the duke got out his book and read the parts over in the
  • most splendid spread-eagle way, prancing around and acting at the same
  • time, to show how it had got to be done; then he give the book to the
  • king and told him to get his part by heart.
  • There was a little one-horse town about three mile down the bend, and
  • after dinner the duke said he had ciphered out his idea about how to run
  • in daylight without it being dangersome for Jim; so he allowed he would
  • go down to the town and fix that thing. The king allowed he would go,
  • too, and see if he couldn't strike something. We was out of coffee, so
  • Jim said I better go along with them in the canoe and get some.
  • When we got there there warn't nobody stirring; streets empty, and
  • perfectly dead and still, like Sunday. We found a sick nigger sunning
  • himself in a back yard, and he said everybody that warn't too young or
  • too sick or too old was gone to camp-meeting, about two mile back in the
  • woods. The king got the directions, and allowed he'd go and work that
  • camp-meeting for all it was worth, and I might go, too.
  • The duke said what he was after was a printing-office. We found it;
  • a little bit of a concern, up over a carpenter shop--carpenters and
  • printers all gone to the meeting, and no doors locked. It was a dirty,
  • littered-up place, and had ink marks, and handbills with pictures of
  • horses and runaway niggers on them, all over the walls. The duke shed
  • his coat and said he was all right now. So me and the king lit out for
  • the camp-meeting.
  • We got there in about a half an hour fairly dripping, for it was a most
  • awful hot day. There was as much as a thousand people there from
  • twenty mile around. The woods was full of teams and wagons, hitched
  • everywheres, feeding out of the wagon-troughs and stomping to keep
  • off the flies. There was sheds made out of poles and roofed over with
  • branches, where they had lemonade and gingerbread to sell, and piles of
  • watermelons and green corn and such-like truck.
  • The preaching was going on under the same kinds of sheds, only they was
  • bigger and held crowds of people. The benches was made out of outside
  • slabs of logs, with holes bored in the round side to drive sticks into
  • for legs. They didn't have no backs. The preachers had high platforms
  • to stand on at one end of the sheds. The women had on sun-bonnets;
  • and some had linsey-woolsey frocks, some gingham ones, and a few of the
  • young ones had on calico. Some of the young men was barefooted, and
  • some of the children didn't have on any clothes but just a tow-linen
  • shirt. Some of the old women was knitting, and some of the young folks
  • was courting on the sly.
  • The first shed we come to the preacher was lining out a hymn. He lined
  • out two lines, everybody sung it, and it was kind of grand to hear it,
  • there was so many of them and they done it in such a rousing way; then
  • he lined out two more for them to sing--and so on. The people woke up
  • more and more, and sung louder and louder; and towards the end some
  • begun to groan, and some begun to shout. Then the preacher begun to
  • preach, and begun in earnest, too; and went weaving first to one side of
  • the platform and then the other, and then a-leaning down over the front
  • of it, with his arms and his body going all the time, and shouting his
  • words out with all his might; and every now and then he would hold up
  • his Bible and spread it open, and kind of pass it around this way and
  • that, shouting, “It's the brazen serpent in the wilderness! Look upon
  • it and live!” And people would shout out, “Glory!--A-a-_men_!” And so
  • he went on, and the people groaning and crying and saying amen:
  • “Oh, come to the mourners' bench! come, black with sin! (_Amen_!) come,
  • sick and sore! (_Amen_!) come, lame and halt and blind! (_Amen_!) come,
  • pore and needy, sunk in shame! (_A-A-Men_!) come, all that's worn and
  • soiled and suffering!--come with a broken spirit! come with a contrite
  • heart! come in your rags and sin and dirt! the waters that cleanse
  • is free, the door of heaven stands open--oh, enter in and be at rest!”
  • (_A-A-Men_! _Glory, Glory Hallelujah!_)
  • And so on. You couldn't make out what the preacher said any more, on
  • account of the shouting and crying. Folks got up everywheres in the
  • crowd, and worked their way just by main strength to the mourners'
  • bench, with the tears running down their faces; and when all the
  • mourners had got up there to the front benches in a crowd, they sung and
  • shouted and flung themselves down on the straw, just crazy and wild.
  • Well, the first I knowed the king got a-going, and you could hear him
  • over everybody; and next he went a-charging up on to the platform, and
  • the preacher he begged him to speak to the people, and he done it. He
  • told them he was a pirate--been a pirate for thirty years out in the
  • Indian Ocean--and his crew was thinned out considerable last spring in
  • a fight, and he was home now to take out some fresh men, and thanks to
  • goodness he'd been robbed last night and put ashore off of a steamboat
  • without a cent, and he was glad of it; it was the blessedest thing that
  • ever happened to him, because he was a changed man now, and happy for
  • the first time in his life; and, poor as he was, he was going to start
  • right off and work his way back to the Indian Ocean, and put in the rest
  • of his life trying to turn the pirates into the true path; for he could
  • do it better than anybody else, being acquainted with all pirate crews
  • in that ocean; and though it would take him a long time to get there
  • without money, he would get there anyway, and every time he convinced
  • a pirate he would say to him, “Don't you thank me, don't you give me no
  • credit; it all belongs to them dear people in Pokeville camp-meeting,
  • natural brothers and benefactors of the race, and that dear preacher
  • there, the truest friend a pirate ever had!”
  • And then he busted into tears, and so did everybody. Then somebody
  • sings out, “Take up a collection for him, take up a collection!” Well,
  • a half a dozen made a jump to do it, but somebody sings out, “Let _him_
  • pass the hat around!” Then everybody said it, the preacher too.
  • So the king went all through the crowd with his hat swabbing his eyes,
  • and blessing the people and praising them and thanking them for being
  • so good to the poor pirates away off there; and every little while the
  • prettiest kind of girls, with the tears running down their cheeks, would
  • up and ask him would he let them kiss him for to remember him by; and he
  • always done it; and some of them he hugged and kissed as many as five or
  • six times--and he was invited to stay a week; and everybody wanted him to
  • live in their houses, and said they'd think it was an honor; but he said
  • as this was the last day of the camp-meeting he couldn't do no good, and
  • besides he was in a sweat to get to the Indian Ocean right off and go to
  • work on the pirates.
  • When we got back to the raft and he come to count up he found he had
  • collected eighty-seven dollars and seventy-five cents. And then he had
  • fetched away a three-gallon jug of whisky, too, that he found under a
  • wagon when he was starting home through the woods. The king said,
  • take it all around, it laid over any day he'd ever put in in the
  • missionarying line. He said it warn't no use talking, heathens don't
  • amount to shucks alongside of pirates to work a camp-meeting with.
  • The duke was thinking _he'd_ been doing pretty well till the king come
  • to show up, but after that he didn't think so so much. He had set
  • up and printed off two little jobs for farmers in that
  • printing-office--horse bills--and took the money, four dollars. And he
  • had got in ten dollars' worth of advertisements for the paper, which he
  • said he would put in for four dollars if they would pay in advance--so
  • they done it. The price of the paper was two dollars a year, but he took
  • in three subscriptions for half a dollar apiece on condition of them
  • paying him in advance; they were going to pay in cordwood and onions as
  • usual, but he said he had just bought the concern and knocked down the
  • price as low as he could afford it, and was going to run it for cash.
  • He set up a little piece of poetry, which he made, himself, out of
  • his own head--three verses--kind of sweet and saddish--the name of it was,
  • “Yes, crush, cold world, this breaking heart”--and he left that all set
  • up and ready to print in the paper, and didn't charge nothing for it.
  • Well, he took in nine dollars and a half, and said he'd done a pretty
  • square day's work for it.
  • Then he showed us another little job he'd printed and hadn't charged
  • for, because it was for us. It had a picture of a runaway nigger with
  • a bundle on a stick over his shoulder, and “$200 reward” under it. The
  • reading was all about Jim, and just described him to a dot. It said
  • he run away from St. Jacques' plantation, forty mile below New Orleans,
  • last winter, and likely went north, and whoever would catch him and send
  • him back he could have the reward and expenses.
  • “Now,” says the duke, “after to-night we can run in the daytime if we
  • want to. Whenever we see anybody coming we can tie Jim hand and foot
  • with a rope, and lay him in the wigwam and show this handbill and say we
  • captured him up the river, and were too poor to travel on a steamboat,
  • so we got this little raft on credit from our friends and are going down
  • to get the reward. Handcuffs and chains would look still better on Jim,
  • but it wouldn't go well with the story of us being so poor. Too much
  • like jewelry. Ropes are the correct thing--we must preserve the unities,
  • as we say on the boards.”
  • We all said the duke was pretty smart, and there couldn't be no trouble
  • about running daytimes. We judged we could make miles enough that night
  • to get out of the reach of the powwow we reckoned the duke's work in
  • the printing office was going to make in that little town; then we could
  • boom right along if we wanted to.
  • We laid low and kept still, and never shoved out till nearly ten
  • o'clock; then we slid by, pretty wide away from the town, and didn't
  • hoist our lantern till we was clear out of sight of it.
  • When Jim called me to take the watch at four in the morning, he says:
  • “Huck, does you reck'n we gwyne to run acrost any mo' kings on dis
  • trip?”
  • “No,” I says, “I reckon not.”
  • “Well,” says he, “dat's all right, den. I doan' mine one er two kings,
  • but dat's enough. Dis one's powerful drunk, en de duke ain' much
  • better.”
  • I found Jim had been trying to get him to talk French, so he could hear
  • what it was like; but he said he had been in this country so long, and
  • had so much trouble, he'd forgot it.
  • CHAPTER XXI.
  • IT was after sun-up now, but we went right on and didn't tie up. The
  • king and the duke turned out by and by looking pretty rusty; but after
  • they'd jumped overboard and took a swim it chippered them up a good
  • deal. After breakfast the king he took a seat on the corner of the raft,
  • and pulled off his boots and rolled up his britches, and let his legs
  • dangle in the water, so as to be comfortable, and lit his pipe, and went
  • to getting his Romeo and Juliet by heart. When he had got it pretty
  • good him and the duke begun to practice it together. The duke had to
  • learn him over and over again how to say every speech; and he made him
  • sigh, and put his hand on his heart, and after a while he said he done
  • it pretty well; “only,” he says, “you mustn't bellow out _Romeo_!
  • that way, like a bull--you must say it soft and sick and languishy,
  • so--R-o-o-meo! that is the idea; for Juliet's a dear sweet mere child of
  • a girl, you know, and she doesn't bray like a jackass.”
  • Well, next they got out a couple of long swords that the duke made out
  • of oak laths, and begun to practice the sword fight--the duke called
  • himself Richard III.; and the way they laid on and pranced around
  • the raft was grand to see. But by and by the king tripped and fell
  • overboard, and after that they took a rest, and had a talk about all
  • kinds of adventures they'd had in other times along the river.
  • After dinner the duke says:
  • “Well, Capet, we'll want to make this a first-class show, you know, so
  • I guess we'll add a little more to it. We want a little something to
  • answer encores with, anyway.”
  • “What's onkores, Bilgewater?”
  • The duke told him, and then says:
  • “I'll answer by doing the Highland fling or the sailor's hornpipe; and
  • you--well, let me see--oh, I've got it--you can do Hamlet's soliloquy.”
  • “Hamlet's which?”
  • “Hamlet's soliloquy, you know; the most celebrated thing in Shakespeare.
  • Ah, it's sublime, sublime! Always fetches the house. I haven't got
  • it in the book--I've only got one volume--but I reckon I can piece it out
  • from memory. I'll just walk up and down a minute, and see if I can call
  • it back from recollection's vaults.”
  • So he went to marching up and down, thinking, and frowning horrible
  • every now and then; then he would hoist up his eyebrows; next he would
  • squeeze his hand on his forehead and stagger back and kind of moan; next
  • he would sigh, and next he'd let on to drop a tear. It was beautiful
  • to see him. By and by he got it. He told us to give attention. Then
  • he strikes a most noble attitude, with one leg shoved forwards, and his
  • arms stretched away up, and his head tilted back, looking up at the sky;
  • and then he begins to rip and rave and grit his teeth; and after that,
  • all through his speech, he howled, and spread around, and swelled up his
  • chest, and just knocked the spots out of any acting ever I see before.
  • This is the speech--I learned it, easy enough, while he was learning it
  • to the king:
  • To be, or not to be; that is the bare bodkin That makes calamity of
  • so long life; For who would fardels bear, till Birnam Wood do come
  • to Dunsinane, But that the fear of something after death Murders the
  • innocent sleep, Great nature's second course, And makes us rather sling
  • the arrows of outrageous fortune Than fly to others that we know not of.
  • There's the respect must give us pause: Wake Duncan with thy knocking! I
  • would thou couldst; For who would bear the whips and scorns of time, The
  • oppressor's wrong, the proud man's contumely, The law's delay, and the
  • quietus which his pangs might take. In the dead waste and middle of the
  • night, when churchyards yawn In customary suits of solemn black, But
  • that the undiscovered country from whose bourne no traveler returns,
  • Breathes forth contagion on the world, And thus the native hue of
  • resolution, like the poor cat i' the adage, Is sicklied o'er with care.
  • And all the clouds that lowered o'er our housetops, With this
  • regard their currents turn awry, And lose the name of action. 'Tis a
  • consummation devoutly to be wished. But soft you, the fair Ophelia: Ope
  • not thy ponderous and marble jaws. But get thee to a nunnery—go!
  • Well, the old man he liked that speech, and he mighty soon got it so he
  • could do it first rate. It seemed like he was just born for it; and when
  • he had his hand in and was excited, it was perfectly lovely the way he
  • would rip and tear and rair up behind when he was getting it off.
  • The first chance we got, the duke he had some show bills printed; and
  • after that, for two or three days as we floated along, the raft was a
  • most uncommon lively place, for there warn't nothing but sword-fighting
  • and rehearsing--as the duke called it--going on all the time. One morning,
  • when we was pretty well down the State of Arkansaw, we come in sight
  • of a little one-horse town in a big bend; so we tied up about
  • three-quarters of a mile above it, in the mouth of a crick which was
  • shut in like a tunnel by the cypress trees, and all of us but Jim took
  • the canoe and went down there to see if there was any chance in that
  • place for our show.
  • We struck it mighty lucky; there was going to be a circus there that
  • afternoon, and the country people was already beginning to come in, in
  • all kinds of old shackly wagons, and on horses. The circus would leave
  • before night, so our show would have a pretty good chance. The duke he
  • hired the court house, and we went around and stuck up our bills. They
  • read like this:
  • Shaksperean Revival!!!
  • Wonderful Attraction!
  • For One Night Only! The world renowned tragedians,
  • David Garrick the younger, of Drury Lane Theatre, London,
  • and
  • Edmund Kean the elder, of the Royal Haymarket Theatre, Whitechapel,
  • Pudding Lane, Piccadilly, London, and the Royal Continental Theatres, in
  • their sublime Shaksperean Spectacle entitled The Balcony Scene in
  • Romeo and Juliet!!!
  • Romeo...................................... Mr. Garrick.
  • Juliet..................................... Mr. Kean.
  • Assisted by the whole strength of the company!
  • New costumes, new scenery, new appointments!
  • Also:
  • The thrilling, masterly, and blood-curdling Broad-sword conflict In
  • Richard III.!!!
  • Richard III................................ Mr. Garrick.
  • Richmond................................... Mr. Kean.
  • also:
  • (by special request,)
  • Hamlet's Immortal Soliloquy!!
  • By the Illustrious Kean!
  • Done by him 300 consecutive nights in Paris!
  • For One Night Only,
  • On account of imperative European engagements!
  • Admission 25 cents; children and servants, 10 cents.
  • Then we went loafing around the town. The stores and houses was most all
  • old shackly dried-up frame concerns that hadn't ever been painted; they
  • was set up three or four foot above ground on stilts, so as to be out of
  • reach of the water when the river was overflowed. The houses had little
  • gardens around them, but they didn't seem to raise hardly anything in
  • them but jimpson weeds, and sunflowers, and ash-piles, and old curled-up
  • boots and shoes, and pieces of bottles, and rags, and played-out
  • tin-ware. The fences was made of different kinds of boards, nailed on
  • at different times; and they leaned every which-way, and had gates that
  • didn't generly have but one hinge--a leather one. Some of the fences
  • had been whitewashed, some time or another, but the duke said it was in
  • Clumbus's time, like enough. There was generly hogs in the garden, and
  • people driving them out.
  • All the stores was along one street. They had white domestic awnings in
  • front, and the country people hitched their horses to the awning-posts.
  • There was empty drygoods boxes under the awnings, and loafers roosting
  • on them all day long, whittling them with their Barlow knives; and
  • chawing tobacco, and gaping and yawning and stretching--a mighty ornery
  • lot. They generly had on yellow straw hats most as wide as an umbrella,
  • but didn't wear no coats nor waistcoats, they called one another Bill,
  • and Buck, and Hank, and Joe, and Andy, and talked lazy and drawly, and
  • used considerable many cuss words. There was as many as one loafer
  • leaning up against every awning-post, and he most always had his hands
  • in his britches-pockets, except when he fetched them out to lend a chaw
  • of tobacco or scratch. What a body was hearing amongst them all the
  • time was:
  • “Gimme a chaw 'v tobacker, Hank.”
  • “Cain't; I hain't got but one chaw left. Ask Bill.”
  • Maybe Bill he gives him a chaw; maybe he lies and says he ain't got
  • none. Some of them kinds of loafers never has a cent in the world, nor a
  • chaw of tobacco of their own. They get all their chawing by borrowing;
  • they say to a fellow, “I wisht you'd len' me a chaw, Jack, I jist this
  • minute give Ben Thompson the last chaw I had”--which is a lie pretty
  • much everytime; it don't fool nobody but a stranger; but Jack ain't no
  • stranger, so he says:
  • “_You_ give him a chaw, did you? So did your sister's cat's
  • grandmother. You pay me back the chaws you've awready borry'd off'n me,
  • Lafe Buckner, then I'll loan you one or two ton of it, and won't charge
  • you no back intrust, nuther.”
  • “Well, I _did_ pay you back some of it wunst.”
  • “Yes, you did--'bout six chaws. You borry'd store tobacker and paid back
  • nigger-head.”
  • Store tobacco is flat black plug, but these fellows mostly chaws the
  • natural leaf twisted. When they borrow a chaw they don't generly cut it
  • off with a knife, but set the plug in between their teeth, and gnaw with
  • their teeth and tug at the plug with their hands till they get it in
  • two; then sometimes the one that owns the tobacco looks mournful at it
  • when it's handed back, and says, sarcastic:
  • “Here, gimme the _chaw_, and you take the _plug_.”
  • All the streets and lanes was just mud; they warn't nothing else _but_
  • mud--mud as black as tar and nigh about a foot deep in some places,
  • and two or three inches deep in _all_ the places. The hogs loafed and
  • grunted around everywheres. You'd see a muddy sow and a litter of pigs
  • come lazying along the street and whollop herself right down in the way,
  • where folks had to walk around her, and she'd stretch out and shut her
  • eyes and wave her ears whilst the pigs was milking her, and look as
  • happy as if she was on salary. And pretty soon you'd hear a loafer
  • sing out, “Hi! _so_ boy! sick him, Tige!” and away the sow would go,
  • squealing most horrible, with a dog or two swinging to each ear, and
  • three or four dozen more a-coming; and then you would see all the
  • loafers get up and watch the thing out of sight, and laugh at the fun
  • and look grateful for the noise. Then they'd settle back again till
  • there was a dog fight. There couldn't anything wake them up all over,
  • and make them happy all over, like a dog fight--unless it might be
  • putting turpentine on a stray dog and setting fire to him, or tying a
  • tin pan to his tail and see him run himself to death.
  • On the river front some of the houses was sticking out over the bank,
  • and they was bowed and bent, and about ready to tumble in. The people
  • had moved out of them. The bank was caved away under one corner of some
  • others, and that corner was hanging over. People lived in them yet, but
  • it was dangersome, because sometimes a strip of land as wide as a house
  • caves in at a time. Sometimes a belt of land a quarter of a mile deep
  • will start in and cave along and cave along till it all caves into the
  • river in one summer. Such a town as that has to be always moving back,
  • and back, and back, because the river's always gnawing at it.
  • The nearer it got to noon that day the thicker and thicker was the
  • wagons and horses in the streets, and more coming all the time.
  • Families fetched their dinners with them from the country, and eat them
  • in the wagons. There was considerable whisky drinking going on, and I
  • seen three fights. By and by somebody sings out:
  • “Here comes old Boggs!--in from the country for his little old monthly
  • drunk; here he comes, boys!”
  • All the loafers looked glad; I reckoned they was used to having fun out
  • of Boggs. One of them says:
  • “Wonder who he's a-gwyne to chaw up this time. If he'd a-chawed up all
  • the men he's ben a-gwyne to chaw up in the last twenty year he'd have
  • considerable ruputation now.”
  • Another one says, “I wisht old Boggs 'd threaten me, 'cuz then I'd know
  • I warn't gwyne to die for a thousan' year.”
  • Boggs comes a-tearing along on his horse, whooping and yelling like an
  • Injun, and singing out:
  • “Cler the track, thar. I'm on the waw-path, and the price uv coffins is
  • a-gwyne to raise.”
  • He was drunk, and weaving about in his saddle; he was over fifty year
  • old, and had a very red face. Everybody yelled at him and laughed at
  • him and sassed him, and he sassed back, and said he'd attend to them and
  • lay them out in their regular turns, but he couldn't wait now because
  • he'd come to town to kill old Colonel Sherburn, and his motto was, “Meat
  • first, and spoon vittles to top off on.”
  • He see me, and rode up and says:
  • “Whar'd you come f'm, boy? You prepared to die?”
  • Then he rode on. I was scared, but a man says:
  • “He don't mean nothing; he's always a-carryin' on like that when he's
  • drunk. He's the best naturedest old fool in Arkansaw--never hurt nobody,
  • drunk nor sober.”
  • Boggs rode up before the biggest store in town, and bent his head down
  • so he could see under the curtain of the awning and yells:
  • “Come out here, Sherburn! Come out and meet the man you've swindled.
  • You're the houn' I'm after, and I'm a-gwyne to have you, too!”
  • And so he went on, calling Sherburn everything he could lay his tongue
  • to, and the whole street packed with people listening and laughing and
  • going on. By and by a proud-looking man about fifty-five--and he was a
  • heap the best dressed man in that town, too--steps out of the store, and
  • the crowd drops back on each side to let him come. He says to Boggs,
  • mighty ca'm and slow--he says:
  • “I'm tired of this, but I'll endure it till one o'clock. Till one
  • o'clock, mind--no longer. If you open your mouth against me only once
  • after that time you can't travel so far but I will find you.”
  • Then he turns and goes in. The crowd looked mighty sober; nobody
  • stirred, and there warn't no more laughing. Boggs rode off
  • blackguarding Sherburn as loud as he could yell, all down the street;
  • and pretty soon back he comes and stops before the store, still keeping
  • it up. Some men crowded around him and tried to get him to shut up,
  • but he wouldn't; they told him it would be one o'clock in about fifteen
  • minutes, and so he _must_ go home--he must go right away. But it didn't
  • do no good. He cussed away with all his might, and throwed his hat down
  • in the mud and rode over it, and pretty soon away he went a-raging down
  • the street again, with his gray hair a-flying. Everybody that could get
  • a chance at him tried their best to coax him off of his horse so they
  • could lock him up and get him sober; but it warn't no use--up the street
  • he would tear again, and give Sherburn another cussing. By and by
  • somebody says:
  • “Go for his daughter!--quick, go for his daughter; sometimes he'll listen
  • to her. If anybody can persuade him, she can.”
  • So somebody started on a run. I walked down street a ways and stopped.
  • In about five or ten minutes here comes Boggs again, but not on his
  • horse. He was a-reeling across the street towards me, bare-headed, with
  • a friend on both sides of him a-holt of his arms and hurrying him along.
  • He was quiet, and looked uneasy; and he warn't hanging back any, but was
  • doing some of the hurrying himself. Somebody sings out:
  • “Boggs!”
  • I looked over there to see who said it, and it was that Colonel
  • Sherburn. He was standing perfectly still in the street, and had a
  • pistol raised in his right hand--not aiming it, but holding it out with
  • the barrel tilted up towards the sky. The same second I see a young
  • girl coming on the run, and two men with her. Boggs and the men turned
  • round to see who called him, and when they see the pistol the men
  • jumped to one side, and the pistol-barrel come down slow and steady to
  • a level--both barrels cocked. Boggs throws up both of his hands and says,
  • “O Lord, don't shoot!” Bang! goes the first shot, and he staggers back,
  • clawing at the air--bang! goes the second one, and he tumbles backwards
  • on to the ground, heavy and solid, with his arms spread out. That young
  • girl screamed out and comes rushing, and down she throws herself on her
  • father, crying, and saying, “Oh, he's killed him, he's killed him!” The
  • crowd closed up around them, and shouldered and jammed one another, with
  • their necks stretched, trying to see, and people on the inside trying to
  • shove them back and shouting, “Back, back! give him air, give him air!”
  • Colonel Sherburn he tossed his pistol on to the ground, and turned
  • around on his heels and walked off.
  • They took Boggs to a little drug store, the crowd pressing around just
  • the same, and the whole town following, and I rushed and got a good
  • place at the window, where I was close to him and could see in. They
  • laid him on the floor and put one large Bible under his head, and opened
  • another one and spread it on his breast; but they tore open his shirt
  • first, and I seen where one of the bullets went in. He made about a
  • dozen long gasps, his breast lifting the Bible up when he drawed in his
  • breath, and letting it down again when he breathed it out--and after that
  • he laid still; he was dead. Then they pulled his daughter away from
  • him, screaming and crying, and took her off. She was about sixteen, and
  • very sweet and gentle looking, but awful pale and scared.
  • Well, pretty soon the whole town was there, squirming and scrouging and
  • pushing and shoving to get at the window and have a look, but people
  • that had the places wouldn't give them up, and folks behind them was
  • saying all the time, “Say, now, you've looked enough, you fellows;
  • 'tain't right and 'tain't fair for you to stay thar all the time, and
  • never give nobody a chance; other folks has their rights as well as
  • you.”
  • There was considerable jawing back, so I slid out, thinking maybe
  • there was going to be trouble. The streets was full, and everybody was
  • excited. Everybody that seen the shooting was telling how it happened,
  • and there was a big crowd packed around each one of these fellows,
  • stretching their necks and listening. One long, lanky man, with long
  • hair and a big white fur stovepipe hat on the back of his head, and a
  • crooked-handled cane, marked out the places on the ground where Boggs
  • stood and where Sherburn stood, and the people following him around from
  • one place to t'other and watching everything he done, and bobbing their
  • heads to show they understood, and stooping a little and resting their
  • hands on their thighs to watch him mark the places on the ground with
  • his cane; and then he stood up straight and stiff where Sherburn had
  • stood, frowning and having his hat-brim down over his eyes, and sung
  • out, “Boggs!” and then fetched his cane down slow to a level, and says
  • “Bang!” staggered backwards, says “Bang!” again, and fell down flat on
  • his back. The people that had seen the thing said he done it perfect;
  • said it was just exactly the way it all happened. Then as much as a
  • dozen people got out their bottles and treated him.
  • Well, by and by somebody said Sherburn ought to be lynched. In about a
  • minute everybody was saying it; so away they went, mad and yelling, and
  • snatching down every clothes-line they come to to do the hanging with.
  • CHAPTER XXII.
  • THEY swarmed up towards Sherburn's house, a-whooping and raging like
  • Injuns, and everything had to clear the way or get run over and tromped
  • to mush, and it was awful to see. Children was heeling it ahead of the
  • mob, screaming and trying to get out of the way; and every window along
  • the road was full of women's heads, and there was nigger boys in every
  • tree, and bucks and wenches looking over every fence; and as soon as the
  • mob would get nearly to them they would break and skaddle back out of
  • reach. Lots of the women and girls was crying and taking on, scared
  • most to death.
  • They swarmed up in front of Sherburn's palings as thick as they could
  • jam together, and you couldn't hear yourself think for the noise. It
  • was a little twenty-foot yard. Some sung out “Tear down the fence! tear
  • down the fence!” Then there was a racket of ripping and tearing and
  • smashing, and down she goes, and the front wall of the crowd begins to
  • roll in like a wave.
  • Just then Sherburn steps out on to the roof of his little front porch,
  • with a double-barrel gun in his hand, and takes his stand, perfectly
  • ca'm and deliberate, not saying a word. The racket stopped, and the
  • wave sucked back.
  • Sherburn never said a word--just stood there, looking down. The
  • stillness was awful creepy and uncomfortable. Sherburn run his eye slow
  • along the crowd; and wherever it struck the people tried a little to
  • out-gaze him, but they couldn't; they dropped their eyes and looked
  • sneaky. Then pretty soon Sherburn sort of laughed; not the pleasant
  • kind, but the kind that makes you feel like when you are eating bread
  • that's got sand in it.
  • Then he says, slow and scornful:
  • “The idea of _you_ lynching anybody! It's amusing. The idea of you
  • thinking you had pluck enough to lynch a _man_! Because you're brave
  • enough to tar and feather poor friendless cast-out women that come along
  • here, did that make you think you had grit enough to lay your hands on a
  • _man_? Why, a _man's_ safe in the hands of ten thousand of your kind--as
  • long as it's daytime and you're not behind him.
  • “Do I know you? I know you clear through. I was born and raised in the
  • South, and I've lived in the North; so I know the average all around.
  • The average man's a coward. In the North he lets anybody walk over him
  • that wants to, and goes home and prays for a humble spirit to bear it.
  • In the South one man all by himself, has stopped a stage full of men
  • in the daytime, and robbed the lot. Your newspapers call you a
  • brave people so much that you think you are braver than any other
  • people--whereas you're just _as_ brave, and no braver. Why don't your
  • juries hang murderers? Because they're afraid the man's friends will
  • shoot them in the back, in the dark--and it's just what they _would_ do.
  • “So they always acquit; and then a _man_ goes in the night, with a
  • hundred masked cowards at his back and lynches the rascal. Your mistake
  • is, that you didn't bring a man with you; that's one mistake, and the
  • other is that you didn't come in the dark and fetch your masks. You
  • brought _part_ of a man--Buck Harkness, there--and if you hadn't had him
  • to start you, you'd a taken it out in blowing.
  • “You didn't want to come. The average man don't like trouble and
  • danger. _You_ don't like trouble and danger. But if only _half_ a
  • man--like Buck Harkness, there--shouts 'Lynch him! lynch him!' you're
  • afraid to back down--afraid you'll be found out to be what you
  • are--_cowards_--and so you raise a yell, and hang yourselves on to that
  • half-a-man's coat-tail, and come raging up here, swearing what big
  • things you're going to do. The pitifulest thing out is a mob; that's
  • what an army is--a mob; they don't fight with courage that's born in
  • them, but with courage that's borrowed from their mass, and from their
  • officers. But a mob without any _man_ at the head of it is _beneath_
  • pitifulness. Now the thing for _you_ to do is to droop your tails and
  • go home and crawl in a hole. If any real lynching's going to be done it
  • will be done in the dark, Southern fashion; and when they come they'll
  • bring their masks, and fetch a _man_ along. Now _leave_--and take your
  • half-a-man with you”--tossing his gun up across his left arm and cocking
  • it when he says this.
  • The crowd washed back sudden, and then broke all apart, and went tearing
  • off every which way, and Buck Harkness he heeled it after them, looking
  • tolerable cheap. I could a stayed if I wanted to, but I didn't want to.
  • I went to the circus and loafed around the back side till the watchman
  • went by, and then dived in under the tent. I had my twenty-dollar gold
  • piece and some other money, but I reckoned I better save it, because
  • there ain't no telling how soon you are going to need it, away from
  • home and amongst strangers that way. You can't be too careful. I ain't
  • opposed to spending money on circuses when there ain't no other way, but
  • there ain't no use in _wasting_ it on them.
  • It was a real bully circus. It was the splendidest sight that ever was
  • when they all come riding in, two and two, a gentleman and lady, side
  • by side, the men just in their drawers and undershirts, and no shoes
  • nor stirrups, and resting their hands on their thighs easy and
  • comfortable--there must a been twenty of them--and every lady with a
  • lovely complexion, and perfectly beautiful, and looking just like a gang
  • of real sure-enough queens, and dressed in clothes that cost millions of
  • dollars, and just littered with diamonds. It was a powerful fine sight;
  • I never see anything so lovely. And then one by one they got up
  • and stood, and went a-weaving around the ring so gentle and wavy and
  • graceful, the men looking ever so tall and airy and straight, with their
  • heads bobbing and skimming along, away up there under the tent-roof, and
  • every lady's rose-leafy dress flapping soft and silky around her hips,
  • and she looking like the most loveliest parasol.
  • And then faster and faster they went, all of them dancing, first one
  • foot out in the air and then the other, the horses leaning more and
  • more, and the ringmaster going round and round the center-pole, cracking
  • his whip and shouting “Hi!--hi!” and the clown cracking jokes behind
  • him; and by and by all hands dropped the reins, and every lady put her
  • knuckles on her hips and every gentleman folded his arms, and then how
  • the horses did lean over and hump themselves! And so one after the
  • other they all skipped off into the ring, and made the sweetest bow I
  • ever see, and then scampered out, and everybody clapped their hands and
  • went just about wild.
  • Well, all through the circus they done the most astonishing things; and
  • all the time that clown carried on so it most killed the people. The
  • ringmaster couldn't ever say a word to him but he was back at him quick
  • as a wink with the funniest things a body ever said; and how he ever
  • _could_ think of so many of them, and so sudden and so pat, was what I
  • couldn't noway understand. Why, I couldn't a thought of them in a year.
  • And by and by a drunk man tried to get into the ring--said he wanted to
  • ride; said he could ride as well as anybody that ever was. They argued
  • and tried to keep him out, but he wouldn't listen, and the whole show
  • come to a standstill. Then the people begun to holler at him and make
  • fun of him, and that made him mad, and he begun to rip and tear; so that
  • stirred up the people, and a lot of men begun to pile down off of the
  • benches and swarm towards the ring, saying, “Knock him down! throw him
  • out!” and one or two women begun to scream. So, then, the ringmaster
  • he made a little speech, and said he hoped there wouldn't be no
  • disturbance, and if the man would promise he wouldn't make no more
  • trouble he would let him ride if he thought he could stay on the horse.
  • So everybody laughed and said all right, and the man got on. The minute
  • he was on, the horse begun to rip and tear and jump and cavort around,
  • with two circus men hanging on to his bridle trying to hold him, and the
  • drunk man hanging on to his neck, and his heels flying in the air every
  • jump, and the whole crowd of people standing up shouting and laughing
  • till tears rolled down. And at last, sure enough, all the circus men
  • could do, the horse broke loose, and away he went like the very nation,
  • round and round the ring, with that sot laying down on him and hanging
  • to his neck, with first one leg hanging most to the ground on one side,
  • and then t'other one on t'other side, and the people just crazy. It
  • warn't funny to me, though; I was all of a tremble to see his danger.
  • But pretty soon he struggled up astraddle and grabbed the bridle,
  • a-reeling this way and that; and the next minute he sprung up and
  • dropped the bridle and stood! and the horse a-going like a house afire
  • too. He just stood up there, a-sailing around as easy and comfortable
  • as if he warn't ever drunk in his life--and then he begun to pull off his
  • clothes and sling them. He shed them so thick they kind of clogged up
  • the air, and altogether he shed seventeen suits. And, then, there he
  • was, slim and handsome, and dressed the gaudiest and prettiest you
  • ever saw, and he lit into that horse with his whip and made him fairly
  • hum--and finally skipped off, and made his bow and danced off to
  • the dressing-room, and everybody just a-howling with pleasure and
  • astonishment.
  • Then the ringmaster he see how he had been fooled, and he _was_ the
  • sickest ringmaster you ever see, I reckon. Why, it was one of his own
  • men! He had got up that joke all out of his own head, and never let on
  • to nobody. Well, I felt sheepish enough to be took in so, but I wouldn't
  • a been in that ringmaster's place, not for a thousand dollars. I don't
  • know; there may be bullier circuses than what that one was, but I
  • never struck them yet. Anyways, it was plenty good enough for _me_; and
  • wherever I run across it, it can have all of _my_ custom every time.
  • Well, that night we had _our_ show; but there warn't only about twelve
  • people there--just enough to pay expenses. And they laughed all the
  • time, and that made the duke mad; and everybody left, anyway, before
  • the show was over, but one boy which was asleep. So the duke said these
  • Arkansaw lunkheads couldn't come up to Shakespeare; what they wanted
  • was low comedy--and maybe something ruther worse than low comedy, he
  • reckoned. He said he could size their style. So next morning he got
  • some big sheets of wrapping paper and some black paint, and drawed off
  • some handbills, and stuck them up all over the village. The bills said:
  • CHAPTER XXIII.
  • WELL, all day him and the king was hard at it, rigging up a stage and
  • a curtain and a row of candles for footlights; and that night the house
  • was jam full of men in no time. When the place couldn't hold no more,
  • the duke he quit tending door and went around the back way and come on
  • to the stage and stood up before the curtain and made a little speech,
  • and praised up this tragedy, and said it was the most thrillingest one
  • that ever was; and so he went on a-bragging about the tragedy, and about
  • Edmund Kean the Elder, which was to play the main principal part in it;
  • and at last when he'd got everybody's expectations up high enough, he
  • rolled up the curtain, and the next minute the king come a-prancing
  • out on all fours, naked; and he was painted all over,
  • ring-streaked-and-striped, all sorts of colors, as splendid as a
  • rainbow. And--but never mind the rest of his outfit; it was just wild,
  • but it was awful funny. The people most killed themselves laughing; and
  • when the king got done capering and capered off behind the scenes, they
  • roared and clapped and stormed and haw-hawed till he come back and done
  • it over again, and after that they made him do it another time. Well, it
  • would make a cow laugh to see the shines that old idiot cut.
  • Then the duke he lets the curtain down, and bows to the people, and says
  • the great tragedy will be performed only two nights more, on accounts of
  • pressing London engagements, where the seats is all sold already for it
  • in Drury Lane; and then he makes them another bow, and says if he has
  • succeeded in pleasing them and instructing them, he will be deeply
  • obleeged if they will mention it to their friends and get them to come
  • and see it.
  • Twenty people sings out:
  • “What, is it over? Is that _all_?”
  • The duke says yes. Then there was a fine time. Everybody sings
  • out, “Sold!” and rose up mad, and was a-going for that stage and them
  • tragedians. But a big, fine looking man jumps up on a bench and shouts:
  • “Hold on! Just a word, gentlemen.” They stopped to listen. “We are
  • sold--mighty badly sold. But we don't want to be the laughing stock of
  • this whole town, I reckon, and never hear the last of this thing as long
  • as we live. _No_. What we want is to go out of here quiet, and talk
  • this show up, and sell the _rest_ of the town! Then we'll all be in the
  • same boat. Ain't that sensible?” (“You bet it is!--the jedge is right!”
  • everybody sings out.) “All right, then--not a word about any sell. Go
  • along home, and advise everybody to come and see the tragedy.”
  • Next day you couldn't hear nothing around that town but how splendid
  • that show was. House was jammed again that night, and we sold this
  • crowd the same way. When me and the king and the duke got home to the
  • raft we all had a supper; and by and by, about midnight, they made Jim
  • and me back her out and float her down the middle of the river, and
  • fetch her in and hide her about two mile below town.
  • The third night the house was crammed again--and they warn't new-comers
  • this time, but people that was at the show the other two nights. I
  • stood by the duke at the door, and I see that every man that went in had
  • his pockets bulging, or something muffled up under his coat--and I see it
  • warn't no perfumery, neither, not by a long sight. I smelt sickly eggs
  • by the barrel, and rotten cabbages, and such things; and if I know the
  • signs of a dead cat being around, and I bet I do, there was sixty-four
  • of them went in. I shoved in there for a minute, but it was too various
  • for me; I couldn't stand it. Well, when the place couldn't hold no more
  • people the duke he give a fellow a quarter and told him to tend door
  • for him a minute, and then he started around for the stage door, I after
  • him; but the minute we turned the corner and was in the dark he says:
  • “Walk fast now till you get away from the houses, and then shin for the
  • raft like the dickens was after you!”
  • I done it, and he done the same. We struck the raft at the same time,
  • and in less than two seconds we was gliding down stream, all dark and
  • still, and edging towards the middle of the river, nobody saying a
  • word. I reckoned the poor king was in for a gaudy time of it with the
  • audience, but nothing of the sort; pretty soon he crawls out from under
  • the wigwam, and says:
  • “Well, how'd the old thing pan out this time, duke?” He hadn't been
  • up-town at all.
  • We never showed a light till we was about ten mile below the village.
  • Then we lit up and had a supper, and the king and the duke fairly
  • laughed their bones loose over the way they'd served them people. The
  • duke says:
  • “Greenhorns, flatheads! I knew the first house would keep mum and let
  • the rest of the town get roped in; and I knew they'd lay for us the
  • third night, and consider it was _their_ turn now. Well, it _is_ their
  • turn, and I'd give something to know how much they'd take for it. I
  • _would_ just like to know how they're putting in their opportunity.
  • They can turn it into a picnic if they want to--they brought plenty
  • provisions.”
  • Them rapscallions took in four hundred and sixty-five dollars in that
  • three nights. I never see money hauled in by the wagon-load like that
  • before. By and by, when they was asleep and snoring, Jim says:
  • “Don't it s'prise you de way dem kings carries on, Huck?”
  • “No,” I says, “it don't.”
  • “Why don't it, Huck?”
  • “Well, it don't, because it's in the breed. I reckon they're all
  • alike.”
  • “But, Huck, dese kings o' ourn is reglar rapscallions; dat's jist what
  • dey is; dey's reglar rapscallions.”
  • “Well, that's what I'm a-saying; all kings is mostly rapscallions, as
  • fur as I can make out.”
  • “Is dat so?”
  • “You read about them once--you'll see. Look at Henry the Eight; this 'n
  • 's a Sunday-school Superintendent to _him_. And look at Charles Second,
  • and Louis Fourteen, and Louis Fifteen, and James Second, and Edward
  • Second, and Richard Third, and forty more; besides all them Saxon
  • heptarchies that used to rip around so in old times and raise Cain. My,
  • you ought to seen old Henry the Eight when he was in bloom. He _was_ a
  • blossom. He used to marry a new wife every day, and chop off her head
  • next morning. And he would do it just as indifferent as if he was
  • ordering up eggs. 'Fetch up Nell Gwynn,' he says. They fetch her up.
  • Next morning, 'Chop off her head!' And they chop it off. 'Fetch up
  • Jane Shore,' he says; and up she comes, Next morning, 'Chop off her
  • head'--and they chop it off. 'Ring up Fair Rosamun.' Fair Rosamun
  • answers the bell. Next morning, 'Chop off her head.' And he made every
  • one of them tell him a tale every night; and he kept that up till he had
  • hogged a thousand and one tales that way, and then he put them all in a
  • book, and called it Domesday Book--which was a good name and stated the
  • case. You don't know kings, Jim, but I know them; and this old rip
  • of ourn is one of the cleanest I've struck in history. Well, Henry he
  • takes a notion he wants to get up some trouble with this country. How
  • does he go at it--give notice?--give the country a show? No. All of a
  • sudden he heaves all the tea in Boston Harbor overboard, and whacks
  • out a declaration of independence, and dares them to come on. That was
  • _his_ style--he never give anybody a chance. He had suspicions of his
  • father, the Duke of Wellington. Well, what did he do? Ask him to show
  • up? No--drownded him in a butt of mamsey, like a cat. S'pose people
  • left money laying around where he was--what did he do? He collared it.
  • S'pose he contracted to do a thing, and you paid him, and didn't set
  • down there and see that he done it--what did he do? He always done the
  • other thing. S'pose he opened his mouth--what then? If he didn't shut it
  • up powerful quick he'd lose a lie every time. That's the kind of a bug
  • Henry was; and if we'd a had him along 'stead of our kings he'd a fooled
  • that town a heap worse than ourn done. I don't say that ourn is lambs,
  • because they ain't, when you come right down to the cold facts; but they
  • ain't nothing to _that_ old ram, anyway. All I say is, kings is kings,
  • and you got to make allowances. Take them all around, they're a mighty
  • ornery lot. It's the way they're raised.”
  • “But dis one do _smell_ so like de nation, Huck.”
  • “Well, they all do, Jim. We can't help the way a king smells; history
  • don't tell no way.”
  • “Now de duke, he's a tolerble likely man in some ways.”
  • “Yes, a duke's different. But not very different. This one's
  • a middling hard lot for a duke. When he's drunk there ain't no
  • near-sighted man could tell him from a king.”
  • “Well, anyways, I doan' hanker for no mo' un um, Huck. Dese is all I
  • kin stan'.”
  • “It's the way I feel, too, Jim. But we've got them on our hands, and we
  • got to remember what they are, and make allowances. Sometimes I wish we
  • could hear of a country that's out of kings.”
  • What was the use to tell Jim these warn't real kings and dukes? It
  • wouldn't a done no good; and, besides, it was just as I said: you
  • couldn't tell them from the real kind.
  • I went to sleep, and Jim didn't call me when it was my turn. He often
  • done that. When I waked up just at daybreak he was sitting there with
  • his head down betwixt his knees, moaning and mourning to himself. I
  • didn't take notice nor let on. I knowed what it was about. He was
  • thinking about his wife and his children, away up yonder, and he was low
  • and homesick; because he hadn't ever been away from home before in his
  • life; and I do believe he cared just as much for his people as white
  • folks does for their'n. It don't seem natural, but I reckon it's so.
  • He was often moaning and mourning that way nights, when he judged I
  • was asleep, and saying, “Po' little 'Lizabeth! po' little Johnny! it's
  • mighty hard; I spec' I ain't ever gwyne to see you no mo', no mo'!” He
  • was a mighty good nigger, Jim was.
  • But this time I somehow got to talking to him about his wife and young
  • ones; and by and by he says:
  • “What makes me feel so bad dis time 'uz bekase I hear sumpn over yonder
  • on de bank like a whack, er a slam, while ago, en it mine me er de time
  • I treat my little 'Lizabeth so ornery. She warn't on'y 'bout fo' year
  • ole, en she tuck de sk'yarlet fever, en had a powful rough spell; but
  • she got well, en one day she was a-stannin' aroun', en I says to her, I
  • says:
  • “'Shet de do'.'
  • “She never done it; jis' stood dah, kiner smilin' up at me. It make me
  • mad; en I says agin, mighty loud, I says:
  • “'Doan' you hear me? Shet de do'!'
  • “She jis stood de same way, kiner smilin' up. I was a-bilin'! I says:
  • “'I lay I _make_ you mine!'
  • “En wid dat I fetch' her a slap side de head dat sont her a-sprawlin'.
  • Den I went into de yuther room, en 'uz gone 'bout ten minutes; en when
  • I come back dah was dat do' a-stannin' open _yit_, en dat chile stannin'
  • mos' right in it, a-lookin' down and mournin', en de tears runnin' down.
  • My, but I _wuz_ mad! I was a-gwyne for de chile, but jis' den--it was a
  • do' dat open innerds--jis' den, 'long come de wind en slam it to, behine
  • de chile, ker-BLAM!--en my lan', de chile never move'! My breff mos'
  • hop outer me; en I feel so--so--I doan' know HOW I feel. I crope out,
  • all a-tremblin', en crope aroun' en open de do' easy en slow, en poke my
  • head in behine de chile, sof' en still, en all uv a sudden I says POW!
  • jis' as loud as I could yell. _She never budge!_ Oh, Huck, I bust out
  • a-cryin' en grab her up in my arms, en say, 'Oh, de po' little thing!
  • De Lord God Amighty fogive po' ole Jim, kaze he never gwyne to fogive
  • hisself as long's he live!' Oh, she was plumb deef en dumb, Huck, plumb
  • deef en dumb--en I'd ben a-treat'n her so!”
  • CHAPTER XXIV.
  • NEXT day, towards night, we laid up under a little willow towhead out in
  • the middle, where there was a village on each side of the river, and the
  • duke and the king begun to lay out a plan for working them towns. Jim
  • he spoke to the duke, and said he hoped it wouldn't take but a few
  • hours, because it got mighty heavy and tiresome to him when he had to
  • lay all day in the wigwam tied with the rope. You see, when we left him
  • all alone we had to tie him, because if anybody happened on to him all
  • by himself and not tied it wouldn't look much like he was a runaway
  • nigger, you know. So the duke said it _was_ kind of hard to have to lay
  • roped all day, and he'd cipher out some way to get around it.
  • He was uncommon bright, the duke was, and he soon struck it. He dressed
  • Jim up in King Lear's outfit--it was a long curtain-calico gown, and a
  • white horse-hair wig and whiskers; and then he took his theater paint
  • and painted Jim's face and hands and ears and neck all over a dead,
  • dull, solid blue, like a man that's been drownded nine days. Blamed if
  • he warn't the horriblest looking outrage I ever see. Then the duke took
  • and wrote out a sign on a shingle so:
  • Sick Arab--but harmless when not out of his head.
  • And he nailed that shingle to a lath, and stood the lath up four or five
  • foot in front of the wigwam. Jim was satisfied. He said it was a sight
  • better than lying tied a couple of years every day, and trembling all
  • over every time there was a sound. The duke told him to make himself
  • free and easy, and if anybody ever come meddling around, he must hop
  • out of the wigwam, and carry on a little, and fetch a howl or two like
  • a wild beast, and he reckoned they would light out and leave him alone.
  • Which was sound enough judgment; but you take the average man, and he
  • wouldn't wait for him to howl. Why, he didn't only look like he was
  • dead, he looked considerable more than that.
  • These rapscallions wanted to try the Nonesuch again, because there was
  • so much money in it, but they judged it wouldn't be safe, because maybe
  • the news might a worked along down by this time. They couldn't hit no
  • project that suited exactly; so at last the duke said he reckoned he'd
  • lay off and work his brains an hour or two and see if he couldn't put up
  • something on the Arkansaw village; and the king he allowed he would drop
  • over to t'other village without any plan, but just trust in Providence
  • to lead him the profitable way--meaning the devil, I reckon. We had all
  • bought store clothes where we stopped last; and now the king put his'n
  • on, and he told me to put mine on. I done it, of course. The king's
  • duds was all black, and he did look real swell and starchy. I never
  • knowed how clothes could change a body before. Why, before, he looked
  • like the orneriest old rip that ever was; but now, when he'd take off
  • his new white beaver and make a bow and do a smile, he looked that grand
  • and good and pious that you'd say he had walked right out of the ark,
  • and maybe was old Leviticus himself. Jim cleaned up the canoe, and I
  • got my paddle ready. There was a big steamboat laying at the shore away
  • up under the point, about three mile above the town--been there a couple
  • of hours, taking on freight. Says the king:
  • “Seein' how I'm dressed, I reckon maybe I better arrive down from St.
  • Louis or Cincinnati, or some other big place. Go for the steamboat,
  • Huckleberry; we'll come down to the village on her.”
  • I didn't have to be ordered twice to go and take a steamboat ride.
  • I fetched the shore a half a mile above the village, and then went
  • scooting along the bluff bank in the easy water. Pretty soon we come to
  • a nice innocent-looking young country jake setting on a log swabbing the
  • sweat off of his face, for it was powerful warm weather; and he had a
  • couple of big carpet-bags by him.
  • “Run her nose in shore,” says the king. I done it. “Wher' you bound
  • for, young man?”
  • “For the steamboat; going to Orleans.”
  • “Git aboard,” says the king. “Hold on a minute, my servant 'll he'p you
  • with them bags. Jump out and he'p the gentleman, Adolphus”--meaning me,
  • I see.
  • I done so, and then we all three started on again. The young chap was
  • mighty thankful; said it was tough work toting his baggage such weather.
  • He asked the king where he was going, and the king told him he'd come
  • down the river and landed at the other village this morning, and now he
  • was going up a few mile to see an old friend on a farm up there. The
  • young fellow says:
  • “When I first see you I says to myself, 'It's Mr. Wilks, sure, and he
  • come mighty near getting here in time.' But then I says again, 'No, I
  • reckon it ain't him, or else he wouldn't be paddling up the river.' You
  • _ain't_ him, are you?”
  • “No, my name's Blodgett--Elexander Blodgett--_Reverend_ Elexander
  • Blodgett, I s'pose I must say, as I'm one o' the Lord's poor servants.
  • But still I'm jist as able to be sorry for Mr. Wilks for not arriving
  • in time, all the same, if he's missed anything by it--which I hope he
  • hasn't.”
  • “Well, he don't miss any property by it, because he'll get that all
  • right; but he's missed seeing his brother Peter die--which he mayn't
  • mind, nobody can tell as to that--but his brother would a give anything
  • in this world to see _him_ before he died; never talked about nothing
  • else all these three weeks; hadn't seen him since they was boys
  • together--and hadn't ever seen his brother William at all--that's the deef
  • and dumb one--William ain't more than thirty or thirty-five. Peter and
  • George were the only ones that come out here; George was the married
  • brother; him and his wife both died last year. Harvey and William's the
  • only ones that's left now; and, as I was saying, they haven't got here
  • in time.”
  • “Did anybody send 'em word?”
  • “Oh, yes; a month or two ago, when Peter was first took; because Peter
  • said then that he sorter felt like he warn't going to get well this
  • time. You see, he was pretty old, and George's g'yirls was too young to
  • be much company for him, except Mary Jane, the red-headed one; and so he
  • was kinder lonesome after George and his wife died, and didn't seem
  • to care much to live. He most desperately wanted to see Harvey--and
  • William, too, for that matter--because he was one of them kind that can't
  • bear to make a will. He left a letter behind for Harvey, and said he'd
  • told in it where his money was hid, and how he wanted the rest of the
  • property divided up so George's g'yirls would be all right--for George
  • didn't leave nothing. And that letter was all they could get him to put
  • a pen to.”
  • “Why do you reckon Harvey don't come? Wher' does he live?”
  • “Oh, he lives in England--Sheffield--preaches there--hasn't ever been in
  • this country. He hasn't had any too much time--and besides he mightn't a
  • got the letter at all, you know.”
  • “Too bad, too bad he couldn't a lived to see his brothers, poor soul.
  • You going to Orleans, you say?”
  • “Yes, but that ain't only a part of it. I'm going in a ship, next
  • Wednesday, for Ryo Janeero, where my uncle lives.”
  • “It's a pretty long journey. But it'll be lovely; wisht I was a-going.
  • Is Mary Jane the oldest? How old is the others?”
  • “Mary Jane's nineteen, Susan's fifteen, and Joanna's about
  • fourteen--that's the one that gives herself to good works and has a
  • hare-lip.”
  • “Poor things! to be left alone in the cold world so.”
  • “Well, they could be worse off. Old Peter had friends, and they
  • ain't going to let them come to no harm. There's Hobson, the Babtis'
  • preacher; and Deacon Lot Hovey, and Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford,
  • and Levi Bell, the lawyer; and Dr. Robinson, and their wives, and the
  • widow Bartley, and--well, there's a lot of them; but these are the ones
  • that Peter was thickest with, and used to write about sometimes, when
  • he wrote home; so Harvey 'll know where to look for friends when he gets
  • here.”
  • Well, the old man went on asking questions till he just fairly emptied
  • that young fellow. Blamed if he didn't inquire about everybody and
  • everything in that blessed town, and all about the Wilkses; and about
  • Peter's business--which was a tanner; and about George's--which was a
  • carpenter; and about Harvey's--which was a dissentering minister; and so
  • on, and so on. Then he says:
  • “What did you want to walk all the way up to the steamboat for?”
  • “Because she's a big Orleans boat, and I was afeard she mightn't stop
  • there. When they're deep they won't stop for a hail. A Cincinnati boat
  • will, but this is a St. Louis one.”
  • “Was Peter Wilks well off?”
  • “Oh, yes, pretty well off. He had houses and land, and it's reckoned he
  • left three or four thousand in cash hid up som'ers.”
  • “When did you say he died?”
  • “I didn't say, but it was last night.”
  • “Funeral to-morrow, likely?”
  • “Yes, 'bout the middle of the day.”
  • “Well, it's all terrible sad; but we've all got to go, one time or
  • another. So what we want to do is to be prepared; then we're all right.”
  • “Yes, sir, it's the best way. Ma used to always say that.”
  • When we struck the boat she was about done loading, and pretty soon she
  • got off. The king never said nothing about going aboard, so I lost
  • my ride, after all. When the boat was gone the king made me paddle up
  • another mile to a lonesome place, and then he got ashore and says:
  • “Now hustle back, right off, and fetch the duke up here, and the new
  • carpet-bags. And if he's gone over to t'other side, go over there and
  • git him. And tell him to git himself up regardless. Shove along, now.”
  • I see what _he_ was up to; but I never said nothing, of course. When
  • I got back with the duke we hid the canoe, and then they set down on a
  • log, and the king told him everything, just like the young fellow had
  • said it--every last word of it. And all the time he was a-doing it he
  • tried to talk like an Englishman; and he done it pretty well, too, for
  • a slouch. I can't imitate him, and so I ain't a-going to try to; but he
  • really done it pretty good. Then he says:
  • “How are you on the deef and dumb, Bilgewater?”
  • The duke said, leave him alone for that; said he had played a deef
  • and dumb person on the histronic boards. So then they waited for a
  • steamboat.
  • About the middle of the afternoon a couple of little boats come along,
  • but they didn't come from high enough up the river; but at last there
  • was a big one, and they hailed her. She sent out her yawl, and we went
  • aboard, and she was from Cincinnati; and when they found we only wanted
  • to go four or five mile they was booming mad, and gave us a cussing, and
  • said they wouldn't land us. But the king was ca'm. He says:
  • “If gentlemen kin afford to pay a dollar a mile apiece to be took on and
  • put off in a yawl, a steamboat kin afford to carry 'em, can't it?”
  • So they softened down and said it was all right; and when we got to the
  • village they yawled us ashore. About two dozen men flocked down when
  • they see the yawl a-coming, and when the king says:
  • “Kin any of you gentlemen tell me wher' Mr. Peter Wilks lives?” they
  • give a glance at one another, and nodded their heads, as much as to say,
  • “What d' I tell you?” Then one of them says, kind of soft and gentle:
  • “I'm sorry sir, but the best we can do is to tell you where he _did_
  • live yesterday evening.”
  • Sudden as winking the ornery old cretur went an to smash, and fell up
  • against the man, and put his chin on his shoulder, and cried down his
  • back, and says:
  • “Alas, alas, our poor brother--gone, and we never got to see him; oh,
  • it's too, too hard!”
  • Then he turns around, blubbering, and makes a lot of idiotic signs to
  • the duke on his hands, and blamed if he didn't drop a carpet-bag and
  • bust out a-crying. If they warn't the beatenest lot, them two frauds,
  • that ever I struck.
  • Well, the men gathered around and sympathized with them, and said all
  • sorts of kind things to them, and carried their carpet-bags up the hill
  • for them, and let them lean on them and cry, and told the king all about
  • his brother's last moments, and the king he told it all over again on
  • his hands to the duke, and both of them took on about that dead tanner
  • like they'd lost the twelve disciples. Well, if ever I struck anything
  • like it, I'm a nigger. It was enough to make a body ashamed of the human
  • race.
  • CHAPTER XXV.
  • THE news was all over town in two minutes, and you could see the people
  • tearing down on the run from every which way, some of them putting on
  • their coats as they come. Pretty soon we was in the middle of a crowd,
  • and the noise of the tramping was like a soldier march. The windows and
  • dooryards was full; and every minute somebody would say, over a fence:
  • “Is it _them_?”
  • And somebody trotting along with the gang would answer back and say:
  • “You bet it is.”
  • When we got to the house the street in front of it was packed, and the
  • three girls was standing in the door. Mary Jane _was_ red-headed, but
  • that don't make no difference, she was most awful beautiful, and her
  • face and her eyes was all lit up like glory, she was so glad her uncles
  • was come. The king he spread his arms, and Mary Jane she jumped for
  • them, and the hare-lip jumped for the duke, and there they had it!
  • Everybody most, leastways women, cried for joy to see them meet again
  • at last and have such good times.
  • Then the king he hunched the duke private--I see him do it--and then he
  • looked around and see the coffin, over in the corner on two chairs; so
  • then him and the duke, with a hand across each other's shoulder, and
  • t'other hand to their eyes, walked slow and solemn over there, everybody
  • dropping back to give them room, and all the talk and noise stopping,
  • people saying “Sh!” and all the men taking their hats off and drooping
  • their heads, so you could a heard a pin fall. And when they got there
  • they bent over and looked in the coffin, and took one sight, and then
  • they bust out a-crying so you could a heard them to Orleans, most; and
  • then they put their arms around each other's necks, and hung their chins
  • over each other's shoulders; and then for three minutes, or maybe four,
  • I never see two men leak the way they done. And, mind you, everybody
  • was doing the same; and the place was that damp I never see anything
  • like it. Then one of them got on one side of the coffin, and t'other on
  • t'other side, and they kneeled down and rested their foreheads on the
  • coffin, and let on to pray all to themselves. Well, when it come
  • to that it worked the crowd like you never see anything like it, and
  • everybody broke down and went to sobbing right out loud--the poor girls,
  • too; and every woman, nearly, went up to the girls, without saying a
  • word, and kissed them, solemn, on the forehead, and then put their hand
  • on their head, and looked up towards the sky, with the tears running
  • down, and then busted out and went off sobbing and swabbing, and give
  • the next woman a show. I never see anything so disgusting.
  • Well, by and by the king he gets up and comes forward a little, and
  • works himself up and slobbers out a speech, all full of tears and
  • flapdoodle about its being a sore trial for him and his poor brother
  • to lose the diseased, and to miss seeing diseased alive after the long
  • journey of four thousand mile, but it's a trial that's sweetened and
  • sanctified to us by this dear sympathy and these holy tears, and so he
  • thanks them out of his heart and out of his brother's heart, because out
  • of their mouths they can't, words being too weak and cold, and all that
  • kind of rot and slush, till it was just sickening; and then he blubbers
  • out a pious goody-goody Amen, and turns himself loose and goes to crying
  • fit to bust.
  • And the minute the words were out of his mouth somebody over in the
  • crowd struck up the doxolojer, and everybody joined in with all their
  • might, and it just warmed you up and made you feel as good as church
  • letting out. Music is a good thing; and after all that soul-butter and
  • hogwash I never see it freshen up things so, and sound so honest and
  • bully.
  • Then the king begins to work his jaw again, and says how him and his
  • nieces would be glad if a few of the main principal friends of the
  • family would take supper here with them this evening, and help set up
  • with the ashes of the diseased; and says if his poor brother laying
  • yonder could speak he knows who he would name, for they was names that
  • was very dear to him, and mentioned often in his letters; and so he will
  • name the same, to wit, as follows, vizz.:--Rev. Mr. Hobson, and Deacon
  • Lot Hovey, and Mr. Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford, and Levi Bell, and
  • Dr. Robinson, and their wives, and the widow Bartley.
  • Rev. Hobson and Dr. Robinson was down to the end of the town a-hunting
  • together--that is, I mean the doctor was shipping a sick man to t'other
  • world, and the preacher was pinting him right. Lawyer Bell was away up
  • to Louisville on business. But the rest was on hand, and so they all
  • come and shook hands with the king and thanked him and talked to him;
  • and then they shook hands with the duke and didn't say nothing, but just
  • kept a-smiling and bobbing their heads like a passel of sapheads whilst
  • he made all sorts of signs with his hands and said “Goo-goo--goo-goo-goo”
  • all the time, like a baby that can't talk.
  • So the king he blattered along, and managed to inquire about pretty
  • much everybody and dog in town, by his name, and mentioned all sorts
  • of little things that happened one time or another in the town, or to
  • George's family, or to Peter. And he always let on that Peter wrote him
  • the things; but that was a lie: he got every blessed one of them out of
  • that young flathead that we canoed up to the steamboat.
  • Then Mary Jane she fetched the letter her father left behind, and the
  • king he read it out loud and cried over it. It give the dwelling-house
  • and three thousand dollars, gold, to the girls; and it give the tanyard
  • (which was doing a good business), along with some other houses and
  • land (worth about seven thousand), and three thousand dollars in gold
  • to Harvey and William, and told where the six thousand cash was hid down
  • cellar. So these two frauds said they'd go and fetch it up, and have
  • everything square and above-board; and told me to come with a candle.
  • We shut the cellar door behind us, and when they found the bag
  • they spilt it out on the floor, and it was a lovely sight, all them
  • yaller-boys. My, the way the king's eyes did shine! He slaps the duke
  • on the shoulder and says:
  • “Oh, _this_ ain't bully nor noth'n! Oh, no, I reckon not! Why,
  • _bully_, it beats the Nonesuch, _don't_ it?”
  • The duke allowed it did. They pawed the yaller-boys, and sifted them
  • through their fingers and let them jingle down on the floor; and the
  • king says:
  • “It ain't no use talkin'; bein' brothers to a rich dead man and
  • representatives of furrin heirs that's got left is the line for you and
  • me, Bilge. Thish yer comes of trust'n to Providence. It's the best
  • way, in the long run. I've tried 'em all, and ther' ain't no better
  • way.”
  • Most everybody would a been satisfied with the pile, and took it on
  • trust; but no, they must count it. So they counts it, and it comes out
  • four hundred and fifteen dollars short. Says the king:
  • “Dern him, I wonder what he done with that four hundred and fifteen
  • dollars?”
  • They worried over that awhile, and ransacked all around for it. Then
  • the duke says:
  • “Well, he was a pretty sick man, and likely he made a mistake--I reckon
  • that's the way of it. The best way's to let it go, and keep still about
  • it. We can spare it.”
  • “Oh, shucks, yes, we can _spare_ it. I don't k'yer noth'n 'bout
  • that--it's the _count_ I'm thinkin' about. We want to be awful square
  • and open and above-board here, you know. We want to lug this h-yer
  • money up stairs and count it before everybody--then ther' ain't noth'n
  • suspicious. But when the dead man says ther's six thous'n dollars, you
  • know, we don't want to--”
  • “Hold on,” says the duke. “Le's make up the deffisit,” and he begun to
  • haul out yaller-boys out of his pocket.
  • “It's a most amaz'n' good idea, duke--you _have_ got a rattlin' clever
  • head on you,” says the king. “Blest if the old Nonesuch ain't a heppin'
  • us out agin,” and _he_ begun to haul out yaller-jackets and stack them
  • up.
  • It most busted them, but they made up the six thousand clean and clear.
  • “Say,” says the duke, “I got another idea. Le's go up stairs and count
  • this money, and then take and _give it to the girls_.”
  • “Good land, duke, lemme hug you! It's the most dazzling idea 'at ever a
  • man struck. You have cert'nly got the most astonishin' head I ever see.
  • Oh, this is the boss dodge, ther' ain't no mistake 'bout it. Let 'em
  • fetch along their suspicions now if they want to--this 'll lay 'em out.”
  • When we got up-stairs everybody gethered around the table, and the king
  • he counted it and stacked it up, three hundred dollars in a pile--twenty
  • elegant little piles. Everybody looked hungry at it, and licked their
  • chops. Then they raked it into the bag again, and I see the king begin
  • to swell himself up for another speech. He says:
  • “Friends all, my poor brother that lays yonder has done generous by
  • them that's left behind in the vale of sorrers. He has done generous by
  • these yer poor little lambs that he loved and sheltered, and that's left
  • fatherless and motherless. Yes, and we that knowed him knows that he
  • would a done _more_ generous by 'em if he hadn't ben afeard o' woundin'
  • his dear William and me. Now, _wouldn't_ he? Ther' ain't no question
  • 'bout it in _my_ mind. Well, then, what kind o' brothers would it be
  • that 'd stand in his way at sech a time? And what kind o' uncles would
  • it be that 'd rob--yes, _rob_--sech poor sweet lambs as these 'at he loved
  • so at sech a time? If I know William--and I _think_ I do--he--well, I'll
  • jest ask him.” He turns around and begins to make a lot of signs to
  • the duke with his hands, and the duke he looks at him stupid and
  • leather-headed a while; then all of a sudden he seems to catch his
  • meaning, and jumps for the king, goo-gooing with all his might for joy,
  • and hugs him about fifteen times before he lets up. Then the king says,
  • “I knowed it; I reckon _that 'll_ convince anybody the way _he_ feels
  • about it. Here, Mary Jane, Susan, Joanner, take the money--take it
  • _all_. It's the gift of him that lays yonder, cold but joyful.”
  • Mary Jane she went for him, Susan and the hare-lip went for the
  • duke, and then such another hugging and kissing I never see yet. And
  • everybody crowded up with the tears in their eyes, and most shook the
  • hands off of them frauds, saying all the time:
  • “You _dear_ good souls!--how _lovely_!--how _could_ you!”
  • Well, then, pretty soon all hands got to talking about the diseased
  • again, and how good he was, and what a loss he was, and all that; and
  • before long a big iron-jawed man worked himself in there from outside,
  • and stood a-listening and looking, and not saying anything; and nobody
  • saying anything to him either, because the king was talking and they was
  • all busy listening. The king was saying--in the middle of something he'd
  • started in on--
  • “--they bein' partickler friends o' the diseased. That's why they're
  • invited here this evenin'; but tomorrow we want _all_ to come--everybody;
  • for he respected everybody, he liked everybody, and so it's fitten that
  • his funeral orgies sh'd be public.”
  • And so he went a-mooning on and on, liking to hear himself talk, and
  • every little while he fetched in his funeral orgies again, till the duke
  • he couldn't stand it no more; so he writes on a little scrap of paper,
  • “_Obsequies_, you old fool,” and folds it up, and goes to goo-gooing and
  • reaching it over people's heads to him. The king he reads it and puts
  • it in his pocket, and says:
  • “Poor William, afflicted as he is, his _heart's_ aluz right. Asks me
  • to invite everybody to come to the funeral--wants me to make 'em all
  • welcome. But he needn't a worried--it was jest what I was at.”
  • Then he weaves along again, perfectly ca'm, and goes to dropping in his
  • funeral orgies again every now and then, just like he done before. And
  • when he done it the third time he says:
  • “I say orgies, not because it's the common term, because it
  • ain't--obsequies bein' the common term--but because orgies is the right
  • term. Obsequies ain't used in England no more now--it's gone out. We
  • say orgies now in England. Orgies is better, because it means the thing
  • you're after more exact. It's a word that's made up out'n the Greek
  • _orgo_, outside, open, abroad; and the Hebrew _jeesum_, to plant, cover
  • up; hence in_ter._ So, you see, funeral orgies is an open er public
  • funeral.”
  • He was the _worst_ I ever struck. Well, the iron-jawed man he laughed
  • right in his face. Everybody was shocked. Everybody says, “Why,
  • _doctor_!” and Abner Shackleford says:
  • “Why, Robinson, hain't you heard the news? This is Harvey Wilks.”
  • The king he smiled eager, and shoved out his flapper, and says:
  • “Is it my poor brother's dear good friend and physician? I--”
  • “Keep your hands off of me!” says the doctor. “_You_ talk like an
  • Englishman, _don't_ you? It's the worst imitation I ever heard. _You_
  • Peter Wilks's brother! You're a fraud, that's what you are!”
  • Well, how they all took on! They crowded around the doctor and tried to
  • quiet him down, and tried to explain to him and tell him how Harvey 'd
  • showed in forty ways that he _was_ Harvey, and knowed everybody by name,
  • and the names of the very dogs, and begged and _begged_ him not to hurt
  • Harvey's feelings and the poor girl's feelings, and all that. But it
  • warn't no use; he stormed right along, and said any man that pretended
  • to be an Englishman and couldn't imitate the lingo no better than what
  • he did was a fraud and a liar. The poor girls was hanging to the king
  • and crying; and all of a sudden the doctor ups and turns on _them_. He
  • says:
  • “I was your father's friend, and I'm your friend; and I warn you as a
  • friend, and an honest one that wants to protect you and keep you out of
  • harm and trouble, to turn your backs on that scoundrel and have nothing
  • to do with him, the ignorant tramp, with his idiotic Greek and Hebrew,
  • as he calls it. He is the thinnest kind of an impostor--has come here
  • with a lot of empty names and facts which he picked up somewheres, and
  • you take them for _proofs_, and are helped to fool yourselves by these
  • foolish friends here, who ought to know better. Mary Jane Wilks, you
  • know me for your friend, and for your unselfish friend, too. Now listen
  • to me; turn this pitiful rascal out--I _beg_ you to do it. Will you?”
  • Mary Jane straightened herself up, and my, but she was handsome! She
  • says:
  • “_Here_ is my answer.” She hove up the bag of money and put it in the
  • king's hands, and says, “Take this six thousand dollars, and invest for
  • me and my sisters any way you want to, and don't give us no receipt for
  • it.”
  • Then she put her arm around the king on one side, and Susan and the
  • hare-lip done the same on the other. Everybody clapped their hands and
  • stomped on the floor like a perfect storm, whilst the king held up his
  • head and smiled proud. The doctor says:
  • “All right; I wash _my_ hands of the matter. But I warn you all that a
  • time 's coming when you're going to feel sick whenever you think of this
  • day.” And away he went.
  • “All right, doctor,” says the king, kinder mocking him; “we'll try and
  • get 'em to send for you;” which made them all laugh, and they said it
  • was a prime good hit.
  • CHAPTER XXVI.
  • WELL, when they was all gone the king he asks Mary Jane how they was off
  • for spare rooms, and she said she had one spare room, which would do for
  • Uncle William, and she'd give her own room to Uncle Harvey, which was
  • a little bigger, and she would turn into the room with her sisters and
  • sleep on a cot; and up garret was a little cubby, with a pallet in it.
  • The king said the cubby would do for his valley--meaning me.
  • So Mary Jane took us up, and she showed them their rooms, which was
  • plain but nice. She said she'd have her frocks and a lot of other traps
  • took out of her room if they was in Uncle Harvey's way, but he said
  • they warn't. The frocks was hung along the wall, and before them was
  • a curtain made out of calico that hung down to the floor. There was an
  • old hair trunk in one corner, and a guitar-box in another, and all sorts
  • of little knickknacks and jimcracks around, like girls brisken up a room
  • with. The king said it was all the more homely and more pleasanter for
  • these fixings, and so don't disturb them. The duke's room was pretty
  • small, but plenty good enough, and so was my cubby.
  • That night they had a big supper, and all them men and women was there,
  • and I stood behind the king and the duke's chairs and waited on them,
  • and the niggers waited on the rest. Mary Jane she set at the head of
  • the table, with Susan alongside of her, and said how bad the biscuits
  • was, and how mean the preserves was, and how ornery and tough the fried
  • chickens was--and all that kind of rot, the way women always do for to
  • force out compliments; and the people all knowed everything was tiptop,
  • and said so--said “How _do_ you get biscuits to brown so nice?” and
  • “Where, for the land's sake, _did_ you get these amaz'n pickles?” and
  • all that kind of humbug talky-talk, just the way people always does at a
  • supper, you know.
  • And when it was all done me and the hare-lip had supper in the kitchen
  • off of the leavings, whilst the others was helping the niggers clean up
  • the things. The hare-lip she got to pumping me about England, and blest
  • if I didn't think the ice was getting mighty thin sometimes. She says:
  • “Did you ever see the king?”
  • “Who? William Fourth? Well, I bet I have--he goes to our church.” I
  • knowed he was dead years ago, but I never let on. So when I says he
  • goes to our church, she says:
  • “What--regular?”
  • “Yes--regular. His pew's right over opposite ourn--on t'other side the
  • pulpit.”
  • “I thought he lived in London?”
  • “Well, he does. Where _would_ he live?”
  • “But I thought _you_ lived in Sheffield?”
  • I see I was up a stump. I had to let on to get choked with a chicken
  • bone, so as to get time to think how to get down again. Then I says:
  • “I mean he goes to our church regular when he's in Sheffield. That's
  • only in the summer time, when he comes there to take the sea baths.”
  • “Why, how you talk--Sheffield ain't on the sea.”
  • “Well, who said it was?”
  • “Why, you did.”
  • “I _didn't_ nuther.”
  • “You did!”
  • “I didn't.”
  • “You did.”
  • “I never said nothing of the kind.”
  • “Well, what _did_ you say, then?”
  • “Said he come to take the sea _baths_--that's what I said.”
  • “Well, then, how's he going to take the sea baths if it ain't on the
  • sea?”
  • “Looky here,” I says; “did you ever see any Congress-water?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Well, did you have to go to Congress to get it?”
  • “Why, no.”
  • “Well, neither does William Fourth have to go to the sea to get a sea
  • bath.”
  • “How does he get it, then?”
  • “Gets it the way people down here gets Congress-water--in barrels. There
  • in the palace at Sheffield they've got furnaces, and he wants his water
  • hot. They can't bile that amount of water away off there at the sea.
  • They haven't got no conveniences for it.”
  • “Oh, I see, now. You might a said that in the first place and saved
  • time.”
  • When she said that I see I was out of the woods again, and so I was
  • comfortable and glad. Next, she says:
  • “Do you go to church, too?”
  • “Yes--regular.”
  • “Where do you set?”
  • “Why, in our pew.”
  • “_Whose_ pew?”
  • “Why, _ourn_--your Uncle Harvey's.”
  • “His'n? What does _he_ want with a pew?”
  • “Wants it to set in. What did you _reckon_ he wanted with it?”
  • “Why, I thought he'd be in the pulpit.”
  • Rot him, I forgot he was a preacher. I see I was up a stump again, so I
  • played another chicken bone and got another think. Then I says:
  • “Blame it, do you suppose there ain't but one preacher to a church?”
  • “Why, what do they want with more?”
  • “What!--to preach before a king? I never did see such a girl as you.
  • They don't have no less than seventeen.”
  • “Seventeen! My land! Why, I wouldn't set out such a string as that,
  • not if I _never_ got to glory. It must take 'em a week.”
  • “Shucks, they don't _all_ of 'em preach the same day--only _one_ of 'em.”
  • “Well, then, what does the rest of 'em do?”
  • “Oh, nothing much. Loll around, pass the plate--and one thing or
  • another. But mainly they don't do nothing.”
  • “Well, then, what are they _for_?”
  • “Why, they're for _style_. Don't you know nothing?”
  • “Well, I don't _want_ to know no such foolishness as that. How is
  • servants treated in England? Do they treat 'em better 'n we treat our
  • niggers?”
  • “_No_! A servant ain't nobody there. They treat them worse than dogs.”
  • “Don't they give 'em holidays, the way we do, Christmas and New Year's
  • week, and Fourth of July?”
  • “Oh, just listen! A body could tell _you_ hain't ever been to England
  • by that. Why, Hare-l--why, Joanna, they never see a holiday from year's
  • end to year's end; never go to the circus, nor theater, nor nigger
  • shows, nor nowheres.”
  • “Nor church?”
  • “Nor church.”
  • “But _you_ always went to church.”
  • Well, I was gone up again. I forgot I was the old man's servant. But
  • next minute I whirled in on a kind of an explanation how a valley was
  • different from a common servant and _had_ to go to church whether he
  • wanted to or not, and set with the family, on account of its being the
  • law. But I didn't do it pretty good, and when I got done I see she
  • warn't satisfied. She says:
  • “Honest injun, now, hain't you been telling me a lot of lies?”
  • “Honest injun,” says I.
  • “None of it at all?”
  • “None of it at all. Not a lie in it,” says I.
  • “Lay your hand on this book and say it.”
  • I see it warn't nothing but a dictionary, so I laid my hand on it and
  • said it. So then she looked a little better satisfied, and says:
  • “Well, then, I'll believe some of it; but I hope to gracious if I'll
  • believe the rest.”
  • “What is it you won't believe, Joe?” says Mary Jane, stepping in with
  • Susan behind her. “It ain't right nor kind for you to talk so to him,
  • and him a stranger and so far from his people. How would you like to be
  • treated so?”
  • “That's always your way, Maim--always sailing in to help somebody before
  • they're hurt. I hain't done nothing to him. He's told some stretchers,
  • I reckon, and I said I wouldn't swallow it all; and that's every bit
  • and grain I _did_ say. I reckon he can stand a little thing like that,
  • can't he?”
  • “I don't care whether 'twas little or whether 'twas big; he's here in
  • our house and a stranger, and it wasn't good of you to say it. If you
  • was in his place it would make you feel ashamed; and so you oughtn't to
  • say a thing to another person that will make _them_ feel ashamed.”
  • “Why, Mam, he said--”
  • “It don't make no difference what he _said_--that ain't the thing. The
  • thing is for you to treat him _kind_, and not be saying things to make
  • him remember he ain't in his own country and amongst his own folks.”
  • I says to myself, _this_ is a girl that I'm letting that old reptile rob
  • her of her money!
  • Then Susan _she_ waltzed in; and if you'll believe me, she did give
  • Hare-lip hark from the tomb!
  • Says I to myself, and this is _another_ one that I'm letting him rob her
  • of her money!
  • Then Mary Jane she took another inning, and went in sweet and lovely
  • again--which was her way; but when she got done there warn't hardly
  • anything left o' poor Hare-lip. So she hollered.
  • “All right, then,” says the other girls; “you just ask his pardon.”
  • She done it, too; and she done it beautiful. She done it so beautiful
  • it was good to hear; and I wished I could tell her a thousand lies, so
  • she could do it again.
  • I says to myself, this is _another_ one that I'm letting him rob her of
  • her money. And when she got through they all jest laid theirselves
  • out to make me feel at home and know I was amongst friends. I felt so
  • ornery and low down and mean that I says to myself, my mind's made up;
  • I'll hive that money for them or bust.
  • So then I lit out--for bed, I said, meaning some time or another. When
  • I got by myself I went to thinking the thing over. I says to myself,
  • shall I go to that doctor, private, and blow on these frauds? No--that
  • won't do. He might tell who told him; then the king and the duke would
  • make it warm for me. Shall I go, private, and tell Mary Jane? No--I
  • dasn't do it. Her face would give them a hint, sure; they've got the
  • money, and they'd slide right out and get away with it. If she was to
  • fetch in help I'd get mixed up in the business before it was done with,
  • I judge. No; there ain't no good way but one. I got to steal that
  • money, somehow; and I got to steal it some way that they won't suspicion
  • that I done it. They've got a good thing here, and they ain't a-going
  • to leave till they've played this family and this town for all they're
  • worth, so I'll find a chance time enough. I'll steal it and hide it; and
  • by and by, when I'm away down the river, I'll write a letter and tell
  • Mary Jane where it's hid. But I better hive it tonight if I can,
  • because the doctor maybe hasn't let up as much as he lets on he has; he
  • might scare them out of here yet.
  • So, thinks I, I'll go and search them rooms. Upstairs the hall was
  • dark, but I found the duke's room, and started to paw around it with
  • my hands; but I recollected it wouldn't be much like the king to let
  • anybody else take care of that money but his own self; so then I went to
  • his room and begun to paw around there. But I see I couldn't do nothing
  • without a candle, and I dasn't light one, of course. So I judged I'd
  • got to do the other thing--lay for them and eavesdrop. About that time
  • I hears their footsteps coming, and was going to skip under the bed; I
  • reached for it, but it wasn't where I thought it would be; but I touched
  • the curtain that hid Mary Jane's frocks, so I jumped in behind that and
  • snuggled in amongst the gowns, and stood there perfectly still.
  • They come in and shut the door; and the first thing the duke done was to
  • get down and look under the bed. Then I was glad I hadn't found the bed
  • when I wanted it. And yet, you know, it's kind of natural to hide under
  • the bed when you are up to anything private. They sets down then, and
  • the king says:
  • “Well, what is it? And cut it middlin' short, because it's better for
  • us to be down there a-whoopin' up the mournin' than up here givin' 'em a
  • chance to talk us over.”
  • “Well, this is it, Capet. I ain't easy; I ain't comfortable. That
  • doctor lays on my mind. I wanted to know your plans. I've got a
  • notion, and I think it's a sound one.”
  • “What is it, duke?”
  • “That we better glide out of this before three in the morning, and clip
  • it down the river with what we've got. Specially, seeing we got it so
  • easy--_given_ back to us, flung at our heads, as you may say, when of
  • course we allowed to have to steal it back. I'm for knocking off and
  • lighting out.”
  • That made me feel pretty bad. About an hour or two ago it would a been
  • a little different, but now it made me feel bad and disappointed, The
  • king rips out and says:
  • “What! And not sell out the rest o' the property? March off like
  • a passel of fools and leave eight or nine thous'n' dollars' worth o'
  • property layin' around jest sufferin' to be scooped in?--and all good,
  • salable stuff, too.”
  • The duke he grumbled; said the bag of gold was enough, and he didn't
  • want to go no deeper--didn't want to rob a lot of orphans of _everything_
  • they had.
  • “Why, how you talk!” says the king. “We sha'n't rob 'em of nothing at
  • all but jest this money. The people that _buys_ the property is the
  • suff'rers; because as soon 's it's found out 'at we didn't own it--which
  • won't be long after we've slid--the sale won't be valid, and it 'll all
  • go back to the estate. These yer orphans 'll git their house back agin,
  • and that's enough for _them_; they're young and spry, and k'n easy
  • earn a livin'. _they_ ain't a-goin to suffer. Why, jest think--there's
  • thous'n's and thous'n's that ain't nigh so well off. Bless you, _they_
  • ain't got noth'n' to complain of.”
  • Well, the king he talked him blind; so at last he give in, and said all
  • right, but said he believed it was blamed foolishness to stay, and that
  • doctor hanging over them. But the king says:
  • “Cuss the doctor! What do we k'yer for _him_? Hain't we got all the
  • fools in town on our side? And ain't that a big enough majority in any
  • town?”
  • So they got ready to go down stairs again. The duke says:
  • “I don't think we put that money in a good place.”
  • That cheered me up. I'd begun to think I warn't going to get a hint of
  • no kind to help me. The king says:
  • “Why?”
  • “Because Mary Jane 'll be in mourning from this out; and first you know
  • the nigger that does up the rooms will get an order to box these duds
  • up and put 'em away; and do you reckon a nigger can run across money and
  • not borrow some of it?”
  • “Your head's level agin, duke,” says the king; and he comes a-fumbling
  • under the curtain two or three foot from where I was. I stuck tight to
  • the wall and kept mighty still, though quivery; and I wondered what them
  • fellows would say to me if they catched me; and I tried to think what
  • I'd better do if they did catch me. But the king he got the bag before
  • I could think more than about a half a thought, and he never suspicioned
  • I was around. They took and shoved the bag through a rip in the straw
  • tick that was under the feather-bed, and crammed it in a foot or two
  • amongst the straw and said it was all right now, because a nigger only
  • makes up the feather-bed, and don't turn over the straw tick only about
  • twice a year, and so it warn't in no danger of getting stole now.
  • But I knowed better. I had it out of there before they was half-way
  • down stairs. I groped along up to my cubby, and hid it there till I
  • could get a chance to do better. I judged I better hide it outside
  • of the house somewheres, because if they missed it they would give the
  • house a good ransacking: I knowed that very well. Then I turned in,
  • with my clothes all on; but I couldn't a gone to sleep if I'd a wanted
  • to, I was in such a sweat to get through with the business. By and by I
  • heard the king and the duke come up; so I rolled off my pallet and laid
  • with my chin at the top of my ladder, and waited to see if anything was
  • going to happen. But nothing did.
  • So I held on till all the late sounds had quit and the early ones hadn't
  • begun yet; and then I slipped down the ladder.
  • CHAPTER XXVII.
  • I crept to their doors and listened; they was snoring. So I tiptoed
  • along, and got down stairs all right. There warn't a sound anywheres.
  • I peeped through a crack of the dining-room door, and see the men that
  • was watching the corpse all sound asleep on their chairs. The door
  • was open into the parlor, where the corpse was laying, and there was a
  • candle in both rooms. I passed along, and the parlor door was open; but
  • I see there warn't nobody in there but the remainders of Peter; so I
  • shoved on by; but the front door was locked, and the key wasn't there.
  • Just then I heard somebody coming down the stairs, back behind me. I
  • run in the parlor and took a swift look around, and the only place I
  • see to hide the bag was in the coffin. The lid was shoved along about
  • a foot, showing the dead man's face down in there, with a wet cloth over
  • it, and his shroud on. I tucked the money-bag in under the lid, just
  • down beyond where his hands was crossed, which made me creep, they was
  • so cold, and then I run back across the room and in behind the door.
  • The person coming was Mary Jane. She went to the coffin, very soft, and
  • kneeled down and looked in; then she put up her handkerchief, and I see
  • she begun to cry, though I couldn't hear her, and her back was to me. I
  • slid out, and as I passed the dining-room I thought I'd make sure them
  • watchers hadn't seen me; so I looked through the crack, and everything
  • was all right. They hadn't stirred.
  • I slipped up to bed, feeling ruther blue, on accounts of the thing
  • playing out that way after I had took so much trouble and run so much
  • resk about it. Says I, if it could stay where it is, all right; because
  • when we get down the river a hundred mile or two I could write back to
  • Mary Jane, and she could dig him up again and get it; but that ain't the
  • thing that's going to happen; the thing that's going to happen is, the
  • money 'll be found when they come to screw on the lid. Then the king
  • 'll get it again, and it 'll be a long day before he gives anybody
  • another chance to smouch it from him. Of course I _wanted_ to slide
  • down and get it out of there, but I dasn't try it. Every minute it was
  • getting earlier now, and pretty soon some of them watchers would begin
  • to stir, and I might get catched--catched with six thousand dollars in my
  • hands that nobody hadn't hired me to take care of. I don't wish to be
  • mixed up in no such business as that, I says to myself.
  • When I got down stairs in the morning the parlor was shut up, and the
  • watchers was gone. There warn't nobody around but the family and the
  • widow Bartley and our tribe. I watched their faces to see if anything
  • had been happening, but I couldn't tell.
  • Towards the middle of the day the undertaker come with his man, and they
  • set the coffin in the middle of the room on a couple of chairs, and then
  • set all our chairs in rows, and borrowed more from the neighbors till
  • the hall and the parlor and the dining-room was full. I see the coffin
  • lid was the way it was before, but I dasn't go to look in under it, with
  • folks around.
  • Then the people begun to flock in, and the beats and the girls took
  • seats in the front row at the head of the coffin, and for a half an hour
  • the people filed around slow, in single rank, and looked down at the
  • dead man's face a minute, and some dropped in a tear, and it was
  • all very still and solemn, only the girls and the beats holding
  • handkerchiefs to their eyes and keeping their heads bent, and sobbing a
  • little. There warn't no other sound but the scraping of the feet on
  • the floor and blowing noses--because people always blows them more at a
  • funeral than they do at other places except church.
  • When the place was packed full the undertaker he slid around in his
  • black gloves with his softy soothering ways, putting on the last
  • touches, and getting people and things all ship-shape and comfortable,
  • and making no more sound than a cat. He never spoke; he moved people
  • around, he squeezed in late ones, he opened up passageways, and done
  • it with nods, and signs with his hands. Then he took his place over
  • against the wall. He was the softest, glidingest, stealthiest man I ever
  • see; and there warn't no more smile to him than there is to a ham.
  • They had borrowed a melodeum--a sick one; and when everything was ready
  • a young woman set down and worked it, and it was pretty skreeky and
  • colicky, and everybody joined in and sung, and Peter was the only one
  • that had a good thing, according to my notion. Then the Reverend Hobson
  • opened up, slow and solemn, and begun to talk; and straight off the most
  • outrageous row busted out in the cellar a body ever heard; it was only
  • one dog, but he made a most powerful racket, and he kept it up right
  • along; the parson he had to stand there, over the coffin, and wait--you
  • couldn't hear yourself think. It was right down awkward, and nobody
  • didn't seem to know what to do. But pretty soon they see that
  • long-legged undertaker make a sign to the preacher as much as to say,
  • “Don't you worry--just depend on me.” Then he stooped down and begun
  • to glide along the wall, just his shoulders showing over the people's
  • heads. So he glided along, and the powwow and racket getting more and
  • more outrageous all the time; and at last, when he had gone around two
  • sides of the room, he disappears down cellar. Then in about two seconds
  • we heard a whack, and the dog he finished up with a most amazing howl or
  • two, and then everything was dead still, and the parson begun his solemn
  • talk where he left off. In a minute or two here comes this undertaker's
  • back and shoulders gliding along the wall again; and so he glided and
  • glided around three sides of the room, and then rose up, and shaded his
  • mouth with his hands, and stretched his neck out towards the preacher,
  • over the people's heads, and says, in a kind of a coarse whisper, “_He
  • had a rat_!” Then he drooped down and glided along the wall again to
  • his place. You could see it was a great satisfaction to the people,
  • because naturally they wanted to know. A little thing like that don't
  • cost nothing, and it's just the little things that makes a man to be
  • looked up to and liked. There warn't no more popular man in town than
  • what that undertaker was.
  • Well, the funeral sermon was very good, but pison long and tiresome; and
  • then the king he shoved in and got off some of his usual rubbage, and
  • at last the job was through, and the undertaker begun to sneak up on the
  • coffin with his screw-driver. I was in a sweat then, and watched him
  • pretty keen. But he never meddled at all; just slid the lid along as
  • soft as mush, and screwed it down tight and fast. So there I was! I
  • didn't know whether the money was in there or not. So, says I, s'pose
  • somebody has hogged that bag on the sly?--now how do I know whether
  • to write to Mary Jane or not? S'pose she dug him up and didn't find
  • nothing, what would she think of me? Blame it, I says, I might get
  • hunted up and jailed; I'd better lay low and keep dark, and not write at
  • all; the thing's awful mixed now; trying to better it, I've worsened it
  • a hundred times, and I wish to goodness I'd just let it alone, dad fetch
  • the whole business!
  • They buried him, and we come back home, and I went to watching faces
  • again--I couldn't help it, and I couldn't rest easy. But nothing come of
  • it; the faces didn't tell me nothing.
  • The king he visited around in the evening, and sweetened everybody up,
  • and made himself ever so friendly; and he give out the idea that his
  • congregation over in England would be in a sweat about him, so he must
  • hurry and settle up the estate right away and leave for home. He was
  • very sorry he was so pushed, and so was everybody; they wished he could
  • stay longer, but they said they could see it couldn't be done. And he
  • said of course him and William would take the girls home with them; and
  • that pleased everybody too, because then the girls would be well fixed
  • and amongst their own relations; and it pleased the girls, too--tickled
  • them so they clean forgot they ever had a trouble in the world; and told
  • him to sell out as quick as he wanted to, they would be ready. Them
  • poor things was that glad and happy it made my heart ache to see them
  • getting fooled and lied to so, but I didn't see no safe way for me to
  • chip in and change the general tune.
  • Well, blamed if the king didn't bill the house and the niggers and all
  • the property for auction straight off--sale two days after the funeral;
  • but anybody could buy private beforehand if they wanted to.
  • So the next day after the funeral, along about noon-time, the girls' joy
  • got the first jolt. A couple of nigger traders come along, and the king
  • sold them the niggers reasonable, for three-day drafts as they called
  • it, and away they went, the two sons up the river to Memphis, and their
  • mother down the river to Orleans. I thought them poor girls and them
  • niggers would break their hearts for grief; they cried around each
  • other, and took on so it most made me down sick to see it. The girls
  • said they hadn't ever dreamed of seeing the family separated or sold
  • away from the town. I can't ever get it out of my memory, the sight of
  • them poor miserable girls and niggers hanging around each other's necks
  • and crying; and I reckon I couldn't a stood it all, but would a had
  • to bust out and tell on our gang if I hadn't knowed the sale warn't no
  • account and the niggers would be back home in a week or two.
  • The thing made a big stir in the town, too, and a good many come out
  • flatfooted and said it was scandalous to separate the mother and the
  • children that way. It injured the frauds some; but the old fool he
  • bulled right along, spite of all the duke could say or do, and I tell
  • you the duke was powerful uneasy.
  • Next day was auction day. About broad day in the morning the king and
  • the duke come up in the garret and woke me up, and I see by their look
  • that there was trouble. The king says:
  • “Was you in my room night before last?”
  • “No, your majesty”--which was the way I always called him when nobody but
  • our gang warn't around.
  • “Was you in there yisterday er last night?”
  • “No, your majesty.”
  • “Honor bright, now--no lies.”
  • “Honor bright, your majesty, I'm telling you the truth. I hain't been
  • a-near your room since Miss Mary Jane took you and the duke and showed
  • it to you.”
  • The duke says:
  • “Have you seen anybody else go in there?”
  • “No, your grace, not as I remember, I believe.”
  • “Stop and think.”
  • I studied awhile and see my chance; then I says:
  • “Well, I see the niggers go in there several times.”
  • Both of them gave a little jump, and looked like they hadn't ever
  • expected it, and then like they _had_. Then the duke says:
  • “What, all of them?”
  • “No--leastways, not all at once--that is, I don't think I ever see them
  • all come _out_ at once but just one time.”
  • “Hello! When was that?”
  • “It was the day we had the funeral. In the morning. It warn't early,
  • because I overslept. I was just starting down the ladder, and I see
  • them.”
  • “Well, go on, _go_ on! What did they do? How'd they act?”
  • “They didn't do nothing. And they didn't act anyway much, as fur as I
  • see. They tiptoed away; so I seen, easy enough, that they'd shoved in
  • there to do up your majesty's room, or something, s'posing you was up;
  • and found you _warn't_ up, and so they was hoping to slide out of the
  • way of trouble without waking you up, if they hadn't already waked you
  • up.”
  • “Great guns, _this_ is a go!” says the king; and both of them looked
  • pretty sick and tolerable silly. They stood there a-thinking and
  • scratching their heads a minute, and the duke he bust into a kind of a
  • little raspy chuckle, and says:
  • “It does beat all how neat the niggers played their hand. They let on
  • to be _sorry_ they was going out of this region! And I believed they
  • _was_ sorry, and so did you, and so did everybody. Don't ever tell _me_
  • any more that a nigger ain't got any histrionic talent. Why, the way
  • they played that thing it would fool _anybody_. In my opinion, there's
  • a fortune in 'em. If I had capital and a theater, I wouldn't want a
  • better lay-out than that--and here we've gone and sold 'em for a song.
  • Yes, and ain't privileged to sing the song yet. Say, where _is_ that
  • song--that draft?”
  • “In the bank for to be collected. Where _would_ it be?”
  • “Well, _that's_ all right then, thank goodness.”
  • Says I, kind of timid-like:
  • “Is something gone wrong?”
  • The king whirls on me and rips out:
  • “None o' your business! You keep your head shet, and mind y'r own
  • affairs--if you got any. Long as you're in this town don't you forgit
  • _that_--you hear?” Then he says to the duke, “We got to jest swaller it
  • and say noth'n': mum's the word for _us_.”
  • As they was starting down the ladder the duke he chuckles again, and
  • says:
  • “Quick sales _and_ small profits! It's a good business--yes.”
  • The king snarls around on him and says:
  • “I was trying to do for the best in sellin' 'em out so quick. If the
  • profits has turned out to be none, lackin' considable, and none to
  • carry, is it my fault any more'n it's yourn?”
  • “Well, _they'd_ be in this house yet and we _wouldn't_ if I could a got
  • my advice listened to.”
  • The king sassed back as much as was safe for him, and then swapped
  • around and lit into _me_ again. He give me down the banks for not
  • coming and _telling_ him I see the niggers come out of his room acting
  • that way--said any fool would a _knowed_ something was up. And then
  • waltzed in and cussed _himself_ awhile, and said it all come of him not
  • laying late and taking his natural rest that morning, and he'd be
  • blamed if he'd ever do it again. So they went off a-jawing; and I felt
  • dreadful glad I'd worked it all off on to the niggers, and yet hadn't
  • done the niggers no harm by it.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII.
  • BY and by it was getting-up time. So I come down the ladder and started
  • for down-stairs; but as I come to the girls' room the door was open, and
  • I see Mary Jane setting by her old hair trunk, which was open and she'd
  • been packing things in it--getting ready to go to England. But she
  • had stopped now with a folded gown in her lap, and had her face in her
  • hands, crying. I felt awful bad to see it; of course anybody would. I
  • went in there and says:
  • “Miss Mary Jane, you can't a-bear to see people in trouble, and I
  • can't--most always. Tell me about it.”
  • So she done it. And it was the niggers--I just expected it. She said
  • the beautiful trip to England was most about spoiled for her; she didn't
  • know _how_ she was ever going to be happy there, knowing the mother and
  • the children warn't ever going to see each other no more--and then busted
  • out bitterer than ever, and flung up her hands, and says:
  • “Oh, dear, dear, to think they ain't _ever_ going to see each other any
  • more!”
  • “But they _will_--and inside of two weeks--and I _know_ it!” says I.
  • Laws, it was out before I could think! And before I could budge she
  • throws her arms around my neck and told me to say it _again_, say it
  • _again_, say it _again_!
  • I see I had spoke too sudden and said too much, and was in a close
  • place. I asked her to let me think a minute; and she set there, very
  • impatient and excited and handsome, but looking kind of happy and
  • eased-up, like a person that's had a tooth pulled out. So I went to
  • studying it out. I says to myself, I reckon a body that ups and tells
  • the truth when he is in a tight place is taking considerable many resks,
  • though I ain't had no experience, and can't say for certain; but it
  • looks so to me, anyway; and yet here's a case where I'm blest if it
  • don't look to me like the truth is better and actuly _safer_ than a lie.
  • I must lay it by in my mind, and think it over some time or other, it's
  • so kind of strange and unregular. I never see nothing like it. Well, I
  • says to myself at last, I'm a-going to chance it; I'll up and tell the
  • truth this time, though it does seem most like setting down on a kag of
  • powder and touching it off just to see where you'll go to. Then I says:
  • “Miss Mary Jane, is there any place out of town a little ways where you
  • could go and stay three or four days?”
  • “Yes; Mr. Lothrop's. Why?”
  • “Never mind why yet. If I'll tell you how I know the niggers will see
  • each other again inside of two weeks--here in this house--and _prove_ how
  • I know it--will you go to Mr. Lothrop's and stay four days?”
  • “Four days!” she says; “I'll stay a year!”
  • “All right,” I says, “I don't want nothing more out of _you_ than just
  • your word--I druther have it than another man's kiss-the-Bible.” She
  • smiled and reddened up very sweet, and I says, “If you don't mind it,
  • I'll shut the door--and bolt it.”
  • Then I come back and set down again, and says:
  • “Don't you holler. Just set still and take it like a man. I got to
  • tell the truth, and you want to brace up, Miss Mary, because it's a
  • bad kind, and going to be hard to take, but there ain't no help for
  • it. These uncles of yourn ain't no uncles at all; they're a couple of
  • frauds--regular dead-beats. There, now we're over the worst of it, you
  • can stand the rest middling easy.”
  • It jolted her up like everything, of course; but I was over the shoal
  • water now, so I went right along, her eyes a-blazing higher and higher
  • all the time, and told her every blame thing, from where we first struck
  • that young fool going up to the steamboat, clear through to where she
  • flung herself on to the king's breast at the front door and he kissed
  • her sixteen or seventeen times--and then up she jumps, with her face
  • afire like sunset, and says:
  • “The brute! Come, don't waste a minute--not a _second_--we'll have them
  • tarred and feathered, and flung in the river!”
  • Says I:
  • “Cert'nly. But do you mean _before_ you go to Mr. Lothrop's, or--”
  • “Oh,” she says, “what am I _thinking_ about!” she says, and set right
  • down again. “Don't mind what I said--please don't--you _won't,_ now,
  • _will_ you?” Laying her silky hand on mine in that kind of a way that
  • I said I would die first. “I never thought, I was so stirred up,” she
  • says; “now go on, and I won't do so any more. You tell me what to do,
  • and whatever you say I'll do it.”
  • “Well,” I says, “it's a rough gang, them two frauds, and I'm fixed so
  • I got to travel with them a while longer, whether I want to or not--I
  • druther not tell you why; and if you was to blow on them this town would
  • get me out of their claws, and I'd be all right; but there'd be another
  • person that you don't know about who'd be in big trouble. Well, we
  • got to save _him_, hain't we? Of course. Well, then, we won't blow on
  • them.”
  • Saying them words put a good idea in my head. I see how maybe I could
  • get me and Jim rid of the frauds; get them jailed here, and then leave.
  • But I didn't want to run the raft in the daytime without anybody aboard
  • to answer questions but me; so I didn't want the plan to begin working
  • till pretty late to-night. I says:
  • “Miss Mary Jane, I'll tell you what we'll do, and you won't have to stay
  • at Mr. Lothrop's so long, nuther. How fur is it?”
  • “A little short of four miles--right out in the country, back here.”
  • “Well, that 'll answer. Now you go along out there, and lay low
  • till nine or half-past to-night, and then get them to fetch you home
  • again--tell them you've thought of something. If you get here before
  • eleven put a candle in this window, and if I don't turn up wait _till_
  • eleven, and _then_ if I don't turn up it means I'm gone, and out of the
  • way, and safe. Then you come out and spread the news around, and get
  • these beats jailed.”
  • “Good,” she says, “I'll do it.”
  • “And if it just happens so that I don't get away, but get took up along
  • with them, you must up and say I told you the whole thing beforehand,
  • and you must stand by me all you can.”
  • “Stand by you! indeed I will. They sha'n't touch a hair of your head!”
  • she says, and I see her nostrils spread and her eyes snap when she said
  • it, too.
  • “If I get away I sha'n't be here,” I says, “to prove these rapscallions
  • ain't your uncles, and I couldn't do it if I _was_ here. I could swear
  • they was beats and bummers, that's all, though that's worth something.
  • Well, there's others can do that better than what I can, and they're
  • people that ain't going to be doubted as quick as I'd be. I'll tell you
  • how to find them. Gimme a pencil and a piece of paper. There--'Royal
  • Nonesuch, Bricksville.' Put it away, and don't lose it. When the
  • court wants to find out something about these two, let them send up to
  • Bricksville and say they've got the men that played the Royal Nonesuch,
  • and ask for some witnesses--why, you'll have that entire town down here
  • before you can hardly wink, Miss Mary. And they'll come a-biling, too.”
  • I judged we had got everything fixed about right now. So I says:
  • “Just let the auction go right along, and don't worry. Nobody don't
  • have to pay for the things they buy till a whole day after the auction
  • on accounts of the short notice, and they ain't going out of this till
  • they get that money; and the way we've fixed it the sale ain't going to
  • count, and they ain't going to get no money. It's just like the way
  • it was with the niggers--it warn't no sale, and the niggers will be
  • back before long. Why, they can't collect the money for the _niggers_
  • yet--they're in the worst kind of a fix, Miss Mary.”
  • “Well,” she says, “I'll run down to breakfast now, and then I'll start
  • straight for Mr. Lothrop's.”
  • “'Deed, _that_ ain't the ticket, Miss Mary Jane,” I says, “by no manner
  • of means; go _before_ breakfast.”
  • “Why?”
  • “What did you reckon I wanted you to go at all for, Miss Mary?”
  • “Well, I never thought--and come to think, I don't know. What was it?”
  • “Why, it's because you ain't one of these leather-face people. I don't
  • want no better book than what your face is. A body can set down and
  • read it off like coarse print. Do you reckon you can go and face your
  • uncles when they come to kiss you good-morning, and never--”
  • “There, there, don't! Yes, I'll go before breakfast--I'll be glad to.
  • And leave my sisters with them?”
  • “Yes; never mind about them. They've got to stand it yet a while. They
  • might suspicion something if all of you was to go. I don't want you to
  • see them, nor your sisters, nor nobody in this town; if a neighbor was
  • to ask how is your uncles this morning your face would tell something.
  • No, you go right along, Miss Mary Jane, and I'll fix it with all of
  • them. I'll tell Miss Susan to give your love to your uncles and say
  • you've went away for a few hours for to get a little rest and change, or
  • to see a friend, and you'll be back to-night or early in the morning.”
  • “Gone to see a friend is all right, but I won't have my love given to
  • them.”
  • “Well, then, it sha'n't be.” It was well enough to tell _her_ so--no
  • harm in it. It was only a little thing to do, and no trouble; and it's
  • the little things that smooths people's roads the most, down here below;
  • it would make Mary Jane comfortable, and it wouldn't cost nothing. Then
  • I says: “There's one more thing--that bag of money.”
  • “Well, they've got that; and it makes me feel pretty silly to think
  • _how_ they got it.”
  • “No, you're out, there. They hain't got it.”
  • “Why, who's got it?”
  • “I wish I knowed, but I don't. I _had_ it, because I stole it from
  • them; and I stole it to give to you; and I know where I hid it, but I'm
  • afraid it ain't there no more. I'm awful sorry, Miss Mary Jane, I'm
  • just as sorry as I can be; but I done the best I could; I did honest. I
  • come nigh getting caught, and I had to shove it into the first place I
  • come to, and run--and it warn't a good place.”
  • “Oh, stop blaming yourself--it's too bad to do it, and I won't allow
  • it--you couldn't help it; it wasn't your fault. Where did you hide it?”
  • I didn't want to set her to thinking about her troubles again; and I
  • couldn't seem to get my mouth to tell her what would make her see that
  • corpse laying in the coffin with that bag of money on his stomach. So
  • for a minute I didn't say nothing; then I says:
  • “I'd ruther not _tell_ you where I put it, Miss Mary Jane, if you don't
  • mind letting me off; but I'll write it for you on a piece of paper, and
  • you can read it along the road to Mr. Lothrop's, if you want to. Do you
  • reckon that 'll do?”
  • “Oh, yes.”
  • So I wrote: “I put it in the coffin. It was in there when you was
  • crying there, away in the night. I was behind the door, and I was
  • mighty sorry for you, Miss Mary Jane.”
  • It made my eyes water a little to remember her crying there all by
  • herself in the night, and them devils laying there right under her own
  • roof, shaming her and robbing her; and when I folded it up and give it
  • to her I see the water come into her eyes, too; and she shook me by the
  • hand, hard, and says:
  • “_Good_-bye. I'm going to do everything just as you've told me; and if
  • I don't ever see you again, I sha'n't ever forget you and I'll think of
  • you a many and a many a time, and I'll _pray_ for you, too!”--and she was
  • gone.
  • Pray for me! I reckoned if she knowed me she'd take a job that was more
  • nearer her size. But I bet she done it, just the same--she was just that
  • kind. She had the grit to pray for Judus if she took the notion--there
  • warn't no back-down to her, I judge. You may say what you want to, but
  • in my opinion she had more sand in her than any girl I ever see; in
  • my opinion she was just full of sand. It sounds like flattery, but it
  • ain't no flattery. And when it comes to beauty--and goodness, too--she
  • lays over them all. I hain't ever seen her since that time that I see
  • her go out of that door; no, I hain't ever seen her since, but I reckon
  • I've thought of her a many and a many a million times, and of her saying
  • she would pray for me; and if ever I'd a thought it would do any good
  • for me to pray for _her_, blamed if I wouldn't a done it or bust.
  • Well, Mary Jane she lit out the back way, I reckon; because nobody see
  • her go. When I struck Susan and the hare-lip, I says:
  • “What's the name of them people over on t'other side of the river that
  • you all goes to see sometimes?”
  • They says:
  • “There's several; but it's the Proctors, mainly.”
  • “That's the name,” I says; “I most forgot it. Well, Miss Mary Jane she
  • told me to tell you she's gone over there in a dreadful hurry--one of
  • them's sick.”
  • “Which one?”
  • “I don't know; leastways, I kinder forget; but I thinks it's--”
  • “Sakes alive, I hope it ain't _Hanner_?”
  • “I'm sorry to say it,” I says, “but Hanner's the very one.”
  • “My goodness, and she so well only last week! Is she took bad?”
  • “It ain't no name for it. They set up with her all night, Miss Mary
  • Jane said, and they don't think she'll last many hours.”
  • “Only think of that, now! What's the matter with her?”
  • I couldn't think of anything reasonable, right off that way, so I says:
  • “Mumps.”
  • “Mumps your granny! They don't set up with people that's got the
  • mumps.”
  • “They don't, don't they? You better bet they do with _these_ mumps.
  • These mumps is different. It's a new kind, Miss Mary Jane said.”
  • “How's it a new kind?”
  • “Because it's mixed up with other things.”
  • “What other things?”
  • “Well, measles, and whooping-cough, and erysiplas, and consumption, and
  • yaller janders, and brain-fever, and I don't know what all.”
  • “My land! And they call it the _mumps_?”
  • “That's what Miss Mary Jane said.”
  • “Well, what in the nation do they call it the _mumps_ for?”
  • “Why, because it _is_ the mumps. That's what it starts with.”
  • “Well, ther' ain't no sense in it. A body might stump his toe, and take
  • pison, and fall down the well, and break his neck, and bust his brains
  • out, and somebody come along and ask what killed him, and some numskull
  • up and say, 'Why, he stumped his _toe_.' Would ther' be any sense
  • in that? _No_. And ther' ain't no sense in _this_, nuther. Is it
  • ketching?”
  • “Is it _ketching_? Why, how you talk. Is a _harrow_ catching--in the
  • dark? If you don't hitch on to one tooth, you're bound to on another,
  • ain't you? And you can't get away with that tooth without fetching the
  • whole harrow along, can you? Well, these kind of mumps is a kind of a
  • harrow, as you may say--and it ain't no slouch of a harrow, nuther, you
  • come to get it hitched on good.”
  • “Well, it's awful, I think,” says the hare-lip. “I'll go to Uncle
  • Harvey and--”
  • “Oh, yes,” I says, “I _would_. Of _course_ I would. I wouldn't lose no
  • time.”
  • “Well, why wouldn't you?”
  • “Just look at it a minute, and maybe you can see. Hain't your uncles
  • obleegd to get along home to England as fast as they can? And do you
  • reckon they'd be mean enough to go off and leave you to go all that
  • journey by yourselves? _you_ know they'll wait for you. So fur, so
  • good. Your uncle Harvey's a preacher, ain't he? Very well, then; is a
  • _preacher_ going to deceive a steamboat clerk? is he going to deceive
  • a _ship clerk?_--so as to get them to let Miss Mary Jane go aboard? Now
  • _you_ know he ain't. What _will_ he do, then? Why, he'll say, 'It's a
  • great pity, but my church matters has got to get along the best way they
  • can; for my niece has been exposed to the dreadful pluribus-unum mumps,
  • and so it's my bounden duty to set down here and wait the three months
  • it takes to show on her if she's got it.' But never mind, if you think
  • it's best to tell your uncle Harvey--”
  • “Shucks, and stay fooling around here when we could all be having good
  • times in England whilst we was waiting to find out whether Mary Jane's
  • got it or not? Why, you talk like a muggins.”
  • “Well, anyway, maybe you'd better tell some of the neighbors.”
  • “Listen at that, now. You do beat all for natural stupidness. Can't
  • you _see_ that _they'd_ go and tell? Ther' ain't no way but just to not
  • tell anybody at _all_.”
  • “Well, maybe you're right--yes, I judge you _are_ right.”
  • “But I reckon we ought to tell Uncle Harvey she's gone out a while,
  • anyway, so he won't be uneasy about her?”
  • “Yes, Miss Mary Jane she wanted you to do that. She says, 'Tell them to
  • give Uncle Harvey and William my love and a kiss, and say I've run over
  • the river to see Mr.'--Mr.--what _is_ the name of that rich family your
  • uncle Peter used to think so much of?--I mean the one that--”
  • “Why, you must mean the Apthorps, ain't it?”
  • “Of course; bother them kind of names, a body can't ever seem to
  • remember them, half the time, somehow. Yes, she said, say she has run
  • over for to ask the Apthorps to be sure and come to the auction and buy
  • this house, because she allowed her uncle Peter would ruther they had
  • it than anybody else; and she's going to stick to them till they say
  • they'll come, and then, if she ain't too tired, she's coming home; and
  • if she is, she'll be home in the morning anyway. She said, don't say
  • nothing about the Proctors, but only about the Apthorps--which 'll be
  • perfectly true, because she is going there to speak about their buying
  • the house; I know it, because she told me so herself.”
  • “All right,” they said, and cleared out to lay for their uncles, and
  • give them the love and the kisses, and tell them the message.
  • Everything was all right now. The girls wouldn't say nothing because
  • they wanted to go to England; and the king and the duke would ruther
  • Mary Jane was off working for the auction than around in reach of
  • Doctor Robinson. I felt very good; I judged I had done it pretty neat--I
  • reckoned Tom Sawyer couldn't a done it no neater himself. Of course he
  • would a throwed more style into it, but I can't do that very handy, not
  • being brung up to it.
  • Well, they held the auction in the public square, along towards the end
  • of the afternoon, and it strung along, and strung along, and the old man
  • he was on hand and looking his level pisonest, up there longside of the
  • auctioneer, and chipping in a little Scripture now and then, or a little
  • goody-goody saying of some kind, and the duke he was around goo-gooing
  • for sympathy all he knowed how, and just spreading himself generly.
  • But by and by the thing dragged through, and everything was
  • sold--everything but a little old trifling lot in the graveyard. So
  • they'd got to work that off--I never see such a girafft as the king was
  • for wanting to swallow _everything_. Well, whilst they was at it a
  • steamboat landed, and in about two minutes up comes a crowd a-whooping
  • and yelling and laughing and carrying on, and singing out:
  • “_Here's_ your opposition line! here's your two sets o' heirs to old
  • Peter Wilks--and you pays your money and you takes your choice!”
  • CHAPTER XXIX.
  • THEY was fetching a very nice-looking old gentleman along, and a
  • nice-looking younger one, with his right arm in a sling. And, my souls,
  • how the people yelled and laughed, and kept it up. But I didn't see no
  • joke about it, and I judged it would strain the duke and the king some
  • to see any. I reckoned they'd turn pale. But no, nary a pale did
  • _they_ turn. The duke he never let on he suspicioned what was up, but
  • just went a goo-gooing around, happy and satisfied, like a jug that's
  • googling out buttermilk; and as for the king, he just gazed and gazed
  • down sorrowful on them new-comers like it give him the stomach-ache in
  • his very heart to think there could be such frauds and rascals in the
  • world. Oh, he done it admirable. Lots of the principal people
  • gethered around the king, to let him see they was on his side. That old
  • gentleman that had just come looked all puzzled to death. Pretty
  • soon he begun to speak, and I see straight off he pronounced _like_ an
  • Englishman--not the king's way, though the king's _was_ pretty good for
  • an imitation. I can't give the old gent's words, nor I can't imitate
  • him; but he turned around to the crowd, and says, about like this:
  • “This is a surprise to me which I wasn't looking for; and I'll
  • acknowledge, candid and frank, I ain't very well fixed to meet it and
  • answer it; for my brother and me has had misfortunes; he's broke his
  • arm, and our baggage got put off at a town above here last night in the
  • night by a mistake. I am Peter Wilks' brother Harvey, and this is his
  • brother William, which can't hear nor speak--and can't even make signs to
  • amount to much, now't he's only got one hand to work them with. We are
  • who we say we are; and in a day or two, when I get the baggage, I can
  • prove it. But up till then I won't say nothing more, but go to the hotel
  • and wait.”
  • So him and the new dummy started off; and the king he laughs, and
  • blethers out:
  • “Broke his arm--_very_ likely, _ain't_ it?--and very convenient, too,
  • for a fraud that's got to make signs, and ain't learnt how. Lost
  • their baggage! That's _mighty_ good!--and mighty ingenious--under the
  • _circumstances_!”
  • So he laughed again; and so did everybody else, except three or four,
  • or maybe half a dozen. One of these was that doctor; another one was
  • a sharp-looking gentleman, with a carpet-bag of the old-fashioned kind
  • made out of carpet-stuff, that had just come off of the steamboat and
  • was talking to him in a low voice, and glancing towards the king now and
  • then and nodding their heads--it was Levi Bell, the lawyer that was gone
  • up to Louisville; and another one was a big rough husky that come along
  • and listened to all the old gentleman said, and was listening to the
  • king now. And when the king got done this husky up and says:
  • “Say, looky here; if you are Harvey Wilks, when'd you come to this
  • town?”
  • “The day before the funeral, friend,” says the king.
  • “But what time o' day?”
  • “In the evenin'--'bout an hour er two before sundown.”
  • “_How'd_ you come?”
  • “I come down on the Susan Powell from Cincinnati.”
  • “Well, then, how'd you come to be up at the Pint in the _mornin_'--in a
  • canoe?”
  • “I warn't up at the Pint in the mornin'.”
  • “It's a lie.”
  • Several of them jumped for him and begged him not to talk that way to an
  • old man and a preacher.
  • “Preacher be hanged, he's a fraud and a liar. He was up at the Pint
  • that mornin'. I live up there, don't I? Well, I was up there, and
  • he was up there. I see him there. He come in a canoe, along with Tim
  • Collins and a boy.”
  • The doctor he up and says:
  • “Would you know the boy again if you was to see him, Hines?”
  • “I reckon I would, but I don't know. Why, yonder he is, now. I know
  • him perfectly easy.”
  • It was me he pointed at. The doctor says:
  • “Neighbors, I don't know whether the new couple is frauds or not; but if
  • _these_ two ain't frauds, I am an idiot, that's all. I think it's our
  • duty to see that they don't get away from here till we've looked into
  • this thing. Come along, Hines; come along, the rest of you. We'll take
  • these fellows to the tavern and affront them with t'other couple, and I
  • reckon we'll find out _something_ before we get through.”
  • It was nuts for the crowd, though maybe not for the king's friends; so
  • we all started. It was about sundown. The doctor he led me along by
  • the hand, and was plenty kind enough, but he never let go my hand.
  • We all got in a big room in the hotel, and lit up some candles, and
  • fetched in the new couple. First, the doctor says:
  • “I don't wish to be too hard on these two men, but I think they're
  • frauds, and they may have complices that we don't know nothing about.
  • If they have, won't the complices get away with that bag of gold Peter
  • Wilks left? It ain't unlikely. If these men ain't frauds, they won't
  • object to sending for that money and letting us keep it till they prove
  • they're all right--ain't that so?”
  • Everybody agreed to that. So I judged they had our gang in a pretty
  • tight place right at the outstart. But the king he only looked
  • sorrowful, and says:
  • “Gentlemen, I wish the money was there, for I ain't got no disposition
  • to throw anything in the way of a fair, open, out-and-out investigation
  • o' this misable business; but, alas, the money ain't there; you k'n send
  • and see, if you want to.”
  • “Where is it, then?”
  • “Well, when my niece give it to me to keep for her I took and hid it
  • inside o' the straw tick o' my bed, not wishin' to bank it for the few
  • days we'd be here, and considerin' the bed a safe place, we not bein'
  • used to niggers, and suppos'n' 'em honest, like servants in England.
  • The niggers stole it the very next mornin' after I had went down
  • stairs; and when I sold 'em I hadn't missed the money yit, so they got
  • clean away with it. My servant here k'n tell you 'bout it, gentlemen.”
  • The doctor and several said “Shucks!” and I see nobody didn't altogether
  • believe him. One man asked me if I see the niggers steal it. I said
  • no, but I see them sneaking out of the room and hustling away, and I
  • never thought nothing, only I reckoned they was afraid they had waked up
  • my master and was trying to get away before he made trouble with them.
  • That was all they asked me. Then the doctor whirls on me and says:
  • “Are _you_ English, too?”
  • I says yes; and him and some others laughed, and said, “Stuff!”
  • Well, then they sailed in on the general investigation, and there we had
  • it, up and down, hour in, hour out, and nobody never said a word about
  • supper, nor ever seemed to think about it--and so they kept it up, and
  • kept it up; and it _was_ the worst mixed-up thing you ever see. They
  • made the king tell his yarn, and they made the old gentleman tell his'n;
  • and anybody but a lot of prejudiced chuckleheads would a _seen_ that the
  • old gentleman was spinning truth and t'other one lies. And by and by
  • they had me up to tell what I knowed. The king he give me a left-handed
  • look out of the corner of his eye, and so I knowed enough to talk on the
  • right side. I begun to tell about Sheffield, and how we lived there,
  • and all about the English Wilkses, and so on; but I didn't get pretty
  • fur till the doctor begun to laugh; and Levi Bell, the lawyer, says:
  • “Set down, my boy; I wouldn't strain myself if I was you. I reckon
  • you ain't used to lying, it don't seem to come handy; what you want is
  • practice. You do it pretty awkward.”
  • I didn't care nothing for the compliment, but I was glad to be let off,
  • anyway.
  • The doctor he started to say something, and turns and says:
  • “If you'd been in town at first, Levi Bell--” The king broke in and
  • reached out his hand, and says:
  • “Why, is this my poor dead brother's old friend that he's wrote so often
  • about?”
  • The lawyer and him shook hands, and the lawyer smiled and looked
  • pleased, and they talked right along awhile, and then got to one side
  • and talked low; and at last the lawyer speaks up and says:
  • “That 'll fix it. I'll take the order and send it, along with your
  • brother's, and then they'll know it's all right.”
  • So they got some paper and a pen, and the king he set down and twisted
  • his head to one side, and chawed his tongue, and scrawled off something;
  • and then they give the pen to the duke--and then for the first time the
  • duke looked sick. But he took the pen and wrote. So then the lawyer
  • turns to the new old gentleman and says:
  • “You and your brother please write a line or two and sign your names.”
  • The old gentleman wrote, but nobody couldn't read it. The lawyer looked
  • powerful astonished, and says:
  • “Well, it beats _me_”--and snaked a lot of old letters out of his pocket,
  • and examined them, and then examined the old man's writing, and then
  • _them_ again; and then says: “These old letters is from Harvey Wilks;
  • and here's _these_ two handwritings, and anybody can see they didn't
  • write them” (the king and the duke looked sold and foolish, I tell
  • you, to see how the lawyer had took them in), “and here's _this_ old
  • gentleman's hand writing, and anybody can tell, easy enough, _he_ didn't
  • write them--fact is, the scratches he makes ain't properly _writing_ at
  • all. Now, here's some letters from--”
  • The new old gentleman says:
  • “If you please, let me explain. Nobody can read my hand but my brother
  • there--so he copies for me. It's _his_ hand you've got there, not mine.”
  • “_Well_!” says the lawyer, “this _is_ a state of things. I've got some
  • of William's letters, too; so if you'll get him to write a line or so we
  • can com--”
  • “He _can't_ write with his left hand,” says the old gentleman. “If he
  • could use his right hand, you would see that he wrote his own letters
  • and mine too. Look at both, please--they're by the same hand.”
  • The lawyer done it, and says:
  • “I believe it's so--and if it ain't so, there's a heap stronger
  • resemblance than I'd noticed before, anyway. Well, well, well! I
  • thought we was right on the track of a solution, but it's gone to grass,
  • partly. But anyway, one thing is proved--_these_ two ain't either of 'em
  • Wilkses”--and he wagged his head towards the king and the duke.
  • Well, what do you think? That muleheaded old fool wouldn't give in
  • _then_! Indeed he wouldn't. Said it warn't no fair test. Said his
  • brother William was the cussedest joker in the world, and hadn't tried
  • to write--_he_ see William was going to play one of his jokes the minute
  • he put the pen to paper. And so he warmed up and went warbling and
  • warbling right along till he was actuly beginning to believe what he was
  • saying _himself_; but pretty soon the new gentleman broke in, and says:
  • “I've thought of something. Is there anybody here that helped to lay
  • out my br--helped to lay out the late Peter Wilks for burying?”
  • “Yes,” says somebody, “me and Ab Turner done it. We're both here.”
  • Then the old man turns towards the king, and says:
  • “Perhaps this gentleman can tell me what was tattooed on his breast?”
  • Blamed if the king didn't have to brace up mighty quick, or he'd a
  • squshed down like a bluff bank that the river has cut under, it took
  • him so sudden; and, mind you, it was a thing that was calculated to make
  • most _anybody_ sqush to get fetched such a solid one as that without any
  • notice, because how was _he_ going to know what was tattooed on the man?
  • He whitened a little; he couldn't help it; and it was mighty still in
  • there, and everybody bending a little forwards and gazing at him. Says
  • I to myself, _now_ he'll throw up the sponge--there ain't no more use.
  • Well, did he? A body can't hardly believe it, but he didn't. I reckon
  • he thought he'd keep the thing up till he tired them people out, so
  • they'd thin out, and him and the duke could break loose and get away.
  • Anyway, he set there, and pretty soon he begun to smile, and says:
  • “Mf! It's a _very_ tough question, _ain't_ it! _yes_, sir, I k'n
  • tell you what's tattooed on his breast. It's jest a small, thin, blue
  • arrow--that's what it is; and if you don't look clost, you can't see it.
  • _now_ what do you say--hey?”
  • Well, I never see anything like that old blister for clean out-and-out
  • cheek.
  • The new old gentleman turns brisk towards Ab Turner and his pard, and
  • his eye lights up like he judged he'd got the king _this_ time, and
  • says:
  • “There--you've heard what he said! Was there any such mark on Peter
  • Wilks' breast?”
  • Both of them spoke up and says:
  • “We didn't see no such mark.”
  • “Good!” says the old gentleman. “Now, what you _did_ see on his breast
  • was a small dim P, and a B (which is an initial he dropped when he was
  • young), and a W, with dashes between them, so: P--B--W”--and he marked
  • them that way on a piece of paper. “Come, ain't that what you saw?”
  • Both of them spoke up again, and says:
  • “No, we _didn't_. We never seen any marks at all.”
  • Well, everybody _was_ in a state of mind now, and they sings out:
  • “The whole _bilin_' of 'm 's frauds! Le's duck 'em! le's drown 'em!
  • le's ride 'em on a rail!” and everybody was whooping at once, and there
  • was a rattling powwow. But the lawyer he jumps on the table and yells,
  • and says:
  • “Gentlemen--gentle_men!_ Hear me just a word--just a _single_ word--if you
  • _please_! There's one way yet--let's go and dig up the corpse and look.”
  • That took them.
  • “Hooray!” they all shouted, and was starting right off; but the lawyer
  • and the doctor sung out:
  • “Hold on, hold on! Collar all these four men and the boy, and fetch
  • _them_ along, too!”
  • “We'll do it!” they all shouted; “and if we don't find them marks we'll
  • lynch the whole gang!”
  • I _was_ scared, now, I tell you. But there warn't no getting away, you
  • know. They gripped us all, and marched us right along, straight for the
  • graveyard, which was a mile and a half down the river, and the whole
  • town at our heels, for we made noise enough, and it was only nine in the
  • evening.
  • As we went by our house I wished I hadn't sent Mary Jane out of town;
  • because now if I could tip her the wink she'd light out and save me, and
  • blow on our dead-beats.
  • Well, we swarmed along down the river road, just carrying on like
  • wildcats; and to make it more scary the sky was darking up, and the
  • lightning beginning to wink and flitter, and the wind to shiver amongst
  • the leaves. This was the most awful trouble and most dangersome I ever
  • was in; and I was kinder stunned; everything was going so different from
  • what I had allowed for; stead of being fixed so I could take my own time
  • if I wanted to, and see all the fun, and have Mary Jane at my back to
  • save me and set me free when the close-fit come, here was nothing in the
  • world betwixt me and sudden death but just them tattoo-marks. If they
  • didn't find them--
  • I couldn't bear to think about it; and yet, somehow, I couldn't think
  • about nothing else. It got darker and darker, and it was a beautiful
  • time to give the crowd the slip; but that big husky had me by the
  • wrist--Hines--and a body might as well try to give Goliar the slip. He
  • dragged me right along, he was so excited, and I had to run to keep up.
  • When they got there they swarmed into the graveyard and washed over it
  • like an overflow. And when they got to the grave they found they had
  • about a hundred times as many shovels as they wanted, but nobody hadn't
  • thought to fetch a lantern. But they sailed into digging anyway by the
  • flicker of the lightning, and sent a man to the nearest house, a half a
  • mile off, to borrow one.
  • So they dug and dug like everything; and it got awful dark, and the rain
  • started, and the wind swished and swushed along, and the lightning come
  • brisker and brisker, and the thunder boomed; but them people never took
  • no notice of it, they was so full of this business; and one minute
  • you could see everything and every face in that big crowd, and the
  • shovelfuls of dirt sailing up out of the grave, and the next second the
  • dark wiped it all out, and you couldn't see nothing at all.
  • At last they got out the coffin and begun to unscrew the lid, and then
  • such another crowding and shouldering and shoving as there was, to
  • scrouge in and get a sight, you never see; and in the dark, that way, it
  • was awful. Hines he hurt my wrist dreadful pulling and tugging so,
  • and I reckon he clean forgot I was in the world, he was so excited and
  • panting.
  • All of a sudden the lightning let go a perfect sluice of white glare,
  • and somebody sings out:
  • “By the living jingo, here's the bag of gold on his breast!”
  • Hines let out a whoop, like everybody else, and dropped my wrist and
  • give a big surge to bust his way in and get a look, and the way I lit
  • out and shinned for the road in the dark there ain't nobody can tell.
  • I had the road all to myself, and I fairly flew--leastways, I had it all
  • to myself except the solid dark, and the now-and-then glares, and the
  • buzzing of the rain, and the thrashing of the wind, and the splitting of
  • the thunder; and sure as you are born I did clip it along!
  • When I struck the town I see there warn't nobody out in the storm, so
  • I never hunted for no back streets, but humped it straight through the
  • main one; and when I begun to get towards our house I aimed my eye and
  • set it. No light there; the house all dark--which made me feel sorry and
  • disappointed, I didn't know why. But at last, just as I was sailing by,
  • _flash_ comes the light in Mary Jane's window! and my heart swelled up
  • sudden, like to bust; and the same second the house and all was behind
  • me in the dark, and wasn't ever going to be before me no more in this
  • world. She _was_ the best girl I ever see, and had the most sand.
  • The minute I was far enough above the town to see I could make the
  • towhead, I begun to look sharp for a boat to borrow, and the first
  • time the lightning showed me one that wasn't chained I snatched it and
  • shoved. It was a canoe, and warn't fastened with nothing but a rope.
  • The towhead was a rattling big distance off, away out there in the
  • middle of the river, but I didn't lose no time; and when I struck the
  • raft at last I was so fagged I would a just laid down to blow and gasp
  • if I could afforded it. But I didn't. As I sprung aboard I sung out:
  • “Out with you, Jim, and set her loose! Glory be to goodness, we're shut
  • of them!”
  • Jim lit out, and was a-coming for me with both arms spread, he was so
  • full of joy; but when I glimpsed him in the lightning my heart shot up
  • in my mouth and I went overboard backwards; for I forgot he was old King
  • Lear and a drownded A-rab all in one, and it most scared the livers and
  • lights out of me. But Jim fished me out, and was going to hug me and
  • bless me, and so on, he was so glad I was back and we was shut of the
  • king and the duke, but I says:
  • “Not now; have it for breakfast, have it for breakfast! Cut loose and
  • let her slide!”
  • So in two seconds away we went a-sliding down the river, and it _did_
  • seem so good to be free again and all by ourselves on the big river, and
  • nobody to bother us. I had to skip around a bit, and jump up and crack
  • my heels a few times--I couldn't help it; but about the third crack
  • I noticed a sound that I knowed mighty well, and held my breath and
  • listened and waited; and sure enough, when the next flash busted out
  • over the water, here they come!--and just a-laying to their oars and
  • making their skiff hum! It was the king and the duke.
  • So I wilted right down on to the planks then, and give up; and it was
  • all I could do to keep from crying.
  • CHAPTER XXX.
  • WHEN they got aboard the king went for me, and shook me by the collar,
  • and says:
  • “Tryin' to give us the slip, was ye, you pup! Tired of our company,
  • hey?”
  • I says:
  • “No, your majesty, we warn't--_please_ don't, your majesty!”
  • “Quick, then, and tell us what _was_ your idea, or I'll shake the
  • insides out o' you!”
  • “Honest, I'll tell you everything just as it happened, your majesty.
  • The man that had a-holt of me was very good to me, and kept saying he
  • had a boy about as big as me that died last year, and he was sorry
  • to see a boy in such a dangerous fix; and when they was all took by
  • surprise by finding the gold, and made a rush for the coffin, he lets go
  • of me and whispers, 'Heel it now, or they'll hang ye, sure!' and I lit
  • out. It didn't seem no good for _me_ to stay--I couldn't do nothing,
  • and I didn't want to be hung if I could get away. So I never stopped
  • running till I found the canoe; and when I got here I told Jim to hurry,
  • or they'd catch me and hang me yet, and said I was afeard you and the
  • duke wasn't alive now, and I was awful sorry, and so was Jim, and was
  • awful glad when we see you coming; you may ask Jim if I didn't.”
  • Jim said it was so; and the king told him to shut up, and said, “Oh,
  • yes, it's _mighty_ likely!” and shook me up again, and said he reckoned
  • he'd drownd me. But the duke says:
  • “Leggo the boy, you old idiot! Would _you_ a done any different? Did
  • you inquire around for _him_ when you got loose? I don't remember it.”
  • So the king let go of me, and begun to cuss that town and everybody in
  • it. But the duke says:
  • “You better a blame' sight give _yourself_ a good cussing, for you're
  • the one that's entitled to it most. You hain't done a thing from the
  • start that had any sense in it, except coming out so cool and cheeky
  • with that imaginary blue-arrow mark. That _was_ bright--it was right
  • down bully; and it was the thing that saved us. For if it hadn't been
  • for that they'd a jailed us till them Englishmen's baggage come--and
  • then--the penitentiary, you bet! But that trick took 'em to the
  • graveyard, and the gold done us a still bigger kindness; for if the
  • excited fools hadn't let go all holts and made that rush to get a
  • look we'd a slept in our cravats to-night--cravats warranted to _wear_,
  • too--longer than _we'd_ need 'em.”
  • They was still a minute--thinking; then the king says, kind of
  • absent-minded like:
  • “Mf! And we reckoned the _niggers_ stole it!”
  • That made me squirm!
  • “Yes,” says the duke, kinder slow and deliberate and sarcastic, “_we_
  • did.”
  • After about a half a minute the king drawls out:
  • “Leastways, I did.”
  • The duke says, the same way:
  • “On the contrary, I did.”
  • The king kind of ruffles up, and says:
  • “Looky here, Bilgewater, what'r you referrin' to?”
  • The duke says, pretty brisk:
  • “When it comes to that, maybe you'll let me ask, what was _you_
  • referring to?”
  • “Shucks!” says the king, very sarcastic; “but I don't know--maybe you was
  • asleep, and didn't know what you was about.”
  • The duke bristles up now, and says:
  • “Oh, let _up_ on this cussed nonsense; do you take me for a blame' fool?
  • Don't you reckon I know who hid that money in that coffin?”
  • “_Yes_, sir! I know you _do_ know, because you done it yourself!”
  • “It's a lie!”--and the duke went for him. The king sings out:
  • “Take y'r hands off!--leggo my throat!--I take it all back!”
  • The duke says:
  • “Well, you just own up, first, that you _did_ hide that money there,
  • intending to give me the slip one of these days, and come back and dig
  • it up, and have it all to yourself.”
  • “Wait jest a minute, duke--answer me this one question, honest and fair;
  • if you didn't put the money there, say it, and I'll b'lieve you, and
  • take back everything I said.”
  • “You old scoundrel, I didn't, and you know I didn't. There, now!”
  • “Well, then, I b'lieve you. But answer me only jest this one more--now
  • _don't_ git mad; didn't you have it in your mind to hook the money and
  • hide it?”
  • The duke never said nothing for a little bit; then he says:
  • “Well, I don't care if I _did_, I didn't _do_ it, anyway. But you not
  • only had it in mind to do it, but you _done_ it.”
  • “I wisht I never die if I done it, duke, and that's honest. I won't say
  • I warn't goin' to do it, because I _was_; but you--I mean somebody--got in
  • ahead o' me.”
  • “It's a lie! You done it, and you got to _say_ you done it, or--”
  • The king began to gurgle, and then he gasps out:
  • “'Nough!--I _own up!_”
  • I was very glad to hear him say that; it made me feel much more easier
  • than what I was feeling before. So the duke took his hands off and
  • says:
  • “If you ever deny it again I'll drown you. It's _well_ for you to set
  • there and blubber like a baby--it's fitten for you, after the way
  • you've acted. I never see such an old ostrich for wanting to gobble
  • everything--and I a-trusting you all the time, like you was my own
  • father. You ought to been ashamed of yourself to stand by and hear it
  • saddled on to a lot of poor niggers, and you never say a word for 'em.
  • It makes me feel ridiculous to think I was soft enough to _believe_
  • that rubbage. Cuss you, I can see now why you was so anxious to make
  • up the deffisit--you wanted to get what money I'd got out of the Nonesuch
  • and one thing or another, and scoop it _all_!”
  • The king says, timid, and still a-snuffling:
  • “Why, duke, it was you that said make up the deffisit; it warn't me.”
  • “Dry up! I don't want to hear no more out of you!” says the duke. “And
  • _now_ you see what you GOT by it. They've got all their own money back,
  • and all of _ourn_ but a shekel or two _besides_. G'long to bed, and
  • don't you deffersit _me_ no more deffersits, long 's _you_ live!”
  • So the king sneaked into the wigwam and took to his bottle for comfort,
  • and before long the duke tackled HIS bottle; and so in about a half an
  • hour they was as thick as thieves again, and the tighter they got the
  • lovinger they got, and went off a-snoring in each other's arms. They
  • both got powerful mellow, but I noticed the king didn't get mellow
  • enough to forget to remember to not deny about hiding the money-bag
  • again. That made me feel easy and satisfied. Of course when they got
  • to snoring we had a long gabble, and I told Jim everything.
  • CHAPTER XXXI.
  • WE dasn't stop again at any town for days and days; kept right along
  • down the river. We was down south in the warm weather now, and a mighty
  • long ways from home. We begun to come to trees with Spanish moss on
  • them, hanging down from the limbs like long, gray beards. It was the
  • first I ever see it growing, and it made the woods look solemn and
  • dismal. So now the frauds reckoned they was out of danger, and they
  • begun to work the villages again.
  • First they done a lecture on temperance; but they didn't make enough
  • for them both to get drunk on. Then in another village they started
  • a dancing-school; but they didn't know no more how to dance than a
  • kangaroo does; so the first prance they made the general public jumped
  • in and pranced them out of town. Another time they tried to go at
  • yellocution; but they didn't yellocute long till the audience got up and
  • give them a solid good cussing, and made them skip out. They tackled
  • missionarying, and mesmerizing, and doctoring, and telling fortunes, and
  • a little of everything; but they couldn't seem to have no luck. So at
  • last they got just about dead broke, and laid around the raft as she
  • floated along, thinking and thinking, and never saying nothing, by the
  • half a day at a time, and dreadful blue and desperate.
  • And at last they took a change and begun to lay their heads together in
  • the wigwam and talk low and confidential two or three hours at a time.
  • Jim and me got uneasy. We didn't like the look of it. We judged they
  • was studying up some kind of worse deviltry than ever. We turned it
  • over and over, and at last we made up our minds they was going to break
  • into somebody's house or store, or was going into the counterfeit-money
  • business, or something. So then we was pretty scared, and made up an
  • agreement that we wouldn't have nothing in the world to do with such
  • actions, and if we ever got the least show we would give them the cold
  • shake and clear out and leave them behind. Well, early one morning we
  • hid the raft in a good, safe place about two mile below a little bit of
  • a shabby village named Pikesville, and the king he went ashore and told
  • us all to stay hid whilst he went up to town and smelt around to see
  • if anybody had got any wind of the Royal Nonesuch there yet. (“House to
  • rob, you _mean_,” says I to myself; “and when you get through robbing it
  • you'll come back here and wonder what has become of me and Jim and the
  • raft--and you'll have to take it out in wondering.”) And he said if he
  • warn't back by midday the duke and me would know it was all right, and
  • we was to come along.
  • So we stayed where we was. The duke he fretted and sweated around, and
  • was in a mighty sour way. He scolded us for everything, and we couldn't
  • seem to do nothing right; he found fault with every little thing.
  • Something was a-brewing, sure. I was good and glad when midday come
  • and no king; we could have a change, anyway--and maybe a chance for _the_
  • change on top of it. So me and the duke went up to the village, and
  • hunted around there for the king, and by and by we found him in the
  • back room of a little low doggery, very tight, and a lot of loafers
  • bullyragging him for sport, and he a-cussing and a-threatening with all
  • his might, and so tight he couldn't walk, and couldn't do nothing to
  • them. The duke he begun to abuse him for an old fool, and the king
  • begun to sass back, and the minute they was fairly at it I lit out and
  • shook the reefs out of my hind legs, and spun down the river road like
  • a deer, for I see our chance; and I made up my mind that it would be a
  • long day before they ever see me and Jim again. I got down there all
  • out of breath but loaded up with joy, and sung out:
  • “Set her loose, Jim! we're all right now!”
  • But there warn't no answer, and nobody come out of the wigwam. Jim was
  • gone! I set up a shout--and then another--and then another one; and run
  • this way and that in the woods, whooping and screeching; but it warn't
  • no use--old Jim was gone. Then I set down and cried; I couldn't help
  • it. But I couldn't set still long. Pretty soon I went out on the road,
  • trying to think what I better do, and I run across a boy walking, and
  • asked him if he'd seen a strange nigger dressed so and so, and he says:
  • “Yes.”
  • “Whereabouts?” says I.
  • “Down to Silas Phelps' place, two mile below here. He's a runaway
  • nigger, and they've got him. Was you looking for him?”
  • “You bet I ain't! I run across him in the woods about an hour or two
  • ago, and he said if I hollered he'd cut my livers out--and told me to lay
  • down and stay where I was; and I done it. Been there ever since; afeard
  • to come out.”
  • “Well,” he says, “you needn't be afeard no more, becuz they've got him.
  • He run off f'm down South, som'ers.”
  • “It's a good job they got him.”
  • “Well, I _reckon_! There's two hunderd dollars reward on him. It's
  • like picking up money out'n the road.”
  • “Yes, it is--and I could a had it if I'd been big enough; I see him
  • _first_. Who nailed him?”
  • “It was an old fellow--a stranger--and he sold out his chance in him for
  • forty dollars, becuz he's got to go up the river and can't wait. Think
  • o' that, now! You bet _I'd_ wait, if it was seven year.”
  • “That's me, every time,” says I. “But maybe his chance ain't worth
  • no more than that, if he'll sell it so cheap. Maybe there's something
  • ain't straight about it.”
  • “But it _is_, though--straight as a string. I see the handbill myself.
  • It tells all about him, to a dot--paints him like a picture, and tells
  • the plantation he's frum, below Newr_leans_. No-sirree-_bob_, they
  • ain't no trouble 'bout _that_ speculation, you bet you. Say, gimme a
  • chaw tobacker, won't ye?”
  • I didn't have none, so he left. I went to the raft, and set down in the
  • wigwam to think. But I couldn't come to nothing. I thought till I wore
  • my head sore, but I couldn't see no way out of the trouble. After all
  • this long journey, and after all we'd done for them scoundrels, here it
  • was all come to nothing, everything all busted up and ruined, because
  • they could have the heart to serve Jim such a trick as that, and make
  • him a slave again all his life, and amongst strangers, too, for forty
  • dirty dollars.
  • Once I said to myself it would be a thousand times better for Jim to
  • be a slave at home where his family was, as long as he'd _got_ to be a
  • slave, and so I'd better write a letter to Tom Sawyer and tell him to
  • tell Miss Watson where he was. But I soon give up that notion for two
  • things: she'd be mad and disgusted at his rascality and ungratefulness
  • for leaving her, and so she'd sell him straight down the river again;
  • and if she didn't, everybody naturally despises an ungrateful nigger,
  • and they'd make Jim feel it all the time, and so he'd feel ornery and
  • disgraced. And then think of _me_! It would get all around that Huck
  • Finn helped a nigger to get his freedom; and if I was ever to see
  • anybody from that town again I'd be ready to get down and lick his boots
  • for shame. That's just the way: a person does a low-down thing, and
  • then he don't want to take no consequences of it. Thinks as long as he
  • can hide it, it ain't no disgrace. That was my fix exactly. The more I
  • studied about this the more my conscience went to grinding me, and the
  • more wicked and low-down and ornery I got to feeling. And at last, when
  • it hit me all of a sudden that here was the plain hand of Providence
  • slapping me in the face and letting me know my wickedness was being
  • watched all the time from up there in heaven, whilst I was stealing a
  • poor old woman's nigger that hadn't ever done me no harm, and now was
  • showing me there's One that's always on the lookout, and ain't a-going
  • to allow no such miserable doings to go only just so fur and no further,
  • I most dropped in my tracks I was so scared. Well, I tried the best I
  • could to kinder soften it up somehow for myself by saying I was brung
  • up wicked, and so I warn't so much to blame; but something inside of me
  • kept saying, “There was the Sunday-school, you could a gone to it; and
  • if you'd a done it they'd a learnt you there that people that acts as
  • I'd been acting about that nigger goes to everlasting fire.”
  • It made me shiver. And I about made up my mind to pray, and see if I
  • couldn't try to quit being the kind of a boy I was and be better. So
  • I kneeled down. But the words wouldn't come. Why wouldn't they? It
  • warn't no use to try and hide it from Him. Nor from _me_, neither. I
  • knowed very well why they wouldn't come. It was because my heart warn't
  • right; it was because I warn't square; it was because I was playing
  • double. I was letting _on_ to give up sin, but away inside of me I was
  • holding on to the biggest one of all. I was trying to make my mouth
  • _say_ I would do the right thing and the clean thing, and go and write
  • to that nigger's owner and tell where he was; but deep down in me I
  • knowed it was a lie, and He knowed it. You can't pray a lie--I found
  • that out.
  • So I was full of trouble, full as I could be; and didn't know what to
  • do. At last I had an idea; and I says, I'll go and write the letter--and
  • then see if I can pray. Why, it was astonishing, the way I felt as
  • light as a feather right straight off, and my troubles all gone. So I
  • got a piece of paper and a pencil, all glad and excited, and set down
  • and wrote:
  • Miss Watson, your runaway nigger Jim is down here two mile below
  • Pikesville, and Mr. Phelps has got him and he will give him up for the
  • reward if you send.
  • _Huck Finn._
  • I felt good and all washed clean of sin for the first time I had ever
  • felt so in my life, and I knowed I could pray now. But I didn't do it
  • straight off, but laid the paper down and set there thinking--thinking
  • how good it was all this happened so, and how near I come to being lost
  • and going to hell. And went on thinking. And got to thinking over our
  • trip down the river; and I see Jim before me all the time: in the day
  • and in the night-time, sometimes moonlight, sometimes storms, and we
  • a-floating along, talking and singing and laughing. But somehow I
  • couldn't seem to strike no places to harden me against him, but only the
  • other kind. I'd see him standing my watch on top of his'n, 'stead of
  • calling me, so I could go on sleeping; and see him how glad he was when
  • I come back out of the fog; and when I come to him again in the swamp,
  • up there where the feud was; and such-like times; and would always call
  • me honey, and pet me and do everything he could think of for me, and how
  • good he always was; and at last I struck the time I saved him by telling
  • the men we had small-pox aboard, and he was so grateful, and said I was
  • the best friend old Jim ever had in the world, and the _only_ one he's
  • got now; and then I happened to look around and see that paper.
  • It was a close place. I took it up, and held it in my hand. I was
  • a-trembling, because I'd got to decide, forever, betwixt two things, and
  • I knowed it. I studied a minute, sort of holding my breath, and then
  • says to myself:
  • “All right, then, I'll _go_ to hell”--and tore it up.
  • It was awful thoughts and awful words, but they was said. And I let
  • them stay said; and never thought no more about reforming. I shoved the
  • whole thing out of my head, and said I would take up wickedness again,
  • which was in my line, being brung up to it, and the other warn't. And
  • for a starter I would go to work and steal Jim out of slavery again;
  • and if I could think up anything worse, I would do that, too; because as
  • long as I was in, and in for good, I might as well go the whole hog.
  • Then I set to thinking over how to get at it, and turned over some
  • considerable many ways in my mind; and at last fixed up a plan that
  • suited me. So then I took the bearings of a woody island that was down
  • the river a piece, and as soon as it was fairly dark I crept out with my
  • raft and went for it, and hid it there, and then turned in. I slept the
  • night through, and got up before it was light, and had my breakfast,
  • and put on my store clothes, and tied up some others and one thing or
  • another in a bundle, and took the canoe and cleared for shore. I landed
  • below where I judged was Phelps's place, and hid my bundle in the woods,
  • and then filled up the canoe with water, and loaded rocks into her and
  • sunk her where I could find her again when I wanted her, about a quarter
  • of a mile below a little steam sawmill that was on the bank.
  • Then I struck up the road, and when I passed the mill I see a sign on
  • it, “Phelps's Sawmill,” and when I come to the farm-houses, two or
  • three hundred yards further along, I kept my eyes peeled, but didn't
  • see nobody around, though it was good daylight now. But I didn't mind,
  • because I didn't want to see nobody just yet--I only wanted to get the
  • lay of the land. According to my plan, I was going to turn up there from
  • the village, not from below. So I just took a look, and shoved along,
  • straight for town. Well, the very first man I see when I got there was
  • the duke. He was sticking up a bill for the Royal Nonesuch--three-night
  • performance--like that other time. They had the cheek, them frauds! I
  • was right on him before I could shirk. He looked astonished, and says:
  • “Hel-_lo_! Where'd _you_ come from?” Then he says, kind of glad and
  • eager, “Where's the raft?--got her in a good place?”
  • I says:
  • “Why, that's just what I was going to ask your grace.”
  • Then he didn't look so joyful, and says:
  • “What was your idea for asking _me_?” he says.
  • “Well,” I says, “when I see the king in that doggery yesterday I says
  • to myself, we can't get him home for hours, till he's soberer; so I went
  • a-loafing around town to put in the time and wait. A man up and offered
  • me ten cents to help him pull a skiff over the river and back to fetch
  • a sheep, and so I went along; but when we was dragging him to the boat,
  • and the man left me a-holt of the rope and went behind him to shove him
  • along, he was too strong for me and jerked loose and run, and we after
  • him. We didn't have no dog, and so we had to chase him all over the
  • country till we tired him out. We never got him till dark; then we
  • fetched him over, and I started down for the raft. When I got there and
  • see it was gone, I says to myself, 'They've got into trouble and had to
  • leave; and they've took my nigger, which is the only nigger I've got in
  • the world, and now I'm in a strange country, and ain't got no property
  • no more, nor nothing, and no way to make my living;' so I set down and
  • cried. I slept in the woods all night. But what _did_ become of the
  • raft, then?--and Jim--poor Jim!”
  • “Blamed if I know--that is, what's become of the raft. That old fool had
  • made a trade and got forty dollars, and when we found him in the doggery
  • the loafers had matched half-dollars with him and got every cent but
  • what he'd spent for whisky; and when I got him home late last night and
  • found the raft gone, we said, 'That little rascal has stole our raft and
  • shook us, and run off down the river.'”
  • “I wouldn't shake my _nigger_, would I?--the only nigger I had in the
  • world, and the only property.”
  • “We never thought of that. Fact is, I reckon we'd come to consider him
  • _our_ nigger; yes, we did consider him so--goodness knows we had trouble
  • enough for him. So when we see the raft was gone and we flat broke,
  • there warn't anything for it but to try the Royal Nonesuch another
  • shake. And I've pegged along ever since, dry as a powder-horn. Where's
  • that ten cents? Give it here.”
  • I had considerable money, so I give him ten cents, but begged him to
  • spend it for something to eat, and give me some, because it was all the
  • money I had, and I hadn't had nothing to eat since yesterday. He never
  • said nothing. The next minute he whirls on me and says:
  • “Do you reckon that nigger would blow on us? We'd skin him if he done
  • that!”
  • “How can he blow? Hain't he run off?”
  • “No! That old fool sold him, and never divided with me, and the money's
  • gone.”
  • “_Sold_ him?” I says, and begun to cry; “why, he was _my_ nigger, and
  • that was my money. Where is he?--I want my nigger.”
  • “Well, you can't _get_ your nigger, that's all--so dry up your
  • blubbering. Looky here--do you think _you'd_ venture to blow on us?
  • Blamed if I think I'd trust you. Why, if you _was_ to blow on us--”
  • He stopped, but I never see the duke look so ugly out of his eyes
  • before. I went on a-whimpering, and says:
  • “I don't want to blow on nobody; and I ain't got no time to blow, nohow.
  • I got to turn out and find my nigger.”
  • He looked kinder bothered, and stood there with his bills fluttering on
  • his arm, thinking, and wrinkling up his forehead. At last he says:
  • “I'll tell you something. We got to be here three days. If you'll
  • promise you won't blow, and won't let the nigger blow, I'll tell you
  • where to find him.”
  • So I promised, and he says:
  • “A farmer by the name of Silas Ph--” and then he stopped. You see, he
  • started to tell me the truth; but when he stopped that way, and begun to
  • study and think again, I reckoned he was changing his mind. And so he
  • was. He wouldn't trust me; he wanted to make sure of having me out of
  • the way the whole three days. So pretty soon he says:
  • “The man that bought him is named Abram Foster--Abram G. Foster--and he
  • lives forty mile back here in the country, on the road to Lafayette.”
  • “All right,” I says, “I can walk it in three days. And I'll start this
  • very afternoon.”
  • “No you wont, you'll start _now_; and don't you lose any time about it,
  • neither, nor do any gabbling by the way. Just keep a tight tongue in
  • your head and move right along, and then you won't get into trouble with
  • _us_, d'ye hear?”
  • That was the order I wanted, and that was the one I played for. I
  • wanted to be left free to work my plans.
  • “So clear out,” he says; “and you can tell Mr. Foster whatever you want
  • to. Maybe you can get him to believe that Jim _is_ your nigger--some
  • idiots don't require documents--leastways I've heard there's such down
  • South here. And when you tell him the handbill and the reward's bogus,
  • maybe he'll believe you when you explain to him what the idea was for
  • getting 'em out. Go 'long now, and tell him anything you want to; but
  • mind you don't work your jaw any _between_ here and there.”
  • So I left, and struck for the back country. I didn't look around, but I
  • kinder felt like he was watching me. But I knowed I could tire him out
  • at that. I went straight out in the country as much as a mile before
  • I stopped; then I doubled back through the woods towards Phelps'. I
  • reckoned I better start in on my plan straight off without fooling
  • around, because I wanted to stop Jim's mouth till these fellows could
  • get away. I didn't want no trouble with their kind. I'd seen all I
  • wanted to of them, and wanted to get entirely shut of them.
  • CHAPTER XXXII.
  • WHEN I got there it was all still and Sunday-like, and hot and sunshiny;
  • the hands was gone to the fields; and there was them kind of faint
  • dronings of bugs and flies in the air that makes it seem so lonesome and
  • like everybody's dead and gone; and if a breeze fans along and quivers
  • the leaves it makes you feel mournful, because you feel like it's
  • spirits whispering--spirits that's been dead ever so many years--and you
  • always think they're talking about _you_. As a general thing it makes a
  • body wish _he_ was dead, too, and done with it all.
  • Phelps' was one of these little one-horse cotton plantations, and they
  • all look alike. A rail fence round a two-acre yard; a stile made out
  • of logs sawed off and up-ended in steps, like barrels of a different
  • length, to climb over the fence with, and for the women to stand on when
  • they are going to jump on to a horse; some sickly grass-patches in the
  • big yard, but mostly it was bare and smooth, like an old hat with the
  • nap rubbed off; big double log-house for the white folks--hewed logs,
  • with the chinks stopped up with mud or mortar, and these mud-stripes
  • been whitewashed some time or another; round-log kitchen, with a big
  • broad, open but roofed passage joining it to the house; log smoke-house
  • back of the kitchen; three little log nigger-cabins in a row t'other
  • side the smoke-house; one little hut all by itself away down against
  • the back fence, and some outbuildings down a piece the other side;
  • ash-hopper and big kettle to bile soap in by the little hut; bench by
  • the kitchen door, with bucket of water and a gourd; hound asleep there
  • in the sun; more hounds asleep round about; about three shade trees away
  • off in a corner; some currant bushes and gooseberry bushes in one place
  • by the fence; outside of the fence a garden and a watermelon patch; then
  • the cotton fields begins, and after the fields the woods.
  • I went around and clumb over the back stile by the ash-hopper, and
  • started for the kitchen. When I got a little ways I heard the dim hum
  • of a spinning-wheel wailing along up and sinking along down again;
  • and then I knowed for certain I wished I was dead--for that _is_ the
  • lonesomest sound in the whole world.
  • I went right along, not fixing up any particular plan, but just trusting
  • to Providence to put the right words in my mouth when the time come; for
  • I'd noticed that Providence always did put the right words in my mouth
  • if I left it alone.
  • When I got half-way, first one hound and then another got up and went
  • for me, and of course I stopped and faced them, and kept still. And
  • such another powwow as they made! In a quarter of a minute I was a kind
  • of a hub of a wheel, as you may say--spokes made out of dogs--circle of
  • fifteen of them packed together around me, with their necks and noses
  • stretched up towards me, a-barking and howling; and more a-coming; you
  • could see them sailing over fences and around corners from everywheres.
  • A nigger woman come tearing out of the kitchen with a rolling-pin in her
  • hand, singing out, “Begone _you_ Tige! you Spot! begone sah!” and she
  • fetched first one and then another of them a clip and sent them howling,
  • and then the rest followed; and the next second half of them come back,
  • wagging their tails around me, and making friends with me. There ain't
  • no harm in a hound, nohow.
  • And behind the woman comes a little nigger girl and two little nigger
  • boys without anything on but tow-linen shirts, and they hung on to their
  • mother's gown, and peeped out from behind her at me, bashful, the way
  • they always do. And here comes the white woman running from the house,
  • about forty-five or fifty year old, bareheaded, and her spinning-stick
  • in her hand; and behind her comes her little white children, acting the
  • same way the little niggers was doing. She was smiling all over so she
  • could hardly stand--and says:
  • “It's _you_, at last!--_ain't_ it?”
  • I out with a “Yes'm” before I thought.
  • She grabbed me and hugged me tight; and then gripped me by both hands
  • and shook and shook; and the tears come in her eyes, and run down over;
  • and she couldn't seem to hug and shake enough, and kept saying, “You
  • don't look as much like your mother as I reckoned you would; but law
  • sakes, I don't care for that, I'm so glad to see you! Dear, dear, it
  • does seem like I could eat you up! Children, it's your cousin Tom!--tell
  • him howdy.”
  • But they ducked their heads, and put their fingers in their mouths, and
  • hid behind her. So she run on:
  • “Lize, hurry up and get him a hot breakfast right away--or did you get
  • your breakfast on the boat?”
  • I said I had got it on the boat. So then she started for the house,
  • leading me by the hand, and the children tagging after. When we got
  • there she set me down in a split-bottomed chair, and set herself down on
  • a little low stool in front of me, holding both of my hands, and says:
  • “Now I can have a _good_ look at you; and, laws-a-me, I've been hungry
  • for it a many and a many a time, all these long years, and it's come
  • at last! We been expecting you a couple of days and more. What kep'
  • you?--boat get aground?”
  • “Yes'm--she--”
  • “Don't say yes'm--say Aunt Sally. Where'd she get aground?”
  • I didn't rightly know what to say, because I didn't know whether the
  • boat would be coming up the river or down. But I go a good deal on
  • instinct; and my instinct said she would be coming up--from down towards
  • Orleans. That didn't help me much, though; for I didn't know the names
  • of bars down that way. I see I'd got to invent a bar, or forget the
  • name of the one we got aground on--or--Now I struck an idea, and fetched
  • it out:
  • “It warn't the grounding--that didn't keep us back but a little. We
  • blowed out a cylinder-head.”
  • “Good gracious! anybody hurt?”
  • “No'm. Killed a nigger.”
  • “Well, it's lucky; because sometimes people do get hurt. Two years ago
  • last Christmas your uncle Silas was coming up from Newrleans on the old
  • Lally Rook, and she blowed out a cylinder-head and crippled a man. And
  • I think he died afterwards. He was a Baptist. Your uncle Silas knowed
  • a family in Baton Rouge that knowed his people very well. Yes, I
  • remember now, he _did_ die. Mortification set in, and they had to
  • amputate him. But it didn't save him. Yes, it was mortification--that
  • was it. He turned blue all over, and died in the hope of a glorious
  • resurrection. They say he was a sight to look at. Your uncle's been up
  • to the town every day to fetch you. And he's gone again, not more'n an
  • hour ago; he'll be back any minute now. You must a met him on the road,
  • didn't you?--oldish man, with a--”
  • “No, I didn't see nobody, Aunt Sally. The boat landed just at daylight,
  • and I left my baggage on the wharf-boat and went looking around the town
  • and out a piece in the country, to put in the time and not get here too
  • soon; and so I come down the back way.”
  • “Who'd you give the baggage to?”
  • “Nobody.”
  • “Why, child, it 'll be stole!”
  • “Not where I hid it I reckon it won't,” I says.
  • “How'd you get your breakfast so early on the boat?”
  • It was kinder thin ice, but I says:
  • “The captain see me standing around, and told me I better have something
  • to eat before I went ashore; so he took me in the texas to the officers'
  • lunch, and give me all I wanted.”
  • I was getting so uneasy I couldn't listen good. I had my mind on the
  • children all the time; I wanted to get them out to one side and pump
  • them a little, and find out who I was. But I couldn't get no show, Mrs.
  • Phelps kept it up and run on so. Pretty soon she made the cold chills
  • streak all down my back, because she says:
  • “But here we're a-running on this way, and you hain't told me a word
  • about Sis, nor any of them. Now I'll rest my works a little, and you
  • start up yourn; just tell me _everything_--tell me all about 'm all every
  • one of 'm; and how they are, and what they're doing, and what they told
  • you to tell me; and every last thing you can think of.”
  • Well, I see I was up a stump--and up it good. Providence had stood by
  • me this fur all right, but I was hard and tight aground now. I see it
  • warn't a bit of use to try to go ahead--I'd got to throw up my hand. So
  • I says to myself, here's another place where I got to resk the truth.
  • I opened my mouth to begin; but she grabbed me and hustled me in behind
  • the bed, and says:
  • “Here he comes! Stick your head down lower--there, that'll do; you can't
  • be seen now. Don't you let on you're here. I'll play a joke on him.
  • Children, don't you say a word.”
  • I see I was in a fix now. But it warn't no use to worry; there warn't
  • nothing to do but just hold still, and try and be ready to stand from
  • under when the lightning struck.
  • I had just one little glimpse of the old gentleman when he come in; then
  • the bed hid him. Mrs. Phelps she jumps for him, and says:
  • “Has he come?”
  • “No,” says her husband.
  • “Good-_ness_ gracious!” she says, “what in the warld can have become of
  • him?”
  • “I can't imagine,” says the old gentleman; “and I must say it makes me
  • dreadful uneasy.”
  • “Uneasy!” she says; “I'm ready to go distracted! He _must_ a come; and
  • you've missed him along the road. I _know_ it's so--something tells me
  • so.”
  • “Why, Sally, I _couldn't_ miss him along the road--_you_ know that.”
  • “But oh, dear, dear, what _will_ Sis say! He must a come! You must a
  • missed him. He--”
  • “Oh, don't distress me any more'n I'm already distressed. I don't know
  • what in the world to make of it. I'm at my wit's end, and I don't mind
  • acknowledging 't I'm right down scared. But there's no hope that he's
  • come; for he _couldn't_ come and me miss him. Sally, it's terrible--just
  • terrible--something's happened to the boat, sure!”
  • “Why, Silas! Look yonder!--up the road!--ain't that somebody coming?”
  • He sprung to the window at the head of the bed, and that give Mrs.
  • Phelps the chance she wanted. She stooped down quick at the foot of the
  • bed and give me a pull, and out I come; and when he turned back from the
  • window there she stood, a-beaming and a-smiling like a house afire, and
  • I standing pretty meek and sweaty alongside. The old gentleman stared,
  • and says:
  • “Why, who's that?”
  • “Who do you reckon 't is?”
  • “I hain't no idea. Who _is_ it?”
  • “It's _Tom Sawyer!_”
  • By jings, I most slumped through the floor! But there warn't no time to
  • swap knives; the old man grabbed me by the hand and shook, and kept on
  • shaking; and all the time how the woman did dance around and laugh and
  • cry; and then how they both did fire off questions about Sid, and Mary,
  • and the rest of the tribe.
  • But if they was joyful, it warn't nothing to what I was; for it was like
  • being born again, I was so glad to find out who I was. Well, they froze
  • to me for two hours; and at last, when my chin was so tired it couldn't
  • hardly go any more, I had told them more about my family--I mean the
  • Sawyer family--than ever happened to any six Sawyer families. And I
  • explained all about how we blowed out a cylinder-head at the mouth of
  • White River, and it took us three days to fix it. Which was all right,
  • and worked first-rate; because _they_ didn't know but what it would take
  • three days to fix it. If I'd a called it a bolthead it would a done
  • just as well.
  • Now I was feeling pretty comfortable all down one side, and pretty
  • uncomfortable all up the other. Being Tom Sawyer was easy and
  • comfortable, and it stayed easy and comfortable till by and by I hear a
  • steamboat coughing along down the river. Then I says to myself, s'pose
  • Tom Sawyer comes down on that boat? And s'pose he steps in here any
  • minute, and sings out my name before I can throw him a wink to keep
  • quiet?
  • Well, I couldn't _have_ it that way; it wouldn't do at all. I must go
  • up the road and waylay him. So I told the folks I reckoned I would go
  • up to the town and fetch down my baggage. The old gentleman was for
  • going along with me, but I said no, I could drive the horse myself, and
  • I druther he wouldn't take no trouble about me.
  • CHAPTER XXXIII.
  • SO I started for town in the wagon, and when I was half-way I see a
  • wagon coming, and sure enough it was Tom Sawyer, and I stopped and
  • waited till he come along. I says “Hold on!” and it stopped alongside,
  • and his mouth opened up like a trunk, and stayed so; and he swallowed
  • two or three times like a person that's got a dry throat, and then says:
  • “I hain't ever done you no harm. You know that. So, then, what you
  • want to come back and ha'nt _me_ for?”
  • I says:
  • “I hain't come back--I hain't been _gone_.”
  • When he heard my voice it righted him up some, but he warn't quite
  • satisfied yet. He says:
  • “Don't you play nothing on me, because I wouldn't on you. Honest injun
  • now, you ain't a ghost?”
  • “Honest injun, I ain't,” I says.
  • “Well--I--I--well, that ought to settle it, of course; but I can't somehow
  • seem to understand it no way. Looky here, warn't you ever murdered _at
  • all?_”
  • “No. I warn't ever murdered at all--I played it on them. You come in
  • here and feel of me if you don't believe me.”
  • So he done it; and it satisfied him; and he was that glad to see me
  • again he didn't know what to do. And he wanted to know all about it
  • right off, because it was a grand adventure, and mysterious, and so it
  • hit him where he lived. But I said, leave it alone till by and by; and
  • told his driver to wait, and we drove off a little piece, and I told
  • him the kind of a fix I was in, and what did he reckon we better do? He
  • said, let him alone a minute, and don't disturb him. So he thought and
  • thought, and pretty soon he says:
  • “It's all right; I've got it. Take my trunk in your wagon, and let on
  • it's your'n; and you turn back and fool along slow, so as to get to the
  • house about the time you ought to; and I'll go towards town a piece, and
  • take a fresh start, and get there a quarter or a half an hour after you;
  • and you needn't let on to know me at first.”
  • I says:
  • “All right; but wait a minute. There's one more thing--a thing that
  • _nobody_ don't know but me. And that is, there's a nigger here that
  • I'm a-trying to steal out of slavery, and his name is _Jim_--old Miss
  • Watson's Jim.”
  • He says:
  • “What! Why, Jim is--”
  • He stopped and went to studying. I says:
  • “I know what you'll say. You'll say it's dirty, low-down business; but
  • what if it is? I'm low down; and I'm a-going to steal him, and I want
  • you keep mum and not let on. Will you?”
  • His eye lit up, and he says:
  • “I'll _help_ you steal him!”
  • Well, I let go all holts then, like I was shot. It was the most
  • astonishing speech I ever heard--and I'm bound to say Tom Sawyer fell
  • considerable in my estimation. Only I couldn't believe it. Tom Sawyer
  • a _nigger-stealer!_
  • “Oh, shucks!” I says; “you're joking.”
  • “I ain't joking, either.”
  • “Well, then,” I says, “joking or no joking, if you hear anything said
  • about a runaway nigger, don't forget to remember that _you_ don't know
  • nothing about him, and I don't know nothing about him.”
  • Then we took the trunk and put it in my wagon, and he drove off his
  • way and I drove mine. But of course I forgot all about driving slow on
  • accounts of being glad and full of thinking; so I got home a heap too
  • quick for that length of a trip. The old gentleman was at the door, and
  • he says:
  • “Why, this is wonderful! Whoever would a thought it was in that mare
  • to do it? I wish we'd a timed her. And she hain't sweated a hair--not
  • a hair. It's wonderful. Why, I wouldn't take a hundred dollars for that
  • horse now--I wouldn't, honest; and yet I'd a sold her for fifteen before,
  • and thought 'twas all she was worth.”
  • That's all he said. He was the innocentest, best old soul I ever see.
  • But it warn't surprising; because he warn't only just a farmer, he was
  • a preacher, too, and had a little one-horse log church down back of the
  • plantation, which he built it himself at his own expense, for a church
  • and schoolhouse, and never charged nothing for his preaching, and it was
  • worth it, too. There was plenty other farmer-preachers like that, and
  • done the same way, down South.
  • In about half an hour Tom's wagon drove up to the front stile, and Aunt
  • Sally she see it through the window, because it was only about fifty
  • yards, and says:
  • “Why, there's somebody come! I wonder who 'tis? Why, I do believe it's
  • a stranger. Jimmy” (that's one of the children) “run and tell Lize to
  • put on another plate for dinner.”
  • Everybody made a rush for the front door, because, of course, a stranger
  • don't come _every_ year, and so he lays over the yaller-fever, for
  • interest, when he does come. Tom was over the stile and starting for
  • the house; the wagon was spinning up the road for the village, and we
  • was all bunched in the front door. Tom had his store clothes on, and an
  • audience--and that was always nuts for Tom Sawyer. In them circumstances
  • it warn't no trouble to him to throw in an amount of style that was
  • suitable. He warn't a boy to meeky along up that yard like a sheep; no,
  • he come ca'm and important, like the ram. When he got a-front of us he
  • lifts his hat ever so gracious and dainty, like it was the lid of a box
  • that had butterflies asleep in it and he didn't want to disturb them,
  • and says:
  • “Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?”
  • “No, my boy,” says the old gentleman, “I'm sorry to say 't your driver
  • has deceived you; Nichols's place is down a matter of three mile more.
  • Come in, come in.”
  • Tom he took a look back over his shoulder, and says, “Too late--he's out
  • of sight.”
  • “Yes, he's gone, my son, and you must come in and eat your dinner with
  • us; and then we'll hitch up and take you down to Nichols's.”
  • “Oh, I _can't_ make you so much trouble; I couldn't think of it. I'll
  • walk--I don't mind the distance.”
  • “But we won't _let_ you walk--it wouldn't be Southern hospitality to do
  • it. Come right in.”
  • “Oh, _do_,” says Aunt Sally; “it ain't a bit of trouble to us, not a
  • bit in the world. You must stay. It's a long, dusty three mile, and
  • we can't let you walk. And, besides, I've already told 'em to put on
  • another plate when I see you coming; so you mustn't disappoint us. Come
  • right in and make yourself at home.”
  • So Tom he thanked them very hearty and handsome, and let himself be
  • persuaded, and come in; and when he was in he said he was a stranger
  • from Hicksville, Ohio, and his name was William Thompson--and he made
  • another bow.
  • Well, he run on, and on, and on, making up stuff about Hicksville and
  • everybody in it he could invent, and I getting a little nervious, and
  • wondering how this was going to help me out of my scrape; and at last,
  • still talking along, he reached over and kissed Aunt Sally right on the
  • mouth, and then settled back again in his chair comfortable, and was
  • going on talking; but she jumped up and wiped it off with the back of
  • her hand, and says:
  • “You owdacious puppy!”
  • He looked kind of hurt, and says:
  • “I'm surprised at you, m'am.”
  • “You're s'rp--Why, what do you reckon I am? I've a good notion to take
  • and--Say, what do you mean by kissing me?”
  • He looked kind of humble, and says:
  • “I didn't mean nothing, m'am. I didn't mean no harm. I--I--thought you'd
  • like it.”
  • “Why, you born fool!” She took up the spinning stick, and it looked
  • like it was all she could do to keep from giving him a crack with it.
  • “What made you think I'd like it?”
  • “Well, I don't know. Only, they--they--told me you would.”
  • “_They_ told you I would. Whoever told you's _another_ lunatic. I
  • never heard the beat of it. Who's _they_?”
  • “Why, everybody. They all said so, m'am.”
  • It was all she could do to hold in; and her eyes snapped, and her
  • fingers worked like she wanted to scratch him; and she says:
  • “Who's 'everybody'? Out with their names, or ther'll be an idiot
  • short.”
  • He got up and looked distressed, and fumbled his hat, and says:
  • “I'm sorry, and I warn't expecting it. They told me to. They all told
  • me to. They all said, kiss her; and said she'd like it. They all said
  • it--every one of them. But I'm sorry, m'am, and I won't do it no more--I
  • won't, honest.”
  • “You won't, won't you? Well, I sh'd _reckon_ you won't!”
  • “No'm, I'm honest about it; I won't ever do it again--till you ask me.”
  • “Till I _ask_ you! Well, I never see the beat of it in my born days!
  • I lay you'll be the Methusalem-numskull of creation before ever I ask
  • you--or the likes of you.”
  • “Well,” he says, “it does surprise me so. I can't make it out, somehow.
  • They said you would, and I thought you would. But--” He stopped and
  • looked around slow, like he wished he could run across a friendly eye
  • somewheres, and fetched up on the old gentleman's, and says, “Didn't
  • _you_ think she'd like me to kiss her, sir?”
  • “Why, no; I--I--well, no, I b'lieve I didn't.”
  • Then he looks on around the same way to me, and says:
  • “Tom, didn't _you_ think Aunt Sally 'd open out her arms and say, 'Sid
  • Sawyer--'”
  • “My land!” she says, breaking in and jumping for him, “you impudent
  • young rascal, to fool a body so--” and was going to hug him, but he
  • fended her off, and says:
  • “No, not till you've asked me first.”
  • So she didn't lose no time, but asked him; and hugged him and kissed
  • him over and over again, and then turned him over to the old man, and he
  • took what was left. And after they got a little quiet again she says:
  • “Why, dear me, I never see such a surprise. We warn't looking for _you_
  • at all, but only Tom. Sis never wrote to me about anybody coming but
  • him.”
  • “It's because it warn't _intended_ for any of us to come but Tom,” he
  • says; “but I begged and begged, and at the last minute she let me
  • come, too; so, coming down the river, me and Tom thought it would be a
  • first-rate surprise for him to come here to the house first, and for me
  • to by and by tag along and drop in, and let on to be a stranger. But it
  • was a mistake, Aunt Sally. This ain't no healthy place for a stranger
  • to come.”
  • “No--not impudent whelps, Sid. You ought to had your jaws boxed; I
  • hain't been so put out since I don't know when. But I don't care, I
  • don't mind the terms--I'd be willing to stand a thousand such jokes to
  • have you here. Well, to think of that performance! I don't deny it, I
  • was most putrified with astonishment when you give me that smack.”
  • We had dinner out in that broad open passage betwixt the house and
  • the kitchen; and there was things enough on that table for seven
  • families--and all hot, too; none of your flabby, tough meat that's laid
  • in a cupboard in a damp cellar all night and tastes like a hunk of
  • old cold cannibal in the morning. Uncle Silas he asked a pretty long
  • blessing over it, but it was worth it; and it didn't cool it a bit,
  • neither, the way I've seen them kind of interruptions do lots of times.
  • There was a considerable good deal of talk all the afternoon, and me
  • and Tom was on the lookout all the time; but it warn't no use, they
  • didn't happen to say nothing about any runaway nigger, and we was afraid
  • to try to work up to it. But at supper, at night, one of the little
  • boys says:
  • “Pa, mayn't Tom and Sid and me go to the show?”
  • “No,” says the old man, “I reckon there ain't going to be any; and you
  • couldn't go if there was; because the runaway nigger told Burton and
  • me all about that scandalous show, and Burton said he would tell the
  • people; so I reckon they've drove the owdacious loafers out of town
  • before this time.”
  • So there it was!--but I couldn't help it. Tom and me was to sleep in the
  • same room and bed; so, being tired, we bid good-night and went up to
  • bed right after supper, and clumb out of the window and down the
  • lightning-rod, and shoved for the town; for I didn't believe anybody was
  • going to give the king and the duke a hint, and so if I didn't hurry up
  • and give them one they'd get into trouble sure.
  • On the road Tom he told me all about how it was reckoned I was murdered,
  • and how pap disappeared pretty soon, and didn't come back no more, and
  • what a stir there was when Jim run away; and I told Tom all about our
  • Royal Nonesuch rapscallions, and as much of the raft voyage as I had
  • time to; and as we struck into the town and up through the the middle of
  • it--it was as much as half-after eight, then--here comes a raging rush of
  • people with torches, and an awful whooping and yelling, and banging tin
  • pans and blowing horns; and we jumped to one side to let them go by;
  • and as they went by I see they had the king and the duke astraddle of a
  • rail--that is, I knowed it _was_ the king and the duke, though they was
  • all over tar and feathers, and didn't look like nothing in the
  • world that was human--just looked like a couple of monstrous big
  • soldier-plumes. Well, it made me sick to see it; and I was sorry for
  • them poor pitiful rascals, it seemed like I couldn't ever feel any
  • hardness against them any more in the world. It was a dreadful thing to
  • see. Human beings _can_ be awful cruel to one another.
  • We see we was too late--couldn't do no good. We asked some stragglers
  • about it, and they said everybody went to the show looking very
  • innocent; and laid low and kept dark till the poor old king was in the
  • middle of his cavortings on the stage; then somebody give a signal, and
  • the house rose up and went for them.
  • So we poked along back home, and I warn't feeling so brash as I was
  • before, but kind of ornery, and humble, and to blame, somehow--though
  • I hadn't done nothing. But that's always the way; it don't make no
  • difference whether you do right or wrong, a person's conscience ain't
  • got no sense, and just goes for him anyway. If I had a yaller dog that
  • didn't know no more than a person's conscience does I would pison him.
  • It takes up more room than all the rest of a person's insides, and yet
  • ain't no good, nohow. Tom Sawyer he says the same.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV.
  • WE stopped talking, and got to thinking. By and by Tom says:
  • “Looky here, Huck, what fools we are to not think of it before! I bet I
  • know where Jim is.”
  • “No! Where?”
  • “In that hut down by the ash-hopper. Why, looky here. When we was at
  • dinner, didn't you see a nigger man go in there with some vittles?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “What did you think the vittles was for?”
  • “For a dog.”
  • “So 'd I. Well, it wasn't for a dog.”
  • “Why?”
  • “Because part of it was watermelon.”
  • “So it was--I noticed it. Well, it does beat all that I never thought
  • about a dog not eating watermelon. It shows how a body can see and
  • don't see at the same time.”
  • “Well, the nigger unlocked the padlock when he went in, and he locked it
  • again when he came out. He fetched uncle a key about the time we got up
  • from table--same key, I bet. Watermelon shows man, lock shows prisoner;
  • and it ain't likely there's two prisoners on such a little plantation,
  • and where the people's all so kind and good. Jim's the prisoner. All
  • right--I'm glad we found it out detective fashion; I wouldn't give shucks
  • for any other way. Now you work your mind, and study out a plan to
  • steal Jim, and I will study out one, too; and we'll take the one we like
  • the best.”
  • What a head for just a boy to have! If I had Tom Sawyer's head I
  • wouldn't trade it off to be a duke, nor mate of a steamboat, nor clown
  • in a circus, nor nothing I can think of. I went to thinking out a plan,
  • but only just to be doing something; I knowed very well where the right
  • plan was going to come from. Pretty soon Tom says:
  • “Ready?”
  • “Yes,” I says.
  • “All right--bring it out.”
  • “My plan is this,” I says. “We can easy find out if it's Jim in there.
  • Then get up my canoe to-morrow night, and fetch my raft over from the
  • island. Then the first dark night that comes steal the key out of the
  • old man's britches after he goes to bed, and shove off down the river
  • on the raft with Jim, hiding daytimes and running nights, the way me and
  • Jim used to do before. Wouldn't that plan work?”
  • “_Work_? Why, cert'nly it would work, like rats a-fighting. But it's
  • too blame' simple; there ain't nothing _to_ it. What's the good of a
  • plan that ain't no more trouble than that? It's as mild as goose-milk.
  • Why, Huck, it wouldn't make no more talk than breaking into a soap
  • factory.”
  • I never said nothing, because I warn't expecting nothing different; but
  • I knowed mighty well that whenever he got _his_ plan ready it wouldn't
  • have none of them objections to it.
  • And it didn't. He told me what it was, and I see in a minute it was
  • worth fifteen of mine for style, and would make Jim just as free a man
  • as mine would, and maybe get us all killed besides. So I was satisfied,
  • and said we would waltz in on it. I needn't tell what it was here,
  • because I knowed it wouldn't stay the way, it was. I knowed he would be
  • changing it around every which way as we went along, and heaving in new
  • bullinesses wherever he got a chance. And that is what he done.
  • Well, one thing was dead sure, and that was that Tom Sawyer was in
  • earnest, and was actuly going to help steal that nigger out of slavery.
  • That was the thing that was too many for me. Here was a boy that was
  • respectable and well brung up; and had a character to lose; and folks at
  • home that had characters; and he was bright and not leather-headed; and
  • knowing and not ignorant; and not mean, but kind; and yet here he was,
  • without any more pride, or rightness, or feeling, than to stoop to
  • this business, and make himself a shame, and his family a shame,
  • before everybody. I _couldn't_ understand it no way at all. It was
  • outrageous, and I knowed I ought to just up and tell him so; and so be
  • his true friend, and let him quit the thing right where he was and save
  • himself. And I _did_ start to tell him; but he shut me up, and says:
  • “Don't you reckon I know what I'm about? Don't I generly know what I'm
  • about?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Didn't I _say_ I was going to help steal the nigger?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “_Well_, then.”
  • That's all he said, and that's all I said. It warn't no use to say any
  • more; because when he said he'd do a thing, he always done it. But I
  • couldn't make out how he was willing to go into this thing; so I just
  • let it go, and never bothered no more about it. If he was bound to have
  • it so, I couldn't help it.
  • When we got home the house was all dark and still; so we went on down to
  • the hut by the ash-hopper for to examine it. We went through the yard
  • so as to see what the hounds would do. They knowed us, and didn't make
  • no more noise than country dogs is always doing when anything comes by
  • in the night. When we got to the cabin we took a look at the front and
  • the two sides; and on the side I warn't acquainted with--which was the
  • north side--we found a square window-hole, up tolerable high, with just
  • one stout board nailed across it. I says:
  • “Here's the ticket. This hole's big enough for Jim to get through if we
  • wrench off the board.”
  • Tom says:
  • “It's as simple as tit-tat-toe, three-in-a-row, and as easy as
  • playing hooky. I should _hope_ we can find a way that's a little more
  • complicated than _that_, Huck Finn.”
  • “Well, then,” I says, “how 'll it do to saw him out, the way I done
  • before I was murdered that time?”
  • “That's more _like_,” he says. “It's real mysterious, and troublesome,
  • and good,” he says; “but I bet we can find a way that's twice as long.
  • There ain't no hurry; le's keep on looking around.”
  • Betwixt the hut and the fence, on the back side, was a lean-to that
  • joined the hut at the eaves, and was made out of plank. It was as long
  • as the hut, but narrow--only about six foot wide. The door to it was at
  • the south end, and was padlocked. Tom he went to the soap-kettle and
  • searched around, and fetched back the iron thing they lift the lid with;
  • so he took it and prized out one of the staples. The chain fell down,
  • and we opened the door and went in, and shut it, and struck a match,
  • and see the shed was only built against a cabin and hadn't no connection
  • with it; and there warn't no floor to the shed, nor nothing in it but
  • some old rusty played-out hoes and spades and picks and a crippled plow.
  • The match went out, and so did we, and shoved in the staple again, and
  • the door was locked as good as ever. Tom was joyful. He says;
  • “Now we're all right. We'll _dig_ him out. It 'll take about a week!”
  • Then we started for the house, and I went in the back door--you only have
  • to pull a buckskin latch-string, they don't fasten the doors--but that
  • warn't romantical enough for Tom Sawyer; no way would do him but he must
  • climb up the lightning-rod. But after he got up half way about three
  • times, and missed fire and fell every time, and the last time most
  • busted his brains out, he thought he'd got to give it up; but after he
  • was rested he allowed he would give her one more turn for luck, and this
  • time he made the trip.
  • In the morning we was up at break of day, and down to the nigger cabins
  • to pet the dogs and make friends with the nigger that fed Jim--if it
  • _was_ Jim that was being fed. The niggers was just getting through
  • breakfast and starting for the fields; and Jim's nigger was piling up
  • a tin pan with bread and meat and things; and whilst the others was
  • leaving, the key come from the house.
  • This nigger had a good-natured, chuckle-headed face, and his wool was
  • all tied up in little bunches with thread. That was to keep witches
  • off. He said the witches was pestering him awful these nights, and
  • making him see all kinds of strange things, and hear all kinds of
  • strange words and noises, and he didn't believe he was ever witched so
  • long before in his life. He got so worked up, and got to running on so
  • about his troubles, he forgot all about what he'd been a-going to do.
  • So Tom says:
  • “What's the vittles for? Going to feed the dogs?”
  • The nigger kind of smiled around gradually over his face, like when you
  • heave a brickbat in a mud-puddle, and he says:
  • “Yes, Mars Sid, A dog. Cur'us dog, too. Does you want to go en look at
  • 'im?”
  • “Yes.”
  • I hunched Tom, and whispers:
  • “You going, right here in the daybreak? _that_ warn't the plan.”
  • “No, it warn't; but it's the plan _now_.”
  • So, drat him, we went along, but I didn't like it much. When we got in
  • we couldn't hardly see anything, it was so dark; but Jim was there, sure
  • enough, and could see us; and he sings out:
  • “Why, _Huck_! En good _lan_'! ain' dat Misto Tom?”
  • I just knowed how it would be; I just expected it. I didn't know
  • nothing to do; and if I had I couldn't a done it, because that nigger
  • busted in and says:
  • “Why, de gracious sakes! do he know you genlmen?”
  • We could see pretty well now. Tom he looked at the nigger, steady and
  • kind of wondering, and says:
  • “Does _who_ know us?”
  • “Why, dis-yer runaway nigger.”
  • “I don't reckon he does; but what put that into your head?”
  • “What _put_ it dar? Didn' he jis' dis minute sing out like he knowed
  • you?”
  • Tom says, in a puzzled-up kind of way:
  • “Well, that's mighty curious. _Who_ sung out? _when_ did he sing out?
  • _what_ did he sing out?” And turns to me, perfectly ca'm, and says,
  • “Did _you_ hear anybody sing out?”
  • Of course there warn't nothing to be said but the one thing; so I says:
  • “No; I ain't heard nobody say nothing.”
  • Then he turns to Jim, and looks him over like he never see him before,
  • and says:
  • “Did you sing out?”
  • “No, sah,” says Jim; “I hain't said nothing, sah.”
  • “Not a word?”
  • “No, sah, I hain't said a word.”
  • “Did you ever see us before?”
  • “No, sah; not as I knows on.”
  • So Tom turns to the nigger, which was looking wild and distressed, and
  • says, kind of severe:
  • “What do you reckon's the matter with you, anyway? What made you think
  • somebody sung out?”
  • “Oh, it's de dad-blame' witches, sah, en I wisht I was dead, I do.
  • Dey's awluz at it, sah, en dey do mos' kill me, dey sk'yers me so.
  • Please to don't tell nobody 'bout it sah, er ole Mars Silas he'll scole
  • me; 'kase he say dey _ain't_ no witches. I jis' wish to goodness he was
  • heah now--_den_ what would he say! I jis' bet he couldn' fine no way to
  • git aroun' it _dis_ time. But it's awluz jis' so; people dat's _sot_,
  • stays sot; dey won't look into noth'n'en fine it out f'r deyselves, en
  • when _you_ fine it out en tell um 'bout it, dey doan' b'lieve you.”
  • Tom give him a dime, and said we wouldn't tell nobody; and told him to
  • buy some more thread to tie up his wool with; and then looks at Jim, and
  • says:
  • “I wonder if Uncle Silas is going to hang this nigger. If I was to
  • catch a nigger that was ungrateful enough to run away, I wouldn't give
  • him up, I'd hang him.” And whilst the nigger stepped to the door to
  • look at the dime and bite it to see if it was good, he whispers to Jim
  • and says:
  • “Don't ever let on to know us. And if you hear any digging going on
  • nights, it's us; we're going to set you free.”
  • Jim only had time to grab us by the hand and squeeze it; then the nigger
  • come back, and we said we'd come again some time if the nigger wanted
  • us to; and he said he would, more particular if it was dark, because the
  • witches went for him mostly in the dark, and it was good to have folks
  • around then.
  • CHAPTER XXXV.
  • IT would be most an hour yet till breakfast, so we left and struck down
  • into the woods; because Tom said we got to have _some_ light to see how
  • to dig by, and a lantern makes too much, and might get us into trouble;
  • what we must have was a lot of them rotten chunks that's called
  • fox-fire, and just makes a soft kind of a glow when you lay them in a
  • dark place. We fetched an armful and hid it in the weeds, and set down
  • to rest, and Tom says, kind of dissatisfied:
  • “Blame it, this whole thing is just as easy and awkward as it can be.
  • And so it makes it so rotten difficult to get up a difficult plan.
  • There ain't no watchman to be drugged--now there _ought_ to be a
  • watchman. There ain't even a dog to give a sleeping-mixture to. And
  • there's Jim chained by one leg, with a ten-foot chain, to the leg of his
  • bed: why, all you got to do is to lift up the bedstead and slip off
  • the chain. And Uncle Silas he trusts everybody; sends the key to the
  • punkin-headed nigger, and don't send nobody to watch the nigger. Jim
  • could a got out of that window-hole before this, only there wouldn't be
  • no use trying to travel with a ten-foot chain on his leg. Why, drat it,
  • Huck, it's the stupidest arrangement I ever see. You got to invent _all_
  • the difficulties. Well, we can't help it; we got to do the best we can
  • with the materials we've got. Anyhow, there's one thing--there's more
  • honor in getting him out through a lot of difficulties and dangers,
  • where there warn't one of them furnished to you by the people who it was
  • their duty to furnish them, and you had to contrive them all out of your
  • own head. Now look at just that one thing of the lantern. When you
  • come down to the cold facts, we simply got to _let on_ that a lantern's
  • resky. Why, we could work with a torchlight procession if we wanted to,
  • I believe. Now, whilst I think of it, we got to hunt up something to
  • make a saw out of the first chance we get.”
  • “What do we want of a saw?”
  • “What do we _want_ of it? Hain't we got to saw the leg of Jim's bed
  • off, so as to get the chain loose?”
  • “Why, you just said a body could lift up the bedstead and slip the chain
  • off.”
  • “Well, if that ain't just like you, Huck Finn. You _can_ get up the
  • infant-schooliest ways of going at a thing. Why, hain't you ever read
  • any books at all?--Baron Trenck, nor Casanova, nor Benvenuto Chelleeny,
  • nor Henri IV., nor none of them heroes? Who ever heard of getting a
  • prisoner loose in such an old-maidy way as that? No; the way all the
  • best authorities does is to saw the bed-leg in two, and leave it just
  • so, and swallow the sawdust, so it can't be found, and put some dirt and
  • grease around the sawed place so the very keenest seneskal can't see
  • no sign of it's being sawed, and thinks the bed-leg is perfectly sound.
  • Then, the night you're ready, fetch the leg a kick, down she goes; slip
  • off your chain, and there you are. Nothing to do but hitch your
  • rope ladder to the battlements, shin down it, break your leg in the
  • moat--because a rope ladder is nineteen foot too short, you know--and
  • there's your horses and your trusty vassles, and they scoop you up and
  • fling you across a saddle, and away you go to your native Langudoc, or
  • Navarre, or wherever it is. It's gaudy, Huck. I wish there was a moat
  • to this cabin. If we get time, the night of the escape, we'll dig one.”
  • I says:
  • “What do we want of a moat when we're going to snake him out from under
  • the cabin?”
  • But he never heard me. He had forgot me and everything else. He had
  • his chin in his hand, thinking. Pretty soon he sighs and shakes his
  • head; then sighs again, and says:
  • “No, it wouldn't do--there ain't necessity enough for it.”
  • “For what?” I says.
  • “Why, to saw Jim's leg off,” he says.
  • “Good land!” I says; “why, there ain't _no_ necessity for it. And what
  • would you want to saw his leg off for, anyway?”
  • “Well, some of the best authorities has done it. They couldn't get the
  • chain off, so they just cut their hand off and shoved. And a leg would
  • be better still. But we got to let that go. There ain't necessity
  • enough in this case; and, besides, Jim's a nigger, and wouldn't
  • understand the reasons for it, and how it's the custom in Europe; so
  • we'll let it go. But there's one thing--he can have a rope ladder; we
  • can tear up our sheets and make him a rope ladder easy enough. And we
  • can send it to him in a pie; it's mostly done that way. And I've et
  • worse pies.”
  • “Why, Tom Sawyer, how you talk,” I says; “Jim ain't got no use for a
  • rope ladder.”
  • “He _has_ got use for it. How _you_ talk, you better say; you don't
  • know nothing about it. He's _got_ to have a rope ladder; they all do.”
  • “What in the nation can he _do_ with it?”
  • “_Do_ with it? He can hide it in his bed, can't he?” That's what they
  • all do; and _he's_ got to, too. Huck, you don't ever seem to want to do
  • anything that's regular; you want to be starting something fresh all the
  • time. S'pose he _don't_ do nothing with it? ain't it there in his bed,
  • for a clew, after he's gone? and don't you reckon they'll want clews?
  • Of course they will. And you wouldn't leave them any? That would be a
  • _pretty_ howdy-do, _wouldn't_ it! I never heard of such a thing.”
  • “Well,” I says, “if it's in the regulations, and he's got to have
  • it, all right, let him have it; because I don't wish to go back on no
  • regulations; but there's one thing, Tom Sawyer--if we go to tearing up
  • our sheets to make Jim a rope ladder, we're going to get into trouble
  • with Aunt Sally, just as sure as you're born. Now, the way I look at
  • it, a hickry-bark ladder don't cost nothing, and don't waste nothing,
  • and is just as good to load up a pie with, and hide in a straw tick,
  • as any rag ladder you can start; and as for Jim, he ain't had no
  • experience, and so he don't care what kind of a--”
  • “Oh, shucks, Huck Finn, if I was as ignorant as you I'd keep
  • still--that's what I'D do. Who ever heard of a state prisoner escaping
  • by a hickry-bark ladder? Why, it's perfectly ridiculous.”
  • “Well, all right, Tom, fix it your own way; but if you'll take my
  • advice, you'll let me borrow a sheet off of the clothesline.”
  • He said that would do. And that gave him another idea, and he says:
  • “Borrow a shirt, too.”
  • “What do we want of a shirt, Tom?”
  • “Want it for Jim to keep a journal on.”
  • “Journal your granny--_Jim_ can't write.”
  • “S'pose he _can't_ write--he can make marks on the shirt, can't he, if
  • we make him a pen out of an old pewter spoon or a piece of an old iron
  • barrel-hoop?”
  • “Why, Tom, we can pull a feather out of a goose and make him a better
  • one; and quicker, too.”
  • “_Prisoners_ don't have geese running around the donjon-keep to pull
  • pens out of, you muggins. They _always_ make their pens out of the
  • hardest, toughest, troublesomest piece of old brass candlestick or
  • something like that they can get their hands on; and it takes them weeks
  • and weeks and months and months to file it out, too, because they've got
  • to do it by rubbing it on the wall. _They_ wouldn't use a goose-quill
  • if they had it. It ain't regular.”
  • “Well, then, what'll we make him the ink out of?”
  • “Many makes it out of iron-rust and tears; but that's the common sort
  • and women; the best authorities uses their own blood. Jim can do that;
  • and when he wants to send any little common ordinary mysterious message
  • to let the world know where he's captivated, he can write it on the
  • bottom of a tin plate with a fork and throw it out of the window. The
  • Iron Mask always done that, and it's a blame' good way, too.”
  • “Jim ain't got no tin plates. They feed him in a pan.”
  • “That ain't nothing; we can get him some.”
  • “Can't nobody _read_ his plates.”
  • “That ain't got anything to _do_ with it, Huck Finn. All _he's_ got to
  • do is to write on the plate and throw it out. You don't _have_ to be
  • able to read it. Why, half the time you can't read anything a prisoner
  • writes on a tin plate, or anywhere else.”
  • “Well, then, what's the sense in wasting the plates?”
  • “Why, blame it all, it ain't the _prisoner's_ plates.”
  • “But it's _somebody's_ plates, ain't it?”
  • “Well, spos'n it is? What does the _prisoner_ care whose--”
  • He broke off there, because we heard the breakfast-horn blowing. So we
  • cleared out for the house.
  • Along during the morning I borrowed a sheet and a white shirt off of the
  • clothes-line; and I found an old sack and put them in it, and we went
  • down and got the fox-fire, and put that in too. I called it borrowing,
  • because that was what pap always called it; but Tom said it warn't
  • borrowing, it was stealing. He said we was representing prisoners; and
  • prisoners don't care how they get a thing so they get it, and nobody
  • don't blame them for it, either. It ain't no crime in a prisoner to
  • steal the thing he needs to get away with, Tom said; it's his right; and
  • so, as long as we was representing a prisoner, we had a perfect right to
  • steal anything on this place we had the least use for to get ourselves
  • out of prison with. He said if we warn't prisoners it would be a very
  • different thing, and nobody but a mean, ornery person would steal when
  • he warn't a prisoner. So we allowed we would steal everything there was
  • that come handy. And yet he made a mighty fuss, one day, after that,
  • when I stole a watermelon out of the nigger-patch and eat it; and he
  • made me go and give the niggers a dime without telling them what it
  • was for. Tom said that what he meant was, we could steal anything we
  • _needed_. Well, I says, I needed the watermelon. But he said I didn't
  • need it to get out of prison with; there's where the difference was.
  • He said if I'd a wanted it to hide a knife in, and smuggle it to Jim
  • to kill the seneskal with, it would a been all right. So I let it go at
  • that, though I couldn't see no advantage in my representing a prisoner
  • if I got to set down and chaw over a lot of gold-leaf distinctions like
  • that every time I see a chance to hog a watermelon.
  • Well, as I was saying, we waited that morning till everybody was settled
  • down to business, and nobody in sight around the yard; then Tom he
  • carried the sack into the lean-to whilst I stood off a piece to keep
  • watch. By and by he come out, and we went and set down on the woodpile
  • to talk. He says:
  • “Everything's all right now except tools; and that's easy fixed.”
  • “Tools?” I says.
  • “Yes.”
  • “Tools for what?”
  • “Why, to dig with. We ain't a-going to _gnaw_ him out, are we?”
  • “Ain't them old crippled picks and things in there good enough to dig a
  • nigger out with?” I says.
  • He turns on me, looking pitying enough to make a body cry, and says:
  • “Huck Finn, did you _ever_ hear of a prisoner having picks and shovels,
  • and all the modern conveniences in his wardrobe to dig himself out with?
  • Now I want to ask you--if you got any reasonableness in you at all--what
  • kind of a show would _that_ give him to be a hero? Why, they might as
  • well lend him the key and done with it. Picks and shovels--why, they
  • wouldn't furnish 'em to a king.”
  • “Well, then,” I says, “if we don't want the picks and shovels, what do
  • we want?”
  • “A couple of case-knives.”
  • “To dig the foundations out from under that cabin with?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Confound it, it's foolish, Tom.”
  • “It don't make no difference how foolish it is, it's the _right_ way--and
  • it's the regular way. And there ain't no _other_ way, that ever I heard
  • of, and I've read all the books that gives any information about these
  • things. They always dig out with a case-knife--and not through dirt, mind
  • you; generly it's through solid rock. And it takes them weeks and weeks
  • and weeks, and for ever and ever. Why, look at one of them prisoners in
  • the bottom dungeon of the Castle Deef, in the harbor of Marseilles, that
  • dug himself out that way; how long was _he_ at it, you reckon?”
  • “I don't know.”
  • “Well, guess.”
  • “I don't know. A month and a half.”
  • “_Thirty-seven year_--and he come out in China. _That's_ the kind. I
  • wish the bottom of _this_ fortress was solid rock.”
  • “_Jim_ don't know nobody in China.”
  • “What's _that_ got to do with it? Neither did that other fellow. But
  • you're always a-wandering off on a side issue. Why can't you stick to
  • the main point?”
  • “All right--I don't care where he comes out, so he _comes_ out; and Jim
  • don't, either, I reckon. But there's one thing, anyway--Jim's too old to
  • be dug out with a case-knife. He won't last.”
  • “Yes he will _last_, too. You don't reckon it's going to take
  • thirty-seven years to dig out through a _dirt_ foundation, do you?”
  • “How long will it take, Tom?”
  • “Well, we can't resk being as long as we ought to, because it mayn't
  • take very long for Uncle Silas to hear from down there by New Orleans.
  • He'll hear Jim ain't from there. Then his next move will be to
  • advertise Jim, or something like that. So we can't resk being as long
  • digging him out as we ought to. By rights I reckon we ought to be
  • a couple of years; but we can't. Things being so uncertain, what I
  • recommend is this: that we really dig right in, as quick as we can;
  • and after that, we can _let on_, to ourselves, that we was at it
  • thirty-seven years. Then we can snatch him out and rush him away the
  • first time there's an alarm. Yes, I reckon that 'll be the best way.”
  • “Now, there's _sense_ in that,” I says. “Letting on don't cost nothing;
  • letting on ain't no trouble; and if it's any object, I don't mind
  • letting on we was at it a hundred and fifty year. It wouldn't strain
  • me none, after I got my hand in. So I'll mosey along now, and smouch a
  • couple of case-knives.”
  • “Smouch three,” he says; “we want one to make a saw out of.”
  • “Tom, if it ain't unregular and irreligious to sejest it,” I says,
  • “there's an old rusty saw-blade around yonder sticking under the
  • weather-boarding behind the smoke-house.”
  • He looked kind of weary and discouraged-like, and says:
  • “It ain't no use to try to learn you nothing, Huck. Run along and
  • smouch the knives--three of them.” So I done it.
  • CHAPTER XXXVI.
  • AS soon as we reckoned everybody was asleep that night we went down the
  • lightning-rod, and shut ourselves up in the lean-to, and got out our
  • pile of fox-fire, and went to work. We cleared everything out of the
  • way, about four or five foot along the middle of the bottom log. Tom
  • said he was right behind Jim's bed now, and we'd dig in under it, and
  • when we got through there couldn't nobody in the cabin ever know there
  • was any hole there, because Jim's counter-pin hung down most to the
  • ground, and you'd have to raise it up and look under to see the hole.
  • So we dug and dug with the case-knives till most midnight; and then
  • we was dog-tired, and our hands was blistered, and yet you couldn't see
  • we'd done anything hardly. At last I says:
  • “This ain't no thirty-seven year job; this is a thirty-eight year job,
  • Tom Sawyer.”
  • He never said nothing. But he sighed, and pretty soon he stopped
  • digging, and then for a good little while I knowed that he was thinking.
  • Then he says:
  • “It ain't no use, Huck, it ain't a-going to work. If we was prisoners
  • it would, because then we'd have as many years as we wanted, and no
  • hurry; and we wouldn't get but a few minutes to dig, every day, while
  • they was changing watches, and so our hands wouldn't get blistered, and
  • we could keep it up right along, year in and year out, and do it right,
  • and the way it ought to be done. But _we_ can't fool along; we got to
  • rush; we ain't got no time to spare. If we was to put in another
  • night this way we'd have to knock off for a week to let our hands get
  • well--couldn't touch a case-knife with them sooner.”
  • “Well, then, what we going to do, Tom?”
  • “I'll tell you. It ain't right, and it ain't moral, and I wouldn't like
  • it to get out; but there ain't only just the one way: we got to dig him
  • out with the picks, and _let on_ it's case-knives.”
  • “_Now_ you're _talking_!” I says; “your head gets leveler and leveler
  • all the time, Tom Sawyer,” I says. “Picks is the thing, moral or no
  • moral; and as for me, I don't care shucks for the morality of it, nohow.
  • When I start in to steal a nigger, or a watermelon, or a Sunday-school
  • book, I ain't no ways particular how it's done so it's done. What I
  • want is my nigger; or what I want is my watermelon; or what I want is my
  • Sunday-school book; and if a pick's the handiest thing, that's the thing
  • I'm a-going to dig that nigger or that watermelon or that Sunday-school
  • book out with; and I don't give a dead rat what the authorities thinks
  • about it nuther.”
  • “Well,” he says, “there's excuse for picks and letting-on in a case like
  • this; if it warn't so, I wouldn't approve of it, nor I wouldn't stand by
  • and see the rules broke--because right is right, and wrong is wrong,
  • and a body ain't got no business doing wrong when he ain't ignorant and
  • knows better. It might answer for _you_ to dig Jim out with a pick,
  • _without_ any letting on, because you don't know no better; but it
  • wouldn't for me, because I do know better. Gimme a case-knife.”
  • He had his own by him, but I handed him mine. He flung it down, and
  • says:
  • “Gimme a _case-knife_.”
  • I didn't know just what to do--but then I thought. I scratched around
  • amongst the old tools, and got a pickaxe and give it to him, and he took
  • it and went to work, and never said a word.
  • He was always just that particular. Full of principle.
  • So then I got a shovel, and then we picked and shoveled, turn about,
  • and made the fur fly. We stuck to it about a half an hour, which was as
  • long as we could stand up; but we had a good deal of a hole to show for
  • it. When I got up stairs I looked out at the window and see Tom doing
  • his level best with the lightning-rod, but he couldn't come it, his
  • hands was so sore. At last he says:
  • “It ain't no use, it can't be done. What you reckon I better do? Can't
  • you think of no way?”
  • “Yes,” I says, “but I reckon it ain't regular. Come up the stairs, and
  • let on it's a lightning-rod.”
  • So he done it.
  • Next day Tom stole a pewter spoon and a brass candlestick in the house,
  • for to make some pens for Jim out of, and six tallow candles; and I
  • hung around the nigger cabins and laid for a chance, and stole three tin
  • plates. Tom says it wasn't enough; but I said nobody wouldn't ever see
  • the plates that Jim throwed out, because they'd fall in the dog-fennel
  • and jimpson weeds under the window-hole--then we could tote them back and
  • he could use them over again. So Tom was satisfied. Then he says:
  • “Now, the thing to study out is, how to get the things to Jim.”
  • “Take them in through the hole,” I says, “when we get it done.”
  • He only just looked scornful, and said something about nobody ever heard
  • of such an idiotic idea, and then he went to studying. By and by he
  • said he had ciphered out two or three ways, but there warn't no need to
  • decide on any of them yet. Said we'd got to post Jim first.
  • That night we went down the lightning-rod a little after ten, and took
  • one of the candles along, and listened under the window-hole, and heard
  • Jim snoring; so we pitched it in, and it didn't wake him. Then we
  • whirled in with the pick and shovel, and in about two hours and a half
  • the job was done. We crept in under Jim's bed and into the cabin, and
  • pawed around and found the candle and lit it, and stood over Jim awhile,
  • and found him looking hearty and healthy, and then we woke him up gentle
  • and gradual. He was so glad to see us he most cried; and called us
  • honey, and all the pet names he could think of; and was for having us
  • hunt up a cold-chisel to cut the chain off of his leg with right away,
  • and clearing out without losing any time. But Tom he showed him how
  • unregular it would be, and set down and told him all about our plans,
  • and how we could alter them in a minute any time there was an alarm; and
  • not to be the least afraid, because we would see he got away, _sure_.
  • So Jim he said it was all right, and we set there and talked over old
  • times awhile, and then Tom asked a lot of questions, and when Jim told
  • him Uncle Silas come in every day or two to pray with him, and Aunt
  • Sally come in to see if he was comfortable and had plenty to eat, and
  • both of them was kind as they could be, Tom says:
  • “_Now_ I know how to fix it. We'll send you some things by them.”
  • I said, “Don't do nothing of the kind; it's one of the most jackass
  • ideas I ever struck;” but he never paid no attention to me; went right
  • on. It was his way when he'd got his plans set.
  • So he told Jim how we'd have to smuggle in the rope-ladder pie and other
  • large things by Nat, the nigger that fed him, and he must be on the
  • lookout, and not be surprised, and not let Nat see him open them; and
  • we would put small things in uncle's coat-pockets and he must steal them
  • out; and we would tie things to aunt's apron-strings or put them in her
  • apron-pocket, if we got a chance; and told him what they would be and
  • what they was for. And told him how to keep a journal on the shirt with
  • his blood, and all that. He told him everything. Jim he couldn't see
  • no sense in the most of it, but he allowed we was white folks and knowed
  • better than him; so he was satisfied, and said he would do it all just
  • as Tom said.
  • Jim had plenty corn-cob pipes and tobacco; so we had a right down good
  • sociable time; then we crawled out through the hole, and so home to
  • bed, with hands that looked like they'd been chawed. Tom was in high
  • spirits. He said it was the best fun he ever had in his life, and the
  • most intellectural; and said if he only could see his way to it we would
  • keep it up all the rest of our lives and leave Jim to our children to
  • get out; for he believed Jim would come to like it better and better the
  • more he got used to it. He said that in that way it could be strung out
  • to as much as eighty year, and would be the best time on record. And he
  • said it would make us all celebrated that had a hand in it.
  • In the morning we went out to the woodpile and chopped up the brass
  • candlestick into handy sizes, and Tom put them and the pewter spoon in
  • his pocket. Then we went to the nigger cabins, and while I got Nat's
  • notice off, Tom shoved a piece of candlestick into the middle of a
  • corn-pone that was in Jim's pan, and we went along with Nat to see how
  • it would work, and it just worked noble; when Jim bit into it it most
  • mashed all his teeth out; and there warn't ever anything could a worked
  • better. Tom said so himself. Jim he never let on but what it was only
  • just a piece of rock or something like that that's always getting into
  • bread, you know; but after that he never bit into nothing but what he
  • jabbed his fork into it in three or four places first.
  • And whilst we was a-standing there in the dimmish light, here comes a
  • couple of the hounds bulging in from under Jim's bed; and they kept on
  • piling in till there was eleven of them, and there warn't hardly room
  • in there to get your breath. By jings, we forgot to fasten that lean-to
  • door! The nigger Nat he only just hollered “Witches” once, and keeled
  • over on to the floor amongst the dogs, and begun to groan like he was
  • dying. Tom jerked the door open and flung out a slab of Jim's meat,
  • and the dogs went for it, and in two seconds he was out himself and back
  • again and shut the door, and I knowed he'd fixed the other door too.
  • Then he went to work on the nigger, coaxing him and petting him, and
  • asking him if he'd been imagining he saw something again. He raised up,
  • and blinked his eyes around, and says:
  • “Mars Sid, you'll say I's a fool, but if I didn't b'lieve I see most a
  • million dogs, er devils, er some'n, I wisht I may die right heah in dese
  • tracks. I did, mos' sholy. Mars Sid, I _felt_ um--I _felt_ um, sah; dey
  • was all over me. Dad fetch it, I jis' wisht I could git my han's on one
  • er dem witches jis' wunst--on'y jis' wunst--it's all I'd ast. But mos'ly
  • I wisht dey'd lemme 'lone, I does.”
  • Tom says:
  • “Well, I tell you what I think. What makes them come here just at this
  • runaway nigger's breakfast-time? It's because they're hungry; that's
  • the reason. You make them a witch pie; that's the thing for _you_ to
  • do.”
  • “But my lan', Mars Sid, how's I gwyne to make 'm a witch pie? I doan'
  • know how to make it. I hain't ever hearn er sich a thing b'fo'.”
  • “Well, then, I'll have to make it myself.”
  • “Will you do it, honey?--will you? I'll wusshup de groun' und' yo' foot,
  • I will!”
  • “All right, I'll do it, seeing it's you, and you've been good to us and
  • showed us the runaway nigger. But you got to be mighty careful. When
  • we come around, you turn your back; and then whatever we've put in the
  • pan, don't you let on you see it at all. And don't you look when Jim
  • unloads the pan--something might happen, I don't know what. And above
  • all, don't you _handle_ the witch-things.”
  • “_Hannel 'M_, Mars Sid? What _is_ you a-talkin' 'bout? I wouldn'
  • lay de weight er my finger on um, not f'r ten hund'd thous'n billion
  • dollars, I wouldn't.”
  • CHAPTER XXXVII.
  • THAT was all fixed. So then we went away and went to the rubbage-pile
  • in the back yard, where they keep the old boots, and rags, and pieces
  • of bottles, and wore-out tin things, and all such truck, and scratched
  • around and found an old tin washpan, and stopped up the holes as well as
  • we could, to bake the pie in, and took it down cellar and stole it full
  • of flour and started for breakfast, and found a couple of shingle-nails
  • that Tom said would be handy for a prisoner to scrabble his name and
  • sorrows on the dungeon walls with, and dropped one of them in Aunt
  • Sally's apron-pocket which was hanging on a chair, and t'other we stuck
  • in the band of Uncle Silas's hat, which was on the bureau, because we
  • heard the children say their pa and ma was going to the runaway nigger's
  • house this morning, and then went to breakfast, and Tom dropped the
  • pewter spoon in Uncle Silas's coat-pocket, and Aunt Sally wasn't come
  • yet, so we had to wait a little while.
  • And when she come she was hot and red and cross, and couldn't hardly
  • wait for the blessing; and then she went to sluicing out coffee with one
  • hand and cracking the handiest child's head with her thimble with the
  • other, and says:
  • “I've hunted high and I've hunted low, and it does beat all what _has_
  • become of your other shirt.”
  • My heart fell down amongst my lungs and livers and things, and a hard
  • piece of corn-crust started down my throat after it and got met on the
  • road with a cough, and was shot across the table, and took one of the
  • children in the eye and curled him up like a fishing-worm, and let a cry
  • out of him the size of a warwhoop, and Tom he turned kinder blue around
  • the gills, and it all amounted to a considerable state of things for
  • about a quarter of a minute or as much as that, and I would a sold out
  • for half price if there was a bidder. But after that we was all right
  • again--it was the sudden surprise of it that knocked us so kind of cold.
  • Uncle Silas he says:
  • “It's most uncommon curious, I can't understand it. I know perfectly
  • well I took it _off_, because--”
  • “Because you hain't got but one _on_. Just _listen_ at the man! I know
  • you took it off, and know it by a better way than your wool-gethering
  • memory, too, because it was on the clo's-line yesterday--I see it there
  • myself. But it's gone, that's the long and the short of it, and you'll
  • just have to change to a red flann'l one till I can get time to make a
  • new one. And it 'll be the third I've made in two years. It just keeps
  • a body on the jump to keep you in shirts; and whatever you do manage to
  • _do_ with 'm all is more'n I can make out. A body 'd think you _would_
  • learn to take some sort of care of 'em at your time of life.”
  • “I know it, Sally, and I do try all I can. But it oughtn't to be
  • altogether my fault, because, you know, I don't see them nor have
  • nothing to do with them except when they're on me; and I don't believe
  • I've ever lost one of them _off_ of me.”
  • “Well, it ain't _your_ fault if you haven't, Silas; you'd a done it
  • if you could, I reckon. And the shirt ain't all that's gone, nuther.
  • Ther's a spoon gone; and _that_ ain't all. There was ten, and now
  • ther's only nine. The calf got the shirt, I reckon, but the calf never
  • took the spoon, _that's_ certain.”
  • “Why, what else is gone, Sally?”
  • “Ther's six _candles_ gone--that's what. The rats could a got the
  • candles, and I reckon they did; I wonder they don't walk off with the
  • whole place, the way you're always going to stop their holes and don't
  • do it; and if they warn't fools they'd sleep in your hair, Silas--_you'd_
  • never find it out; but you can't lay the _spoon_ on the rats, and that I
  • know.”
  • “Well, Sally, I'm in fault, and I acknowledge it; I've been remiss; but
  • I won't let to-morrow go by without stopping up them holes.”
  • “Oh, I wouldn't hurry; next year 'll do. Matilda Angelina Araminta
  • _Phelps!_”
  • Whack comes the thimble, and the child snatches her claws out of the
  • sugar-bowl without fooling around any. Just then the nigger woman steps
  • on to the passage, and says:
  • “Missus, dey's a sheet gone.”
  • “A _sheet_ gone! Well, for the land's sake!”
  • “I'll stop up them holes to-day,” says Uncle Silas, looking sorrowful.
  • “Oh, _do_ shet up!--s'pose the rats took the _sheet_? _where's_ it gone,
  • Lize?”
  • “Clah to goodness I hain't no notion, Miss' Sally. She wuz on de
  • clo'sline yistiddy, but she done gone: she ain' dah no mo' now.”
  • “I reckon the world _is_ coming to an end. I _never_ see the beat of it
  • in all my born days. A shirt, and a sheet, and a spoon, and six can--”
  • “Missus,” comes a young yaller wench, “dey's a brass cannelstick
  • miss'n.”
  • “Cler out from here, you hussy, er I'll take a skillet to ye!”
  • Well, she was just a-biling. I begun to lay for a chance; I reckoned
  • I would sneak out and go for the woods till the weather moderated. She
  • kept a-raging right along, running her insurrection all by herself, and
  • everybody else mighty meek and quiet; and at last Uncle Silas, looking
  • kind of foolish, fishes up that spoon out of his pocket. She stopped,
  • with her mouth open and her hands up; and as for me, I wished I was in
  • Jeruslem or somewheres. But not long, because she says:
  • “It's _just_ as I expected. So you had it in your pocket all the time;
  • and like as not you've got the other things there, too. How'd it get
  • there?”
  • “I reely don't know, Sally,” he says, kind of apologizing, “or you know
  • I would tell. I was a-studying over my text in Acts Seventeen before
  • breakfast, and I reckon I put it in there, not noticing, meaning to put
  • my Testament in, and it must be so, because my Testament ain't in; but
  • I'll go and see; and if the Testament is where I had it, I'll know I
  • didn't put it in, and that will show that I laid the Testament down and
  • took up the spoon, and--”
  • “Oh, for the land's sake! Give a body a rest! Go 'long now, the whole
  • kit and biling of ye; and don't come nigh me again till I've got back my
  • peace of mind.”
  • I'D a heard her if she'd a said it to herself, let alone speaking it
  • out; and I'd a got up and obeyed her if I'd a been dead. As we was
  • passing through the setting-room the old man he took up his hat, and the
  • shingle-nail fell out on the floor, and he just merely picked it up and
  • laid it on the mantel-shelf, and never said nothing, and went out. Tom
  • see him do it, and remembered about the spoon, and says:
  • “Well, it ain't no use to send things by _him_ no more, he ain't
  • reliable.” Then he says: “But he done us a good turn with the spoon,
  • anyway, without knowing it, and so we'll go and do him one without _him_
  • knowing it--stop up his rat-holes.”
  • There was a noble good lot of them down cellar, and it took us a whole
  • hour, but we done the job tight and good and shipshape. Then we heard
  • steps on the stairs, and blowed out our light and hid; and here comes
  • the old man, with a candle in one hand and a bundle of stuff in t'other,
  • looking as absent-minded as year before last. He went a mooning around,
  • first to one rat-hole and then another, till he'd been to them all.
  • Then he stood about five minutes, picking tallow-drip off of his candle
  • and thinking. Then he turns off slow and dreamy towards the stairs,
  • saying:
  • “Well, for the life of me I can't remember when I done it. I could
  • show her now that I warn't to blame on account of the rats. But never
  • mind--let it go. I reckon it wouldn't do no good.”
  • And so he went on a-mumbling up stairs, and then we left. He was a
  • mighty nice old man. And always is.
  • Tom was a good deal bothered about what to do for a spoon, but he said
  • we'd got to have it; so he took a think. When he had ciphered it out
  • he told me how we was to do; then we went and waited around the
  • spoon-basket till we see Aunt Sally coming, and then Tom went to
  • counting the spoons and laying them out to one side, and I slid one of
  • them up my sleeve, and Tom says:
  • “Why, Aunt Sally, there ain't but nine spoons _yet_.”
  • She says:
  • “Go 'long to your play, and don't bother me. I know better, I counted
  • 'm myself.”
  • “Well, I've counted them twice, Aunty, and I can't make but nine.”
  • She looked out of all patience, but of course she come to count--anybody
  • would.
  • “I declare to gracious ther' _ain't_ but nine!” she says. “Why, what in
  • the world--plague _take_ the things, I'll count 'm again.”
  • So I slipped back the one I had, and when she got done counting, she
  • says:
  • “Hang the troublesome rubbage, ther's _ten_ now!” and she looked huffy
  • and bothered both. But Tom says:
  • “Why, Aunty, I don't think there's ten.”
  • “You numskull, didn't you see me _count 'm?_”
  • “I know, but--”
  • “Well, I'll count 'm _again_.”
  • So I smouched one, and they come out nine, same as the other time.
  • Well, she _was_ in a tearing way--just a-trembling all over, she was so
  • mad. But she counted and counted till she got that addled she'd start
  • to count in the basket for a spoon sometimes; and so, three times they
  • come out right, and three times they come out wrong. Then she grabbed
  • up the basket and slammed it across the house and knocked the cat
  • galley-west; and she said cle'r out and let her have some peace, and if
  • we come bothering around her again betwixt that and dinner she'd skin
  • us. So we had the odd spoon, and dropped it in her apron-pocket whilst
  • she was a-giving us our sailing orders, and Jim got it all right, along
  • with her shingle nail, before noon. We was very well satisfied with
  • this business, and Tom allowed it was worth twice the trouble it took,
  • because he said _now_ she couldn't ever count them spoons twice alike
  • again to save her life; and wouldn't believe she'd counted them right if
  • she _did_; and said that after she'd about counted her head off for the
  • next three days he judged she'd give it up and offer to kill anybody
  • that wanted her to ever count them any more.
  • So we put the sheet back on the line that night, and stole one out of
  • her closet; and kept on putting it back and stealing it again for a
  • couple of days till she didn't know how many sheets she had any more,
  • and she didn't _care_, and warn't a-going to bullyrag the rest of her
  • soul out about it, and wouldn't count them again not to save her life;
  • she druther die first.
  • So we was all right now, as to the shirt and the sheet and the spoon
  • and the candles, by the help of the calf and the rats and the mixed-up
  • counting; and as to the candlestick, it warn't no consequence, it would
  • blow over by and by.
  • But that pie was a job; we had no end of trouble with that pie. We
  • fixed it up away down in the woods, and cooked it there; and we got it
  • done at last, and very satisfactory, too; but not all in one day; and we
  • had to use up three wash-pans full of flour before we got through, and
  • we got burnt pretty much all over, in places, and eyes put out with
  • the smoke; because, you see, we didn't want nothing but a crust, and we
  • couldn't prop it up right, and she would always cave in. But of course
  • we thought of the right way at last--which was to cook the ladder, too,
  • in the pie. So then we laid in with Jim the second night, and tore
  • up the sheet all in little strings and twisted them together, and long
  • before daylight we had a lovely rope that you could a hung a person
  • with. We let on it took nine months to make it.
  • And in the forenoon we took it down to the woods, but it wouldn't go
  • into the pie. Being made of a whole sheet, that way, there was rope
  • enough for forty pies if we'd a wanted them, and plenty left over
  • for soup, or sausage, or anything you choose. We could a had a whole
  • dinner.
  • But we didn't need it. All we needed was just enough for the pie, and
  • so we throwed the rest away. We didn't cook none of the pies in the
  • wash-pan--afraid the solder would melt; but Uncle Silas he had a noble
  • brass warming-pan which he thought considerable of, because it belonged
  • to one of his ancesters with a long wooden handle that come over from
  • England with William the Conqueror in the Mayflower or one of them early
  • ships and was hid away up garret with a lot of other old pots and things
  • that was valuable, not on account of being any account, because they
  • warn't, but on account of them being relicts, you know, and we snaked
  • her out, private, and took her down there, but she failed on the first
  • pies, because we didn't know how, but she come up smiling on the last
  • one. We took and lined her with dough, and set her in the coals, and
  • loaded her up with rag rope, and put on a dough roof, and shut down the
  • lid, and put hot embers on top, and stood off five foot, with the long
  • handle, cool and comfortable, and in fifteen minutes she turned out a
  • pie that was a satisfaction to look at. But the person that et it would
  • want to fetch a couple of kags of toothpicks along, for if that rope
  • ladder wouldn't cramp him down to business I don't know nothing what I'm
  • talking about, and lay him in enough stomach-ache to last him till next
  • time, too.
  • Nat didn't look when we put the witch pie in Jim's pan; and we put the
  • three tin plates in the bottom of the pan under the vittles; and so Jim
  • got everything all right, and as soon as he was by himself he busted
  • into the pie and hid the rope ladder inside of his straw tick,
  • and scratched some marks on a tin plate and throwed it out of the
  • window-hole.
  • CHAPTER XXXVIII.
  • MAKING them pens was a distressid tough job, and so was the saw; and Jim
  • allowed the inscription was going to be the toughest of all. That's the
  • one which the prisoner has to scrabble on the wall. But he had to have
  • it; Tom said he'd _got_ to; there warn't no case of a state prisoner not
  • scrabbling his inscription to leave behind, and his coat of arms.
  • “Look at Lady Jane Grey,” he says; “look at Gilford Dudley; look at old
  • Northumberland! Why, Huck, s'pose it _is_ considerble trouble?--what
  • you going to do?--how you going to get around it? Jim's _got_ to do his
  • inscription and coat of arms. They all do.”
  • Jim says:
  • “Why, Mars Tom, I hain't got no coat o' arm; I hain't got nuffn but dish
  • yer ole shirt, en you knows I got to keep de journal on dat.”
  • “Oh, you don't understand, Jim; a coat of arms is very different.”
  • “Well,” I says, “Jim's right, anyway, when he says he ain't got no coat
  • of arms, because he hain't.”
  • “I reckon I knowed that,” Tom says, “but you bet he'll have one before
  • he goes out of this--because he's going out _right_, and there ain't
  • going to be no flaws in his record.”
  • So whilst me and Jim filed away at the pens on a brickbat apiece, Jim
  • a-making his'n out of the brass and I making mine out of the spoon,
  • Tom set to work to think out the coat of arms. By and by he said he'd
  • struck so many good ones he didn't hardly know which to take, but there
  • was one which he reckoned he'd decide on. He says:
  • “On the scutcheon we'll have a bend _or_ in the dexter base, a saltire
  • _murrey_ in the fess, with a dog, couchant, for common charge, and under
  • his foot a chain embattled, for slavery, with a chevron _vert_ in a
  • chief engrailed, and three invected lines on a field _azure_, with the
  • nombril points rampant on a dancette indented; crest, a runaway nigger,
  • _sable_, with his bundle over his shoulder on a bar sinister; and a
  • couple of gules for supporters, which is you and me; motto, _Maggiore
  • Fretta, Minore Otto._ Got it out of a book--means the more haste the
  • less speed.”
  • “Geewhillikins,” I says, “but what does the rest of it mean?”
  • “We ain't got no time to bother over that,” he says; “we got to dig in
  • like all git-out.”
  • “Well, anyway,” I says, “what's _some_ of it? What's a fess?”
  • “A fess--a fess is--_you_ don't need to know what a fess is. I'll show
  • him how to make it when he gets to it.”
  • “Shucks, Tom,” I says, “I think you might tell a person. What's a bar
  • sinister?”
  • “Oh, I don't know. But he's got to have it. All the nobility does.”
  • That was just his way. If it didn't suit him to explain a thing to you,
  • he wouldn't do it. You might pump at him a week, it wouldn't make no
  • difference.
  • He'd got all that coat of arms business fixed, so now he started in to
  • finish up the rest of that part of the work, which was to plan out a
  • mournful inscription--said Jim got to have one, like they all done. He
  • made up a lot, and wrote them out on a paper, and read them off, so:
  • 1. Here a captive heart busted. 2. Here a poor prisoner, forsook by
  • the world and friends, fretted his sorrowful life. 3. Here a lonely
  • heart broke, and a worn spirit went to its rest, after thirty-seven
  • years of solitary captivity. 4. Here, homeless and friendless, after
  • thirty-seven years of bitter captivity, perished a noble stranger,
  • natural son of Louis XIV.
  • Tom's voice trembled whilst he was reading them, and he most broke down.
  • When he got done he couldn't no way make up his mind which one for Jim
  • to scrabble on to the wall, they was all so good; but at last he allowed
  • he would let him scrabble them all on. Jim said it would take him a
  • year to scrabble such a lot of truck on to the logs with a nail, and he
  • didn't know how to make letters, besides; but Tom said he would block
  • them out for him, and then he wouldn't have nothing to do but just
  • follow the lines. Then pretty soon he says:
  • “Come to think, the logs ain't a-going to do; they don't have log walls
  • in a dungeon: we got to dig the inscriptions into a rock. We'll fetch
  • a rock.”
  • Jim said the rock was worse than the logs; he said it would take him
  • such a pison long time to dig them into a rock he wouldn't ever get out.
  • But Tom said he would let me help him do it. Then he took a look to
  • see how me and Jim was getting along with the pens. It was most pesky
  • tedious hard work and slow, and didn't give my hands no show to get
  • well of the sores, and we didn't seem to make no headway, hardly; so Tom
  • says:
  • “I know how to fix it. We got to have a rock for the coat of arms and
  • mournful inscriptions, and we can kill two birds with that same rock.
  • There's a gaudy big grindstone down at the mill, and we'll smouch it,
  • and carve the things on it, and file out the pens and the saw on it,
  • too.”
  • It warn't no slouch of an idea; and it warn't no slouch of a grindstone
  • nuther; but we allowed we'd tackle it. It warn't quite midnight yet,
  • so we cleared out for the mill, leaving Jim at work. We smouched the
  • grindstone, and set out to roll her home, but it was a most nation tough
  • job. Sometimes, do what we could, we couldn't keep her from falling
  • over, and she come mighty near mashing us every time. Tom said she was
  • going to get one of us, sure, before we got through. We got her half
  • way; and then we was plumb played out, and most drownded with sweat. We
  • see it warn't no use; we got to go and fetch Jim. So he raised up his
  • bed and slid the chain off of the bed-leg, and wrapt it round and round
  • his neck, and we crawled out through our hole and down there, and Jim
  • and me laid into that grindstone and walked her along like nothing; and
  • Tom superintended. He could out-superintend any boy I ever see. He
  • knowed how to do everything.
  • Our hole was pretty big, but it warn't big enough to get the grindstone
  • through; but Jim he took the pick and soon made it big enough. Then Tom
  • marked out them things on it with the nail, and set Jim to work on them,
  • with the nail for a chisel and an iron bolt from the rubbage in the
  • lean-to for a hammer, and told him to work till the rest of his candle
  • quit on him, and then he could go to bed, and hide the grindstone under
  • his straw tick and sleep on it. Then we helped him fix his chain back
  • on the bed-leg, and was ready for bed ourselves. But Tom thought of
  • something, and says:
  • “You got any spiders in here, Jim?”
  • “No, sah, thanks to goodness I hain't, Mars Tom.”
  • “All right, we'll get you some.”
  • “But bless you, honey, I doan' _want_ none. I's afeard un um. I jis'
  • 's soon have rattlesnakes aroun'.”
  • Tom thought a minute or two, and says:
  • “It's a good idea. And I reckon it's been done. It _must_ a been done;
  • it stands to reason. Yes, it's a prime good idea. Where could you keep
  • it?”
  • “Keep what, Mars Tom?”
  • “Why, a rattlesnake.”
  • “De goodness gracious alive, Mars Tom! Why, if dey was a rattlesnake to
  • come in heah I'd take en bust right out thoo dat log wall, I would, wid
  • my head.”
  • “Why, Jim, you wouldn't be afraid of it after a little. You could tame
  • it.”
  • “_Tame_ it!”
  • “Yes--easy enough. Every animal is grateful for kindness and petting,
  • and they wouldn't _think_ of hurting a person that pets them. Any book
  • will tell you that. You try--that's all I ask; just try for two or three
  • days. Why, you can get him so, in a little while, that he'll love you;
  • and sleep with you; and won't stay away from you a minute; and will let
  • you wrap him round your neck and put his head in your mouth.”
  • “_Please_, Mars Tom--_doan_' talk so! I can't _stan_' it! He'd _let_
  • me shove his head in my mouf--fer a favor, hain't it? I lay he'd wait a
  • pow'ful long time 'fo' I _ast_ him. En mo' en dat, I doan' _want_ him
  • to sleep wid me.”
  • “Jim, don't act so foolish. A prisoner's _got_ to have some kind of a
  • dumb pet, and if a rattlesnake hain't ever been tried, why, there's more
  • glory to be gained in your being the first to ever try it than any other
  • way you could ever think of to save your life.”
  • “Why, Mars Tom, I doan' _want_ no sich glory. Snake take 'n bite
  • Jim's chin off, den _whah_ is de glory? No, sah, I doan' want no sich
  • doin's.”
  • “Blame it, can't you _try_? I only _want_ you to try--you needn't keep
  • it up if it don't work.”
  • “But de trouble all _done_ ef de snake bite me while I's a tryin' him.
  • Mars Tom, I's willin' to tackle mos' anything 'at ain't onreasonable,
  • but ef you en Huck fetches a rattlesnake in heah for me to tame, I's
  • gwyne to _leave_, dat's _shore_.”
  • “Well, then, let it go, let it go, if you're so bull-headed about it.
  • We can get you some garter-snakes, and you can tie some buttons on
  • their tails, and let on they're rattlesnakes, and I reckon that 'll have
  • to do.”
  • “I k'n stan' _dem_, Mars Tom, but blame' 'f I couldn' get along widout
  • um, I tell you dat. I never knowed b'fo' 't was so much bother and
  • trouble to be a prisoner.”
  • “Well, it _always_ is when it's done right. You got any rats around
  • here?”
  • “No, sah, I hain't seed none.”
  • “Well, we'll get you some rats.”
  • “Why, Mars Tom, I doan' _want_ no rats. Dey's de dadblamedest creturs
  • to 'sturb a body, en rustle roun' over 'im, en bite his feet, when he's
  • tryin' to sleep, I ever see. No, sah, gimme g'yarter-snakes, 'f I's
  • got to have 'm, but doan' gimme no rats; I hain' got no use f'r um,
  • skasely.”
  • “But, Jim, you _got_ to have 'em--they all do. So don't make no more
  • fuss about it. Prisoners ain't ever without rats. There ain't no
  • instance of it. And they train them, and pet them, and learn them
  • tricks, and they get to be as sociable as flies. But you got to play
  • music to them. You got anything to play music on?”
  • “I ain' got nuffn but a coase comb en a piece o' paper, en a juice-harp;
  • but I reck'n dey wouldn' take no stock in a juice-harp.”
  • “Yes they would _they_ don't care what kind of music 'tis. A
  • jews-harp's plenty good enough for a rat. All animals like music--in a
  • prison they dote on it. Specially, painful music; and you can't get no
  • other kind out of a jews-harp. It always interests them; they come out
  • to see what's the matter with you. Yes, you're all right; you're fixed
  • very well. You want to set on your bed nights before you go to sleep,
  • and early in the mornings, and play your jews-harp; play 'The Last Link
  • is Broken'--that's the thing that 'll scoop a rat quicker 'n anything
  • else; and when you've played about two minutes you'll see all the rats,
  • and the snakes, and spiders, and things begin to feel worried about you,
  • and come. And they'll just fairly swarm over you, and have a noble good
  • time.”
  • “Yes, _dey_ will, I reck'n, Mars Tom, but what kine er time is _Jim_
  • havin'? Blest if I kin see de pint. But I'll do it ef I got to. I
  • reck'n I better keep de animals satisfied, en not have no trouble in de
  • house.”
  • Tom waited to think it over, and see if there wasn't nothing else; and
  • pretty soon he says:
  • “Oh, there's one thing I forgot. Could you raise a flower here, do you
  • reckon?”
  • “I doan know but maybe I could, Mars Tom; but it's tolable dark in heah,
  • en I ain' got no use f'r no flower, nohow, en she'd be a pow'ful sight
  • o' trouble.”
  • “Well, you try it, anyway. Some other prisoners has done it.”
  • “One er dem big cat-tail-lookin' mullen-stalks would grow in heah, Mars
  • Tom, I reck'n, but she wouldn't be wuth half de trouble she'd coss.”
  • “Don't you believe it. We'll fetch you a little one and you plant it in
  • the corner over there, and raise it. And don't call it mullen, call it
  • Pitchiola--that's its right name when it's in a prison. And you want to
  • water it with your tears.”
  • “Why, I got plenty spring water, Mars Tom.”
  • “You don't _want_ spring water; you want to water it with your tears.
  • It's the way they always do.”
  • “Why, Mars Tom, I lay I kin raise one er dem mullen-stalks twyste wid
  • spring water whiles another man's a _start'n_ one wid tears.”
  • “That ain't the idea. You _got_ to do it with tears.”
  • “She'll die on my han's, Mars Tom, she sholy will; kase I doan' skasely
  • ever cry.”
  • So Tom was stumped. But he studied it over, and then said Jim would
  • have to worry along the best he could with an onion. He promised
  • he would go to the nigger cabins and drop one, private, in Jim's
  • coffee-pot, in the morning. Jim said he would “jis' 's soon have
  • tobacker in his coffee;” and found so much fault with it, and with the
  • work and bother of raising the mullen, and jews-harping the rats, and
  • petting and flattering up the snakes and spiders and things, on top of
  • all the other work he had to do on pens, and inscriptions, and journals,
  • and things, which made it more trouble and worry and responsibility to
  • be a prisoner than anything he ever undertook, that Tom most lost all
  • patience with him; and said he was just loadened down with more gaudier
  • chances than a prisoner ever had in the world to make a name for
  • himself, and yet he didn't know enough to appreciate them, and they was
  • just about wasted on him. So Jim he was sorry, and said he wouldn't
  • behave so no more, and then me and Tom shoved for bed.
  • CHAPTER XXXIX.
  • IN the morning we went up to the village and bought a wire rat-trap and
  • fetched it down, and unstopped the best rat-hole, and in about an hour
  • we had fifteen of the bulliest kind of ones; and then we took it and put
  • it in a safe place under Aunt Sally's bed. But while we was gone for
  • spiders little Thomas Franklin Benjamin Jefferson Elexander Phelps found
  • it there, and opened the door of it to see if the rats would come out,
  • and they did; and Aunt Sally she come in, and when we got back she was
  • a-standing on top of the bed raising Cain, and the rats was doing what
  • they could to keep off the dull times for her. So she took and dusted
  • us both with the hickry, and we was as much as two hours catching
  • another fifteen or sixteen, drat that meddlesome cub, and they warn't
  • the likeliest, nuther, because the first haul was the pick of the flock.
  • I never see a likelier lot of rats than what that first haul was.
  • We got a splendid stock of sorted spiders, and bugs, and frogs, and
  • caterpillars, and one thing or another; and we like to got a hornet's
  • nest, but we didn't. The family was at home. We didn't give it right
  • up, but stayed with them as long as we could; because we allowed we'd
  • tire them out or they'd got to tire us out, and they done it. Then we
  • got allycumpain and rubbed on the places, and was pretty near all right
  • again, but couldn't set down convenient. And so we went for the snakes,
  • and grabbed a couple of dozen garters and house-snakes, and put them in
  • a bag, and put it in our room, and by that time it was supper-time, and
  • a rattling good honest day's work: and hungry?--oh, no, I reckon not!
  • And there warn't a blessed snake up there when we went back--we didn't
  • half tie the sack, and they worked out somehow, and left. But it didn't
  • matter much, because they was still on the premises somewheres. So
  • we judged we could get some of them again. No, there warn't no real
  • scarcity of snakes about the house for a considerable spell. You'd see
  • them dripping from the rafters and places every now and then; and they
  • generly landed in your plate, or down the back of your neck, and most
  • of the time where you didn't want them. Well, they was handsome and
  • striped, and there warn't no harm in a million of them; but that never
  • made no difference to Aunt Sally; she despised snakes, be the breed what
  • they might, and she couldn't stand them no way you could fix it; and
  • every time one of them flopped down on her, it didn't make no difference
  • what she was doing, she would just lay that work down and light out. I
  • never see such a woman. And you could hear her whoop to Jericho. You
  • couldn't get her to take a-holt of one of them with the tongs. And if
  • she turned over and found one in bed she would scramble out and lift a
  • howl that you would think the house was afire. She disturbed the old
  • man so that he said he could most wish there hadn't ever been no snakes
  • created. Why, after every last snake had been gone clear out of the
  • house for as much as a week Aunt Sally warn't over it yet; she warn't
  • near over it; when she was setting thinking about something you could
  • touch her on the back of her neck with a feather and she would jump
  • right out of her stockings. It was very curious. But Tom said all
  • women was just so. He said they was made that way for some reason or
  • other.
  • We got a licking every time one of our snakes come in her way, and she
  • allowed these lickings warn't nothing to what she would do if we ever
  • loaded up the place again with them. I didn't mind the lickings,
  • because they didn't amount to nothing; but I minded the trouble we
  • had to lay in another lot. But we got them laid in, and all the other
  • things; and you never see a cabin as blithesome as Jim's was when they'd
  • all swarm out for music and go for him. Jim didn't like the spiders,
  • and the spiders didn't like Jim; and so they'd lay for him, and make it
  • mighty warm for him. And he said that between the rats and the snakes
  • and the grindstone there warn't no room in bed for him, skasely; and
  • when there was, a body couldn't sleep, it was so lively, and it was
  • always lively, he said, because _they_ never all slept at one time, but
  • took turn about, so when the snakes was asleep the rats was on deck, and
  • when the rats turned in the snakes come on watch, so he always had one
  • gang under him, in his way, and t'other gang having a circus over him,
  • and if he got up to hunt a new place the spiders would take a chance at
  • him as he crossed over. He said if he ever got out this time he wouldn't
  • ever be a prisoner again, not for a salary.
  • Well, by the end of three weeks everything was in pretty good shape.
  • The shirt was sent in early, in a pie, and every time a rat bit Jim he
  • would get up and write a little in his journal whilst the ink was fresh;
  • the pens was made, the inscriptions and so on was all carved on the
  • grindstone; the bed-leg was sawed in two, and we had et up the sawdust,
  • and it give us a most amazing stomach-ache. We reckoned we was all
  • going to die, but didn't. It was the most undigestible sawdust I ever
  • see; and Tom said the same.
  • But as I was saying, we'd got all the work done now, at last; and we was
  • all pretty much fagged out, too, but mainly Jim. The old man had wrote
  • a couple of times to the plantation below Orleans to come and get their
  • runaway nigger, but hadn't got no answer, because there warn't no such
  • plantation; so he allowed he would advertise Jim in the St. Louis and
  • New Orleans papers; and when he mentioned the St. Louis ones it give me
  • the cold shivers, and I see we hadn't no time to lose. So Tom said, now
  • for the nonnamous letters.
  • “What's them?” I says.
  • “Warnings to the people that something is up. Sometimes it's done one
  • way, sometimes another. But there's always somebody spying around that
  • gives notice to the governor of the castle. When Louis XVI. was going
  • to light out of the Tooleries, a servant-girl done it. It's a very good
  • way, and so is the nonnamous letters. We'll use them both. And it's
  • usual for the prisoner's mother to change clothes with him, and she
  • stays in, and he slides out in her clothes. We'll do that, too.”
  • “But looky here, Tom, what do we want to _warn_ anybody for that
  • something's up? Let them find it out for themselves--it's their
  • lookout.”
  • “Yes, I know; but you can't depend on them. It's the way they've acted
  • from the very start--left us to do _everything_. They're so confiding
  • and mullet-headed they don't take notice of nothing at all. So if we
  • don't _give_ them notice there won't be nobody nor nothing to interfere
  • with us, and so after all our hard work and trouble this escape 'll go
  • off perfectly flat; won't amount to nothing--won't be nothing _to_ it.”
  • “Well, as for me, Tom, that's the way I'd like.”
  • “Shucks!” he says, and looked disgusted. So I says:
  • “But I ain't going to make no complaint. Any way that suits you suits
  • me. What you going to do about the servant-girl?”
  • “You'll be her. You slide in, in the middle of the night, and hook that
  • yaller girl's frock.”
  • “Why, Tom, that 'll make trouble next morning; because, of course, she
  • prob'bly hain't got any but that one.”
  • “I know; but you don't want it but fifteen minutes, to carry the
  • nonnamous letter and shove it under the front door.”
  • “All right, then, I'll do it; but I could carry it just as handy in my
  • own togs.”
  • “You wouldn't look like a servant-girl _then_, would you?”
  • “No, but there won't be nobody to see what I look like, _anyway_.”
  • “That ain't got nothing to do with it. The thing for us to do is just
  • to do our _duty_, and not worry about whether anybody _sees_ us do it or
  • not. Hain't you got no principle at all?”
  • “All right, I ain't saying nothing; I'm the servant-girl. Who's Jim's
  • mother?”
  • “I'm his mother. I'll hook a gown from Aunt Sally.”
  • “Well, then, you'll have to stay in the cabin when me and Jim leaves.”
  • “Not much. I'll stuff Jim's clothes full of straw and lay it on his bed
  • to represent his mother in disguise, and Jim 'll take the nigger woman's
  • gown off of me and wear it, and we'll all evade together. When a
  • prisoner of style escapes it's called an evasion. It's always called
  • so when a king escapes, f'rinstance. And the same with a king's son;
  • it don't make no difference whether he's a natural one or an unnatural
  • one.”
  • So Tom he wrote the nonnamous letter, and I smouched the yaller wench's
  • frock that night, and put it on, and shoved it under the front door, the
  • way Tom told me to. It said:
  • Beware. Trouble is brewing. Keep a sharp lookout. _Unknown_ _Friend_.
  • Next night we stuck a picture, which Tom drawed in blood, of a skull and
  • crossbones on the front door; and next night another one of a coffin on
  • the back door. I never see a family in such a sweat. They couldn't a
  • been worse scared if the place had a been full of ghosts laying for them
  • behind everything and under the beds and shivering through the air. If
  • a door banged, Aunt Sally she jumped and said “ouch!” if anything fell,
  • she jumped and said “ouch!” if you happened to touch her, when she
  • warn't noticing, she done the same; she couldn't face noway and be
  • satisfied, because she allowed there was something behind her every
  • time--so she was always a-whirling around sudden, and saying “ouch,” and
  • before she'd got two-thirds around she'd whirl back again, and say it
  • again; and she was afraid to go to bed, but she dasn't set up. So the
  • thing was working very well, Tom said; he said he never see a thing work
  • more satisfactory. He said it showed it was done right.
  • So he said, now for the grand bulge! So the very next morning at the
  • streak of dawn we got another letter ready, and was wondering what we
  • better do with it, because we heard them say at supper they was going
  • to have a nigger on watch at both doors all night. Tom he went down the
  • lightning-rod to spy around; and the nigger at the back door was asleep,
  • and he stuck it in the back of his neck and come back. This letter
  • said:
  • Don't betray me, I wish to be your friend. There is a desprate gang of
  • cutthroats from over in the Indian Territory going to steal your runaway
  • nigger to-night, and they have been trying to scare you so as you will
  • stay in the house and not bother them. I am one of the gang, but have
  • got religgion and wish to quit it and lead an honest life again, and
  • will betray the helish design. They will sneak down from northards,
  • along the fence, at midnight exact, with a false key, and go in the
  • nigger's cabin to get him. I am to be off a piece and blow a tin horn
  • if I see any danger; but stead of that I will _baa_ like a sheep soon as
  • they get in and not blow at all; then whilst they are getting his
  • chains loose, you slip there and lock them in, and can kill them at your
  • leasure. Don't do anything but just the way I am telling you, if you do
  • they will suspicion something and raise whoop-jamboreehoo. I do not wish
  • any reward but to know I have done the right thing. _Unknown Friend._
  • CHAPTER XL.
  • WE was feeling pretty good after breakfast, and took my canoe and went
  • over the river a-fishing, with a lunch, and had a good time, and took a
  • look at the raft and found her all right, and got home late to supper,
  • and found them in such a sweat and worry they didn't know which end they
  • was standing on, and made us go right off to bed the minute we was done
  • supper, and wouldn't tell us what the trouble was, and never let on a
  • word about the new letter, but didn't need to, because we knowed as much
  • about it as anybody did, and as soon as we was half up stairs and her
  • back was turned we slid for the cellar cupboard and loaded up a good
  • lunch and took it up to our room and went to bed, and got up about
  • half-past eleven, and Tom put on Aunt Sally's dress that he stole and
  • was going to start with the lunch, but says:
  • “Where's the butter?”
  • “I laid out a hunk of it,” I says, “on a piece of a corn-pone.”
  • “Well, you _left_ it laid out, then--it ain't here.”
  • “We can get along without it,” I says.
  • “We can get along _with_ it, too,” he says; “just you slide down cellar
  • and fetch it. And then mosey right down the lightning-rod and come
  • along. I'll go and stuff the straw into Jim's clothes to represent his
  • mother in disguise, and be ready to _baa_ like a sheep and shove soon as
  • you get there.”
  • So out he went, and down cellar went I. The hunk of butter, big as
  • a person's fist, was where I had left it, so I took up the slab of
  • corn-pone with it on, and blowed out my light, and started up stairs
  • very stealthy, and got up to the main floor all right, but here comes
  • Aunt Sally with a candle, and I clapped the truck in my hat, and clapped
  • my hat on my head, and the next second she see me; and she says:
  • “You been down cellar?”
  • “Yes'm.”
  • “What you been doing down there?”
  • “Noth'n.”
  • “_Noth'n!_”
  • “No'm.”
  • “Well, then, what possessed you to go down there this time of night?”
  • “I don't know 'm.”
  • “You don't _know_? Don't answer me that way. Tom, I want to know what
  • you been _doing_ down there.”
  • “I hain't been doing a single thing, Aunt Sally, I hope to gracious if I
  • have.”
  • I reckoned she'd let me go now, and as a generl thing she would; but I
  • s'pose there was so many strange things going on she was just in a sweat
  • about every little thing that warn't yard-stick straight; so she says,
  • very decided:
  • “You just march into that setting-room and stay there till I come. You
  • been up to something you no business to, and I lay I'll find out what it
  • is before I'M done with you.”
  • So she went away as I opened the door and walked into the setting-room.
  • My, but there was a crowd there! Fifteen farmers, and every one of them
  • had a gun. I was most powerful sick, and slunk to a chair and set down.
  • They was setting around, some of them talking a little, in a low voice,
  • and all of them fidgety and uneasy, but trying to look like they warn't;
  • but I knowed they was, because they was always taking off their hats,
  • and putting them on, and scratching their heads, and changing their
  • seats, and fumbling with their buttons. I warn't easy myself, but I
  • didn't take my hat off, all the same.
  • I did wish Aunt Sally would come, and get done with me, and lick me, if
  • she wanted to, and let me get away and tell Tom how we'd overdone this
  • thing, and what a thundering hornet's-nest we'd got ourselves into, so
  • we could stop fooling around straight off, and clear out with Jim before
  • these rips got out of patience and come for us.
  • At last she come and begun to ask me questions, but I _couldn't_ answer
  • them straight, I didn't know which end of me was up; because these men
  • was in such a fidget now that some was wanting to start right NOW and
  • lay for them desperadoes, and saying it warn't but a few minutes to
  • midnight; and others was trying to get them to hold on and wait for the
  • sheep-signal; and here was Aunty pegging away at the questions, and
  • me a-shaking all over and ready to sink down in my tracks I was
  • that scared; and the place getting hotter and hotter, and the butter
  • beginning to melt and run down my neck and behind my ears; and pretty
  • soon, when one of them says, “I'M for going and getting in the cabin
  • _first_ and right _now_, and catching them when they come,” I most
  • dropped; and a streak of butter come a-trickling down my forehead, and
  • Aunt Sally she see it, and turns white as a sheet, and says:
  • “For the land's sake, what _is_ the matter with the child? He's got the
  • brain-fever as shore as you're born, and they're oozing out!”
  • And everybody runs to see, and she snatches off my hat, and out comes
  • the bread and what was left of the butter, and she grabbed me, and
  • hugged me, and says:
  • “Oh, what a turn you did give me! and how glad and grateful I am it
  • ain't no worse; for luck's against us, and it never rains but it pours,
  • and when I see that truck I thought we'd lost you, for I knowed by
  • the color and all it was just like your brains would be if--Dear,
  • dear, whyd'nt you _tell_ me that was what you'd been down there for, I
  • wouldn't a cared. Now cler out to bed, and don't lemme see no more of
  • you till morning!”
  • I was up stairs in a second, and down the lightning-rod in another one,
  • and shinning through the dark for the lean-to. I couldn't hardly get my
  • words out, I was so anxious; but I told Tom as quick as I could we must
  • jump for it now, and not a minute to lose--the house full of men, yonder,
  • with guns!
  • His eyes just blazed; and he says:
  • “No!--is that so? _ain't_ it bully! Why, Huck, if it was to do over
  • again, I bet I could fetch two hundred! If we could put it off till--”
  • “Hurry! _Hurry_!” I says. “Where's Jim?”
  • “Right at your elbow; if you reach out your arm you can touch him.
  • He's dressed, and everything's ready. Now we'll slide out and give the
  • sheep-signal.”
  • But then we heard the tramp of men coming to the door, and heard them
  • begin to fumble with the pad-lock, and heard a man say:
  • “I _told_ you we'd be too soon; they haven't come--the door is locked.
  • Here, I'll lock some of you into the cabin, and you lay for 'em in the
  • dark and kill 'em when they come; and the rest scatter around a piece,
  • and listen if you can hear 'em coming.”
  • So in they come, but couldn't see us in the dark, and most trod on
  • us whilst we was hustling to get under the bed. But we got under all
  • right, and out through the hole, swift but soft--Jim first, me next,
  • and Tom last, which was according to Tom's orders. Now we was in the
  • lean-to, and heard trampings close by outside. So we crept to the door,
  • and Tom stopped us there and put his eye to the crack, but couldn't make
  • out nothing, it was so dark; and whispered and said he would listen
  • for the steps to get further, and when he nudged us Jim must glide out
  • first, and him last. So he set his ear to the crack and listened, and
  • listened, and listened, and the steps a-scraping around out there all
  • the time; and at last he nudged us, and we slid out, and stooped down,
  • not breathing, and not making the least noise, and slipped stealthy
  • towards the fence in Injun file, and got to it all right, and me and Jim
  • over it; but Tom's britches catched fast on a splinter on the top
  • rail, and then he hear the steps coming, so he had to pull loose, which
  • snapped the splinter and made a noise; and as he dropped in our tracks
  • and started somebody sings out:
  • “Who's that? Answer, or I'll shoot!”
  • But we didn't answer; we just unfurled our heels and shoved. Then there
  • was a rush, and a _Bang, Bang, Bang!_ and the bullets fairly whizzed
  • around us! We heard them sing out:
  • “Here they are! They've broke for the river! After 'em, boys, and turn
  • loose the dogs!”
  • So here they come, full tilt. We could hear them because they wore
  • boots and yelled, but we didn't wear no boots and didn't yell. We was
  • in the path to the mill; and when they got pretty close on to us we
  • dodged into the bush and let them go by, and then dropped in behind
  • them. They'd had all the dogs shut up, so they wouldn't scare off the
  • robbers; but by this time somebody had let them loose, and here they
  • come, making powwow enough for a million; but they was our dogs; so we
  • stopped in our tracks till they catched up; and when they see it warn't
  • nobody but us, and no excitement to offer them, they only just said
  • howdy, and tore right ahead towards the shouting and clattering; and
  • then we up-steam again, and whizzed along after them till we was nearly
  • to the mill, and then struck up through the bush to where my canoe was
  • tied, and hopped in and pulled for dear life towards the middle of the
  • river, but didn't make no more noise than we was obleeged to. Then we
  • struck out, easy and comfortable, for the island where my raft was; and
  • we could hear them yelling and barking at each other all up and down the
  • bank, till we was so far away the sounds got dim and died out. And when
  • we stepped on to the raft I says:
  • “_Now_, old Jim, you're a free man again, and I bet you won't ever be a
  • slave no more.”
  • “En a mighty good job it wuz, too, Huck. It 'uz planned beautiful, en
  • it 'uz done beautiful; en dey ain't _nobody_ kin git up a plan dat's mo'
  • mixed-up en splendid den what dat one wuz.”
  • We was all glad as we could be, but Tom was the gladdest of all because
  • he had a bullet in the calf of his leg.
  • When me and Jim heard that we didn't feel so brash as what we did
  • before. It was hurting him considerable, and bleeding; so we laid him in
  • the wigwam and tore up one of the duke's shirts for to bandage him, but
  • he says:
  • “Gimme the rags; I can do it myself. Don't stop now; don't fool around
  • here, and the evasion booming along so handsome; man the sweeps, and set
  • her loose! Boys, we done it elegant!--'deed we did. I wish _we'd_ a
  • had the handling of Louis XVI., there wouldn't a been no 'Son of Saint
  • Louis, ascend to heaven!' wrote down in _his_ biography; no, sir, we'd
  • a whooped him over the _border_--that's what we'd a done with _him_--and
  • done it just as slick as nothing at all, too. Man the sweeps--man the
  • sweeps!”
  • But me and Jim was consulting--and thinking. And after we'd thought a
  • minute, I says:
  • “Say it, Jim.”
  • So he says:
  • “Well, den, dis is de way it look to me, Huck. Ef it wuz _him_ dat 'uz
  • bein' sot free, en one er de boys wuz to git shot, would he say, 'Go on
  • en save me, nemmine 'bout a doctor f'r to save dis one?' Is dat like
  • Mars Tom Sawyer? Would he say dat? You _bet_ he wouldn't! _well_,
  • den, is _Jim_ gywne to say it? No, sah--I doan' budge a step out'n dis
  • place 'dout a _doctor_, not if it's forty year!”
  • I knowed he was white inside, and I reckoned he'd say what he did say--so
  • it was all right now, and I told Tom I was a-going for a doctor.
  • He raised considerable row about it, but me and Jim stuck to it and
  • wouldn't budge; so he was for crawling out and setting the raft loose
  • himself; but we wouldn't let him. Then he give us a piece of his mind,
  • but it didn't do no good.
  • So when he sees me getting the canoe ready, he says:
  • “Well, then, if you're bound to go, I'll tell you the way to do when you
  • get to the village. Shut the door and blindfold the doctor tight and
  • fast, and make him swear to be silent as the grave, and put a purse
  • full of gold in his hand, and then take and lead him all around the
  • back alleys and everywheres in the dark, and then fetch him here in the
  • canoe, in a roundabout way amongst the islands, and search him and take
  • his chalk away from him, and don't give it back to him till you get him
  • back to the village, or else he will chalk this raft so he can find it
  • again. It's the way they all do.”
  • So I said I would, and left, and Jim was to hide in the woods when he
  • see the doctor coming till he was gone again.
  • CHAPTER XLI.
  • THE doctor was an old man; a very nice, kind-looking old man when I got
  • him up. I told him me and my brother was over on Spanish Island hunting
  • yesterday afternoon, and camped on a piece of a raft we found, and about
  • midnight he must a kicked his gun in his dreams, for it went off and
  • shot him in the leg, and we wanted him to go over there and fix it and
  • not say nothing about it, nor let anybody know, because we wanted to
  • come home this evening and surprise the folks.
  • “Who is your folks?” he says.
  • “The Phelpses, down yonder.”
  • “Oh,” he says. And after a minute, he says:
  • “How'd you say he got shot?”
  • “He had a dream,” I says, “and it shot him.”
  • “Singular dream,” he says.
  • So he lit up his lantern, and got his saddle-bags, and we started. But
  • when he sees the canoe he didn't like the look of her--said she was big
  • enough for one, but didn't look pretty safe for two. I says:
  • “Oh, you needn't be afeard, sir, she carried the three of us easy
  • enough.”
  • “What three?”
  • “Why, me and Sid, and--and--and _the guns_; that's what I mean.”
  • “Oh,” he says.
  • But he put his foot on the gunnel and rocked her, and shook his head,
  • and said he reckoned he'd look around for a bigger one. But they was
  • all locked and chained; so he took my canoe, and said for me to wait
  • till he come back, or I could hunt around further, or maybe I better
  • go down home and get them ready for the surprise if I wanted to. But
  • I said I didn't; so I told him just how to find the raft, and then he
  • started.
  • I struck an idea pretty soon. I says to myself, spos'n he can't fix
  • that leg just in three shakes of a sheep's tail, as the saying is?
  • spos'n it takes him three or four days? What are we going to do?--lay
  • around there till he lets the cat out of the bag? No, sir; I know what
  • _I'll_ do. I'll wait, and when he comes back if he says he's got to
  • go any more I'll get down there, too, if I swim; and we'll take and tie
  • him, and keep him, and shove out down the river; and when Tom's done
  • with him we'll give him what it's worth, or all we got, and then let him
  • get ashore.
  • So then I crept into a lumber-pile to get some sleep; and next time I
  • waked up the sun was away up over my head! I shot out and went for the
  • doctor's house, but they told me he'd gone away in the night some time
  • or other, and warn't back yet. Well, thinks I, that looks powerful bad
  • for Tom, and I'll dig out for the island right off. So away I shoved,
  • and turned the corner, and nearly rammed my head into Uncle Silas's
  • stomach! He says:
  • “Why, _Tom!_ Where you been all this time, you rascal?”
  • “I hain't been nowheres,” I says, “only just hunting for the runaway
  • nigger--me and Sid.”
  • “Why, where ever did you go?” he says. “Your aunt's been mighty
  • uneasy.”
  • “She needn't,” I says, “because we was all right. We followed the men
  • and the dogs, but they outrun us, and we lost them; but we thought we
  • heard them on the water, so we got a canoe and took out after them and
  • crossed over, but couldn't find nothing of them; so we cruised along
  • up-shore till we got kind of tired and beat out; and tied up the canoe
  • and went to sleep, and never waked up till about an hour ago; then we
  • paddled over here to hear the news, and Sid's at the post-office to see
  • what he can hear, and I'm a-branching out to get something to eat for
  • us, and then we're going home.”
  • So then we went to the post-office to get “Sid”; but just as I
  • suspicioned, he warn't there; so the old man he got a letter out of the
  • office, and we waited awhile longer, but Sid didn't come; so the old man
  • said, come along, let Sid foot it home, or canoe it, when he got done
  • fooling around--but we would ride. I couldn't get him to let me stay
  • and wait for Sid; and he said there warn't no use in it, and I must come
  • along, and let Aunt Sally see we was all right.
  • When we got home Aunt Sally was that glad to see me she laughed and
  • cried both, and hugged me, and give me one of them lickings of hern that
  • don't amount to shucks, and said she'd serve Sid the same when he come.
  • And the place was plum full of farmers and farmers' wives, to dinner;
  • and such another clack a body never heard. Old Mrs. Hotchkiss was the
  • worst; her tongue was a-going all the time. She says:
  • “Well, Sister Phelps, I've ransacked that-air cabin over, an' I b'lieve
  • the nigger was crazy. I says to Sister Damrell--didn't I, Sister
  • Damrell?--s'I, he's crazy, s'I--them's the very words I said. You all
  • hearn me: he's crazy, s'I; everything shows it, s'I. Look at that-air
  • grindstone, s'I; want to tell _me_'t any cretur 't's in his right mind
  • 's a goin' to scrabble all them crazy things onto a grindstone, s'I?
  • Here sich 'n' sich a person busted his heart; 'n' here so 'n' so
  • pegged along for thirty-seven year, 'n' all that--natcherl son o' Louis
  • somebody, 'n' sich everlast'n rubbage. He's plumb crazy, s'I; it's what
  • I says in the fust place, it's what I says in the middle, 'n' it's what
  • I says last 'n' all the time--the nigger's crazy--crazy 's Nebokoodneezer,
  • s'I.”
  • “An' look at that-air ladder made out'n rags, Sister Hotchkiss,” says
  • old Mrs. Damrell; “what in the name o' goodness _could_ he ever want
  • of--”
  • “The very words I was a-sayin' no longer ago th'n this minute to Sister
  • Utterback, 'n' she'll tell you so herself. Sh-she, look at that-air rag
  • ladder, sh-she; 'n' s'I, yes, _look_ at it, s'I--what _could_ he a-wanted
  • of it, s'I. Sh-she, Sister Hotchkiss, sh-she--”
  • “But how in the nation'd they ever _git_ that grindstone _in_ there,
  • _anyway_? 'n' who dug that-air _hole_? 'n' who--”
  • “My very _words_, Brer Penrod! I was a-sayin'--pass that-air sasser o'
  • m'lasses, won't ye?--I was a-sayin' to Sister Dunlap, jist this minute,
  • how _did_ they git that grindstone in there, s'I. Without _help_, mind
  • you--'thout _help_! _that's_ wher 'tis. Don't tell _me_, s'I; there
  • _wuz_ help, s'I; 'n' ther' wuz a _plenty_ help, too, s'I; ther's ben a
  • _dozen_ a-helpin' that nigger, 'n' I lay I'd skin every last nigger on
  • this place but _I'd_ find out who done it, s'I; 'n' moreover, s'I--”
  • “A _dozen_ says you!--_forty_ couldn't a done every thing that's been
  • done. Look at them case-knife saws and things, how tedious they've been
  • made; look at that bed-leg sawed off with 'm, a week's work for six men;
  • look at that nigger made out'n straw on the bed; and look at--”
  • “You may _well_ say it, Brer Hightower! It's jist as I was a-sayin'
  • to Brer Phelps, his own self. S'e, what do _you_ think of it, Sister
  • Hotchkiss, s'e? Think o' what, Brer Phelps, s'I? Think o' that bed-leg
  • sawed off that a way, s'e? _think_ of it, s'I? I lay it never sawed
  • _itself_ off, s'I--somebody _sawed_ it, s'I; that's my opinion, take it
  • or leave it, it mayn't be no 'count, s'I, but sich as 't is, it's my
  • opinion, s'I, 'n' if any body k'n start a better one, s'I, let him _do_
  • it, s'I, that's all. I says to Sister Dunlap, s'I--”
  • “Why, dog my cats, they must a ben a house-full o' niggers in there
  • every night for four weeks to a done all that work, Sister Phelps. Look
  • at that shirt--every last inch of it kivered over with secret African
  • writ'n done with blood! Must a ben a raft uv 'm at it right along, all
  • the time, amost. Why, I'd give two dollars to have it read to me; 'n'
  • as for the niggers that wrote it, I 'low I'd take 'n' lash 'm t'll--”
  • “People to _help_ him, Brother Marples! Well, I reckon you'd _think_
  • so if you'd a been in this house for a while back. Why, they've stole
  • everything they could lay their hands on--and we a-watching all the time,
  • mind you. They stole that shirt right off o' the line! and as for that
  • sheet they made the rag ladder out of, ther' ain't no telling how
  • many times they _didn't_ steal that; and flour, and candles, and
  • candlesticks, and spoons, and the old warming-pan, and most a thousand
  • things that I disremember now, and my new calico dress; and me and
  • Silas and my Sid and Tom on the constant watch day _and_ night, as I was
  • a-telling you, and not a one of us could catch hide nor hair nor sight
  • nor sound of them; and here at the last minute, lo and behold you, they
  • slides right in under our noses and fools us, and not only fools _us_
  • but the Injun Territory robbers too, and actuly gets _away_ with that
  • nigger safe and sound, and that with sixteen men and twenty-two dogs
  • right on their very heels at that very time! I tell you, it just bangs
  • anything I ever _heard_ of. Why, _sperits_ couldn't a done better and
  • been no smarter. And I reckon they must a _been_ sperits--because, _you_
  • know our dogs, and ther' ain't no better; well, them dogs never even got
  • on the _track_ of 'm once! You explain _that_ to me if you can!--_any_
  • of you!”
  • “Well, it does beat--”
  • “Laws alive, I never--”
  • “So help me, I wouldn't a be--”
  • “_House_-thieves as well as--”
  • “Goodnessgracioussakes, I'd a ben afeard to live in sich a--”
  • “'Fraid to _live_!--why, I was that scared I dasn't hardly go to bed, or
  • get up, or lay down, or _set_ down, Sister Ridgeway. Why, they'd steal
  • the very--why, goodness sakes, you can guess what kind of a fluster I was
  • in by the time midnight come last night. I hope to gracious if I warn't
  • afraid they'd steal some o' the family! I was just to that pass I
  • didn't have no reasoning faculties no more. It looks foolish enough
  • _now_, in the daytime; but I says to myself, there's my two poor boys
  • asleep, 'way up stairs in that lonesome room, and I declare to goodness
  • I was that uneasy 't I crep' up there and locked 'em in! I _did_. And
  • anybody would. Because, you know, when you get scared that way, and it
  • keeps running on, and getting worse and worse all the time, and your
  • wits gets to addling, and you get to doing all sorts o' wild things,
  • and by and by you think to yourself, spos'n I was a boy, and was away up
  • there, and the door ain't locked, and you--” She stopped, looking kind
  • of wondering, and then she turned her head around slow, and when her eye
  • lit on me--I got up and took a walk.
  • Says I to myself, I can explain better how we come to not be in that
  • room this morning if I go out to one side and study over it a little.
  • So I done it. But I dasn't go fur, or she'd a sent for me. And when
  • it was late in the day the people all went, and then I come in and
  • told her the noise and shooting waked up me and “Sid,” and the door was
  • locked, and we wanted to see the fun, so we went down the lightning-rod,
  • and both of us got hurt a little, and we didn't never want to try _that_
  • no more. And then I went on and told her all what I told Uncle Silas
  • before; and then she said she'd forgive us, and maybe it was all right
  • enough anyway, and about what a body might expect of boys, for all boys
  • was a pretty harum-scarum lot as fur as she could see; and so, as long
  • as no harm hadn't come of it, she judged she better put in her time
  • being grateful we was alive and well and she had us still, stead of
  • fretting over what was past and done. So then she kissed me, and patted
  • me on the head, and dropped into a kind of a brown study; and pretty
  • soon jumps up, and says:
  • “Why, lawsamercy, it's most night, and Sid not come yet! What _has_
  • become of that boy?”
  • I see my chance; so I skips up and says:
  • “I'll run right up to town and get him,” I says.
  • “No you won't,” she says. “You'll stay right wher' you are; _one's_
  • enough to be lost at a time. If he ain't here to supper, your uncle 'll
  • go.”
  • Well, he warn't there to supper; so right after supper uncle went.
  • He come back about ten a little bit uneasy; hadn't run across Tom's
  • track. Aunt Sally was a good _deal_ uneasy; but Uncle Silas he said
  • there warn't no occasion to be--boys will be boys, he said, and you'll
  • see this one turn up in the morning all sound and right. So she had
  • to be satisfied. But she said she'd set up for him a while anyway, and
  • keep a light burning so he could see it.
  • And then when I went up to bed she come up with me and fetched her
  • candle, and tucked me in, and mothered me so good I felt mean, and like
  • I couldn't look her in the face; and she set down on the bed and talked
  • with me a long time, and said what a splendid boy Sid was, and didn't
  • seem to want to ever stop talking about him; and kept asking me every
  • now and then if I reckoned he could a got lost, or hurt, or maybe
  • drownded, and might be laying at this minute somewheres suffering or
  • dead, and she not by him to help him, and so the tears would drip down
  • silent, and I would tell her that Sid was all right, and would be home
  • in the morning, sure; and she would squeeze my hand, or maybe kiss me,
  • and tell me to say it again, and keep on saying it, because it done her
  • good, and she was in so much trouble. And when she was going away she
  • looked down in my eyes so steady and gentle, and says:
  • “The door ain't going to be locked, Tom, and there's the window and
  • the rod; but you'll be good, _won't_ you? And you won't go? For _my_
  • sake.”
  • Laws knows I _wanted_ to go bad enough to see about Tom, and was all
  • intending to go; but after that I wouldn't a went, not for kingdoms.
  • But she was on my mind and Tom was on my mind, so I slept very restless.
  • And twice I went down the rod away in the night, and slipped around
  • front, and see her setting there by her candle in the window with her
  • eyes towards the road and the tears in them; and I wished I could do
  • something for her, but I couldn't, only to swear that I wouldn't never
  • do nothing to grieve her any more. And the third time I waked up at
  • dawn, and slid down, and she was there yet, and her candle was most out,
  • and her old gray head was resting on her hand, and she was asleep.
  • CHAPTER XLII.
  • THE old man was uptown again before breakfast, but couldn't get no
  • track of Tom; and both of them set at the table thinking, and not saying
  • nothing, and looking mournful, and their coffee getting cold, and not
  • eating anything. And by and by the old man says:
  • “Did I give you the letter?”
  • “What letter?”
  • “The one I got yesterday out of the post-office.”
  • “No, you didn't give me no letter.”
  • “Well, I must a forgot it.”
  • So he rummaged his pockets, and then went off somewheres where he had
  • laid it down, and fetched it, and give it to her. She says:
  • “Why, it's from St. Petersburg--it's from Sis.”
  • I allowed another walk would do me good; but I couldn't stir. But
  • before she could break it open she dropped it and run--for she see
  • something. And so did I. It was Tom Sawyer on a mattress; and that old
  • doctor; and Jim, in _her_ calico dress, with his hands tied behind him;
  • and a lot of people. I hid the letter behind the first thing that come
  • handy, and rushed. She flung herself at Tom, crying, and says:
  • “Oh, he's dead, he's dead, I know he's dead!”
  • And Tom he turned his head a little, and muttered something or other,
  • which showed he warn't in his right mind; then she flung up her hands,
  • and says:
  • “He's alive, thank God! And that's enough!” and she snatched a kiss of
  • him, and flew for the house to get the bed ready, and scattering orders
  • right and left at the niggers and everybody else, as fast as her tongue
  • could go, every jump of the way.
  • I followed the men to see what they was going to do with Jim; and the
  • old doctor and Uncle Silas followed after Tom into the house. The men
  • was very huffy, and some of them wanted to hang Jim for an example to
  • all the other niggers around there, so they wouldn't be trying to run
  • away like Jim done, and making such a raft of trouble, and keeping a
  • whole family scared most to death for days and nights. But the others
  • said, don't do it, it wouldn't answer at all; he ain't our nigger, and
  • his owner would turn up and make us pay for him, sure. So that cooled
  • them down a little, because the people that's always the most anxious
  • for to hang a nigger that hain't done just right is always the very
  • ones that ain't the most anxious to pay for him when they've got their
  • satisfaction out of him.
  • They cussed Jim considerble, though, and give him a cuff or two side the
  • head once in a while, but Jim never said nothing, and he never let on to
  • know me, and they took him to the same cabin, and put his own clothes
  • on him, and chained him again, and not to no bed-leg this time, but to
  • a big staple drove into the bottom log, and chained his hands, too, and
  • both legs, and said he warn't to have nothing but bread and water to
  • eat after this till his owner come, or he was sold at auction because
  • he didn't come in a certain length of time, and filled up our hole, and
  • said a couple of farmers with guns must stand watch around about the
  • cabin every night, and a bulldog tied to the door in the daytime; and
  • about this time they was through with the job and was tapering off with
  • a kind of generl good-bye cussing, and then the old doctor comes and
  • takes a look, and says:
  • “Don't be no rougher on him than you're obleeged to, because he ain't
  • a bad nigger. When I got to where I found the boy I see I couldn't cut
  • the bullet out without some help, and he warn't in no condition for
  • me to leave to go and get help; and he got a little worse and a little
  • worse, and after a long time he went out of his head, and wouldn't let
  • me come a-nigh him any more, and said if I chalked his raft he'd kill
  • me, and no end of wild foolishness like that, and I see I couldn't do
  • anything at all with him; so I says, I got to have _help_ somehow; and
  • the minute I says it out crawls this nigger from somewheres and says
  • he'll help, and he done it, too, and done it very well. Of course I
  • judged he must be a runaway nigger, and there I _was_! and there I had
  • to stick right straight along all the rest of the day and all night. It
  • was a fix, I tell you! I had a couple of patients with the chills, and
  • of course I'd of liked to run up to town and see them, but I dasn't,
  • because the nigger might get away, and then I'd be to blame; and yet
  • never a skiff come close enough for me to hail. So there I had to stick
  • plumb until daylight this morning; and I never see a nigger that was a
  • better nuss or faithfuller, and yet he was risking his freedom to do it,
  • and was all tired out, too, and I see plain enough he'd been worked
  • main hard lately. I liked the nigger for that; I tell you, gentlemen, a
  • nigger like that is worth a thousand dollars--and kind treatment, too. I
  • had everything I needed, and the boy was doing as well there as he
  • would a done at home--better, maybe, because it was so quiet; but there I
  • _was_, with both of 'm on my hands, and there I had to stick till about
  • dawn this morning; then some men in a skiff come by, and as good luck
  • would have it the nigger was setting by the pallet with his head propped
  • on his knees sound asleep; so I motioned them in quiet, and they slipped
  • up on him and grabbed him and tied him before he knowed what he was
  • about, and we never had no trouble. And the boy being in a kind of a
  • flighty sleep, too, we muffled the oars and hitched the raft on, and
  • towed her over very nice and quiet, and the nigger never made the least
  • row nor said a word from the start. He ain't no bad nigger, gentlemen;
  • that's what I think about him.”
  • Somebody says:
  • “Well, it sounds very good, doctor, I'm obleeged to say.”
  • Then the others softened up a little, too, and I was mighty thankful
  • to that old doctor for doing Jim that good turn; and I was glad it was
  • according to my judgment of him, too; because I thought he had a good
  • heart in him and was a good man the first time I see him. Then they
  • all agreed that Jim had acted very well, and was deserving to have some
  • notice took of it, and reward. So every one of them promised, right out
  • and hearty, that they wouldn't cuss him no more.
  • Then they come out and locked him up. I hoped they was going to say he
  • could have one or two of the chains took off, because they was rotten
  • heavy, or could have meat and greens with his bread and water; but they
  • didn't think of it, and I reckoned it warn't best for me to mix in, but
  • I judged I'd get the doctor's yarn to Aunt Sally somehow or other as
  • soon as I'd got through the breakers that was laying just ahead of
  • me--explanations, I mean, of how I forgot to mention about Sid being shot
  • when I was telling how him and me put in that dratted night paddling
  • around hunting the runaway nigger.
  • But I had plenty time. Aunt Sally she stuck to the sick-room all day
  • and all night, and every time I see Uncle Silas mooning around I dodged
  • him.
  • Next morning I heard Tom was a good deal better, and they said Aunt
  • Sally was gone to get a nap. So I slips to the sick-room, and if I
  • found him awake I reckoned we could put up a yarn for the family that
  • would wash. But he was sleeping, and sleeping very peaceful, too; and
  • pale, not fire-faced the way he was when he come. So I set down and
  • laid for him to wake. In about half an hour Aunt Sally comes gliding
  • in, and there I was, up a stump again! She motioned me to be still, and
  • set down by me, and begun to whisper, and said we could all be joyful
  • now, because all the symptoms was first-rate, and he'd been sleeping
  • like that for ever so long, and looking better and peacefuller all the
  • time, and ten to one he'd wake up in his right mind.
  • So we set there watching, and by and by he stirs a bit, and opened his
  • eyes very natural, and takes a look, and says:
  • “Hello!--why, I'm at _home_! How's that? Where's the raft?”
  • “It's all right,” I says.
  • “And _Jim_?”
  • “The same,” I says, but couldn't say it pretty brash. But he never
  • noticed, but says:
  • “Good! Splendid! _Now_ we're all right and safe! Did you tell Aunty?”
  • I was going to say yes; but she chipped in and says: “About what, Sid?”
  • “Why, about the way the whole thing was done.”
  • “What whole thing?”
  • “Why, _the_ whole thing. There ain't but one; how we set the runaway
  • nigger free--me and Tom.”
  • “Good land! Set the run--What _is_ the child talking about! Dear, dear,
  • out of his head again!”
  • “_No_, I ain't out of my _head_; I know all what I'm talking about. We
  • _did_ set him free--me and Tom. We laid out to do it, and we _done_ it.
  • And we done it elegant, too.” He'd got a start, and she never checked
  • him up, just set and stared and stared, and let him clip along, and
  • I see it warn't no use for _me_ to put in. “Why, Aunty, it cost us a
  • power of work--weeks of it--hours and hours, every night, whilst you was
  • all asleep. And we had to steal candles, and the sheet, and the shirt,
  • and your dress, and spoons, and tin plates, and case-knives, and the
  • warming-pan, and the grindstone, and flour, and just no end of things,
  • and you can't think what work it was to make the saws, and pens, and
  • inscriptions, and one thing or another, and you can't think _half_ the
  • fun it was. And we had to make up the pictures of coffins and things,
  • and nonnamous letters from the robbers, and get up and down the
  • lightning-rod, and dig the hole into the cabin, and made the rope ladder
  • and send it in cooked up in a pie, and send in spoons and things to work
  • with in your apron pocket--”
  • “Mercy sakes!”
  • “--and load up the cabin with rats and snakes and so on, for company for
  • Jim; and then you kept Tom here so long with the butter in his hat that
  • you come near spiling the whole business, because the men come before
  • we was out of the cabin, and we had to rush, and they heard us and let
  • drive at us, and I got my share, and we dodged out of the path and let
  • them go by, and when the dogs come they warn't interested in us, but
  • went for the most noise, and we got our canoe, and made for the
  • raft, and was all safe, and Jim was a free man, and we done it all by
  • ourselves, and _wasn't_ it bully, Aunty!”
  • “Well, I never heard the likes of it in all my born days! So it was
  • _you_, you little rapscallions, that's been making all this trouble,
  • and turned everybody's wits clean inside out and scared us all most to
  • death. I've as good a notion as ever I had in my life to take it out
  • o' you this very minute. To think, here I've been, night after night,
  • a--_you_ just get well once, you young scamp, and I lay I'll tan the Old
  • Harry out o' both o' ye!”
  • But Tom, he _was_ so proud and joyful, he just _couldn't_ hold in,
  • and his tongue just _went_ it--she a-chipping in, and spitting fire all
  • along, and both of them going it at once, like a cat convention; and she
  • says:
  • “_Well_, you get all the enjoyment you can out of it _now_, for mind I
  • tell you if I catch you meddling with him again--”
  • “Meddling with _who_?” Tom says, dropping his smile and looking
  • surprised.
  • “With _who_? Why, the runaway nigger, of course. Who'd you reckon?”
  • Tom looks at me very grave, and says:
  • “Tom, didn't you just tell me he was all right? Hasn't he got away?”
  • “_Him_?” says Aunt Sally; “the runaway nigger? 'Deed he hasn't.
  • They've got him back, safe and sound, and he's in that cabin again,
  • on bread and water, and loaded down with chains, till he's claimed or
  • sold!”
  • Tom rose square up in bed, with his eye hot, and his nostrils opening
  • and shutting like gills, and sings out to me:
  • “They hain't no _right_ to shut him up! SHOVE!--and don't you lose a
  • minute. Turn him loose! he ain't no slave; he's as free as any cretur
  • that walks this earth!”
  • “What _does_ the child mean?”
  • “I mean every word I _say_, Aunt Sally, and if somebody don't go, _I'll_
  • go. I've knowed him all his life, and so has Tom, there. Old Miss
  • Watson died two months ago, and she was ashamed she ever was going to
  • sell him down the river, and _said_ so; and she set him free in her
  • will.”
  • “Then what on earth did _you_ want to set him free for, seeing he was
  • already free?”
  • “Well, that _is_ a question, I must say; and just like women! Why,
  • I wanted the _adventure_ of it; and I'd a waded neck-deep in blood
  • to--goodness alive, _Aunt Polly!_”
  • If she warn't standing right there, just inside the door, looking as
  • sweet and contented as an angel half full of pie, I wish I may never!
  • Aunt Sally jumped for her, and most hugged the head off of her, and
  • cried over her, and I found a good enough place for me under the bed,
  • for it was getting pretty sultry for us, seemed to me. And I peeped
  • out, and in a little while Tom's Aunt Polly shook herself loose and
  • stood there looking across at Tom over her spectacles--kind of grinding
  • him into the earth, you know. And then she says:
  • “Yes, you _better_ turn y'r head away--I would if I was you, Tom.”
  • “Oh, deary me!” says Aunt Sally; “_Is_ he changed so? Why, that ain't
  • _Tom_, it's Sid; Tom's--Tom's--why, where is Tom? He was here a minute
  • ago.”
  • “You mean where's Huck _Finn_--that's what you mean! I reckon I hain't
  • raised such a scamp as my Tom all these years not to know him when I
  • _see_ him. That _would_ be a pretty howdy-do. Come out from under that
  • bed, Huck Finn.”
  • So I done it. But not feeling brash.
  • Aunt Sally she was one of the mixed-upest-looking persons I ever
  • see--except one, and that was Uncle Silas, when he come in and they told
  • it all to him. It kind of made him drunk, as you may say, and he didn't
  • know nothing at all the rest of the day, and preached a prayer-meeting
  • sermon that night that gave him a rattling ruputation, because the
  • oldest man in the world couldn't a understood it. So Tom's Aunt Polly,
  • she told all about who I was, and what; and I had to up and tell how
  • I was in such a tight place that when Mrs. Phelps took me for Tom
  • Sawyer--she chipped in and says, “Oh, go on and call me Aunt Sally, I'm
  • used to it now, and 'tain't no need to change”--that when Aunt Sally took
  • me for Tom Sawyer I had to stand it--there warn't no other way, and
  • I knowed he wouldn't mind, because it would be nuts for him, being
  • a mystery, and he'd make an adventure out of it, and be perfectly
  • satisfied. And so it turned out, and he let on to be Sid, and made
  • things as soft as he could for me.
  • And his Aunt Polly she said Tom was right about old Miss Watson setting
  • Jim free in her will; and so, sure enough, Tom Sawyer had gone and took
  • all that trouble and bother to set a free nigger free! and I couldn't
  • ever understand before, until that minute and that talk, how he _could_
  • help a body set a nigger free with his bringing-up.
  • Well, Aunt Polly she said that when Aunt Sally wrote to her that Tom and
  • _Sid_ had come all right and safe, she says to herself:
  • “Look at that, now! I might have expected it, letting him go off that
  • way without anybody to watch him. So now I got to go and trapse all
  • the way down the river, eleven hundred mile, and find out what that
  • creetur's up to _this_ time, as long as I couldn't seem to get any
  • answer out of you about it.”
  • “Why, I never heard nothing from you,” says Aunt Sally.
  • “Well, I wonder! Why, I wrote you twice to ask you what you could mean
  • by Sid being here.”
  • “Well, I never got 'em, Sis.”
  • Aunt Polly she turns around slow and severe, and says:
  • “You, Tom!”
  • “Well--_what_?” he says, kind of pettish.
  • “Don't you what _me_, you impudent thing--hand out them letters.”
  • “What letters?”
  • “_Them_ letters. I be bound, if I have to take a-holt of you I'll--”
  • “They're in the trunk. There, now. And they're just the same as they
  • was when I got them out of the office. I hain't looked into them, I
  • hain't touched them. But I knowed they'd make trouble, and I thought if
  • you warn't in no hurry, I'd--”
  • “Well, you _do_ need skinning, there ain't no mistake about it. And I
  • wrote another one to tell you I was coming; and I s'pose he--”
  • “No, it come yesterday; I hain't read it yet, but _it's_ all right, I've
  • got that one.”
  • I wanted to offer to bet two dollars she hadn't, but I reckoned maybe it
  • was just as safe to not to. So I never said nothing.
  • CHAPTER THE LAST
  • THE first time I catched Tom private I asked him what was his idea, time
  • of the evasion?--what it was he'd planned to do if the evasion worked all
  • right and he managed to set a nigger free that was already free before?
  • And he said, what he had planned in his head from the start, if we got
  • Jim out all safe, was for us to run him down the river on the raft, and
  • have adventures plumb to the mouth of the river, and then tell him about
  • his being free, and take him back up home on a steamboat, in style,
  • and pay him for his lost time, and write word ahead and get out all
  • the niggers around, and have them waltz him into town with a torchlight
  • procession and a brass-band, and then he would be a hero, and so would
  • we. But I reckoned it was about as well the way it was.
  • We had Jim out of the chains in no time, and when Aunt Polly and Uncle
  • Silas and Aunt Sally found out how good he helped the doctor nurse Tom,
  • they made a heap of fuss over him, and fixed him up prime, and give him
  • all he wanted to eat, and a good time, and nothing to do. And we had
  • him up to the sick-room, and had a high talk; and Tom give Jim forty
  • dollars for being prisoner for us so patient, and doing it up so good,
  • and Jim was pleased most to death, and busted out, and says:
  • “Dah, now, Huck, what I tell you?--what I tell you up dah on Jackson
  • islan'? I _tole_ you I got a hairy breas', en what's de sign un it; en
  • I _tole_ you I ben rich wunst, en gwineter to be rich _agin_; en it's
  • come true; en heah she is! _dah_, now! doan' talk to _me_--signs is
  • _signs_, mine I tell you; en I knowed jis' 's well 'at I 'uz gwineter be
  • rich agin as I's a-stannin' heah dis minute!”
  • And then Tom he talked along and talked along, and says, le's all three
  • slide out of here one of these nights and get an outfit, and go for
  • howling adventures amongst the Injuns, over in the Territory, for a
  • couple of weeks or two; and I says, all right, that suits me, but I
  • ain't got no money for to buy the outfit, and I reckon I couldn't get
  • none from home, because it's likely pap's been back before now, and got
  • it all away from Judge Thatcher and drunk it up.
  • “No, he hain't,” Tom says; “it's all there yet--six thousand dollars
  • and more; and your pap hain't ever been back since. Hadn't when I come
  • away, anyhow.”
  • Jim says, kind of solemn:
  • “He ain't a-comin' back no mo', Huck.”
  • I says:
  • “Why, Jim?”
  • “Nemmine why, Huck--but he ain't comin' back no mo.”
  • But I kept at him; so at last he says:
  • “Doan' you 'member de house dat was float'n down de river, en dey wuz a
  • man in dah, kivered up, en I went in en unkivered him and didn' let you
  • come in? Well, den, you kin git yo' money when you wants it, kase dat
  • wuz him.”
  • Tom's most well now, and got his bullet around his neck on a watch-guard
  • for a watch, and is always seeing what time it is, and so there ain't
  • nothing more to write about, and I am rotten glad of it, because if I'd
  • a knowed what a trouble it was to make a book I wouldn't a tackled it,
  • and ain't a-going to no more. But I reckon I got to light out for the
  • Territory ahead of the rest, because Aunt Sally she's going to adopt me
  • and sivilize me, and I can't stand it. I been there before.
  • THE END. YOURS TRULY, _HUCK FINN_.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Adventures of Huckleberry Finn,
  • Complete, by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUCKLEBERRY FINN ***
  • ***** This file should be named 76-0.htm or 76-0.zip ***** This and
  • all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/7/76/
  • Produced by David Widger. Previous editions produced by Ron Burkey and
  • Internet Wiretap
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be
  • renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
  • owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
  • you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
  • and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in
  • the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
  • distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the
  • PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
  • registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
  • unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
  • for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You
  • may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
  • works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
  • printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public
  • domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
  • especially commercial redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU
  • DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
  • Project Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.net/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree
  • to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
  • terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
  • copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be used
  • on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree
  • to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that
  • you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without
  • complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C
  • below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help
  • preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
  • See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in
  • the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you
  • are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent
  • you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
  • derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
  • Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic
  • works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with
  • the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name
  • associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
  • agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached
  • full Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with
  • others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing
  • or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  • no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
  • it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with
  • the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work,
  • you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through
  • 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute
  • this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other
  • than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
  • version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
  • (www.gutenberg.net), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
  • to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
  • of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
  • Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the full
  • Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access
  • to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you
  • already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the
  • owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate
  • royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each
  • date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your
  • periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such
  • and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you
  • in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not
  • agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You
  • must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works
  • possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access
  • to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
  • any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
  • receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth
  • in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the
  • owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as
  • set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection.
  • Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the
  • medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but
  • not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
  • errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
  • defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
  • codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
  • of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
  • YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
  • BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
  • PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
  • ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
  • ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
  • EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect
  • in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive
  • a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written
  • explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received
  • the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your
  • written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the
  • defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation,
  • the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain
  • freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
  • permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To
  • learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
  • how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
  • Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
  • of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
  • Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number
  • is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887,
  • email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page
  • at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive
  • and Director gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
  • public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing
  • the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
  • distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array
  • of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
  • $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with
  • the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
  • DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
  • visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
  • statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
  • the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
  • including including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
  • a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
  • in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including
  • how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to
  • our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.